25.10.2012 Views

AUTOREN- UND TITELVERZEICHNIS ZPE 101 (1994) – 181 (2012)

AUTOREN- UND TITELVERZEICHNIS ZPE 101 (1994) – 181 (2012)

AUTOREN- UND TITELVERZEICHNIS ZPE 101 (1994) – 181 (2012)

SHOW MORE
SHOW LESS

You also want an ePaper? Increase the reach of your titles

YUMPU automatically turns print PDFs into web optimized ePapers that Google loves.

<strong>AUTOREN</strong>- <strong>UND</strong> <strong>TITELVERZEICHNIS</strong> <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) <strong>–</strong> <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>)


2 Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff.<br />

ABASCAL, J. M., Marti Augusto sacrum ex mandatu. 166 (2008) 303<strong>–</strong>305<br />

ABASCAL, J. M. <strong>–</strong> ALFÖLDY, G. <strong>–</strong> CEBRIÁN, R., Nuevos monumentos epigráficos del foro de Segobriga. Parte primera: inscripciones votivas,<br />

imperiales y de empleados del Estado romano. 143 (2003) 255<strong>–</strong>274<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nuevos monumentos epigráficos del foro de Segobriga. Parte segunda: inscripciones de dignatarios municipales, fragmentos de naturaleza desconocida,<br />

hallazgos más recientes. 144 (2003) 217<strong>–</strong>234<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Lápida funeraria de M’. Valerius Spantamicus en Segobriga. 168 (2009) 279<strong>–</strong>282<br />

<strong>–</strong>, R(es) p(ublica) S(egobrigensis vel Segobrigensium). 176 (2011) 291<strong>–</strong>294<br />

ABASCAL, J. M. <strong>–</strong> ALFÖLDY, G. <strong>–</strong> MILLÁN, J. M., Otro testimonio meridional de las “organizaciones suprafamiliares” indígenas de la Hispania<br />

citerior. 168 (2009) 283<strong>–</strong>285 (Corrigendum dazu: 173 (2010) 266)<br />

ABASCAL, J. M. <strong>–</strong> CEBRIÁN, R., Carthago Nova como caput viae. Dos miliarios de Tiberio de Huelves (Hispania citerior). 162 (2007) 257<strong>–</strong>262<br />

ABASCAL, J. M. <strong>–</strong> FERNÁNDEZ MARTÍNEZ, C. <strong>–</strong> GÓMEZ PALLARÈS, J. <strong>–</strong> CEBRIÁN, R., Mors mala solvit. Nuevos CLE hallados en Segobriga<br />

(Hispania citerior). 161 (2007) 47<strong>–</strong>60<br />

ABASCAL, J. M. <strong>–</strong> GARCÍA BUENO, C., Inscripciones de Fuencaliente (addendum a <strong>ZPE</strong> 67, 1987) y Puebla de Don Rodrigo (Baetica, conventus<br />

Cordubensis). 169 (2009) 269<strong>–</strong>272<br />

ABERSON, M. <strong>–</strong> FREI-STOLBA, R., Un fragment de table de bronze inscrite découvert dans l’église Saint-Sylvestre à Compesières (GE): indice d’un<br />

document officiel important? 172 (2010) 267<strong>–</strong>270<br />

ABERSON, M. <strong>–</strong> WIBLÉ, F., «Revigorer l’[âme?] épuisée»: fragments inédits d’une inscription métrique latine provenant de Martigny (Forum Claudii<br />

Vallensium). <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>) 48<strong>–</strong>53<br />

ABOU DIWAN, G., L’ère d’autonomie et le calendrier de Sidon. Une révision à la lumière d’une nouvelle inscription d’époque byzantine. 170 (2009)<br />

113<strong>–</strong>126<br />

ABRAMENKO, A., Nachträge zu Sevirat und Augustalität in der Gallia Narbonensis. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 217<strong>–</strong>222<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Annalis incola: Ein „ghost word“ in einer Inschrift aus Buthrotum. 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 83<strong>–</strong>86<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zu drei Inschriften lokaler Würdenträger aus Mediolanum. 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 87<strong>–</strong>92<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zur Filiation in einer altlateinischen Inschrift aus Paestum. 144 (2003) 211<strong>–</strong>212<br />

ACOSTA-HUGHES, B. <strong>–</strong> STEPHENS, S. A., Aetia fr. 1.5: I Told My Story Like a Child. 136 (2001) 214<strong>–</strong>216<br />

ADAMS, C. E. P., Supplying the Roman Army: O. Petr. 245. 109 (1995) 119<strong>–</strong>124<br />

ADAMS, C. E. P. <strong>–</strong> GONIS, N., Two Customs-House Receipts from the Bodleian Library. 126 (1999) 213<strong>–</strong>218<br />

ADAMS, J. N., The Interpretation of souxtum at Tab. Vindol. II.301.3. 110 (1996) 238<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Interpuncts as Evidence for the Enclitic Character of Personal Pronouns in Latin. 111 (1996) 208<strong>–</strong>210<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Two Notes on RIB. 123 (1998) 235<strong>–</strong>236<br />

<strong>–</strong>, An Unusual Epistolary Formula and the Text at RIB II.4.2443.7. 140 (2002) 262<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Word moritix in a New Inscription from London. 143 (2003) 275<strong>–</strong>276<br />

ADORJÁNI, ZS., Eine neue Konjektur zu Pind. fr. 52h (= Pae. 7b) 20. 179 (2011) 48<strong>–</strong>50<br />

AGER, S. L., Foreign Judges and dikaiodos¤a: A Rhodian Fragment. 117 (1997) 123<strong>–</strong>125<br />

AGOSTI, G., The poikil¤a of Paul the Bishop. 116 (1997) 31<strong>–</strong>38<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Oxy. 3537r: etopea acrostica su Esiodo. 119 (1997) 1<strong>–</strong>5<br />

<strong>–</strong>, L’alba notturna (¶nnuxow ±≈w). 121 (1998) 53<strong>–</strong>58<br />

<strong>–</strong>, POxy 4352, fr. 5.II.18<strong>–</strong>39 (Encomio a Diocleziano) e Menandro Retore. 140 (2002) 51<strong>–</strong>58<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Note a epigrafi tardoantiche (Miscellanea epigrafica II). 160 (2007) 41<strong>–</strong>49<br />

AGUSTA-BOULAROT, S. <strong>–</strong> BORRÉANI, M., Deux inscriptions religieuses inédites de l’antique territoire d’Aquae Sextiae (Aix-en-Provence). 175<br />

(2010) 265<strong>–</strong>272<br />

AGUSTA-BOULAROT, S. <strong>–</strong> SEIGNE, J., À propos des légations d’Arabie de P. Aelius Seuerianus Maximus et de Q. Scribonius Tenax. 139 (2002)<br />

279<strong>–</strong>282<br />

AGUSTA-BOULAROT, S. <strong>–</strong> SEIGNE, J. <strong>–</strong> MUJJALI, A., Maximien à Gerasa (Jerash, Jordanie) et les gouverneurs de la province d’Arabie à l’époque de<br />

Dioclétien et de la Tétrarchie. 164 (2008) 263<strong>–</strong>270<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Milliaires anciens et nouveaux de Gerasa. Complément 1. 164 (2008) 271<strong>–</strong>276<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Épigramme funéraire d’une jeune fille de Phrygie à Gerasa (Jerash, Jordanie). 179 (2011) 103<strong>–</strong>106<br />

AIBÈCHE, Y. <strong>–</strong> CHRISTOL, M., Sur une inscription de Mons (Algérie) de l’époque de Marc Aurèle. 158 (2006) 251<strong>–</strong>258<br />

ALESHIRE†, S. B. <strong>–</strong> LAMBERT, S. D., Making the Peplos for Athena: a New Edition of IG II 2 1060 + IG II 2 1036. 142 (2003) 65<strong>–</strong>86<br />

D’ALESSIO, G. B., Callimaco, fr. 516 Pf. 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 25<strong>–</strong>26<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Apollo Delio, i Cabiri Milesii e le cavalle di Tracia. Osservazioni su Callimaco frr. 114<strong>–</strong>115 Pf. 106 (1995) 5<strong>–</strong>21<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Sull’epigramma dal polyandrion di Ambracia. 106 (1995) 22<strong>–</strong>26<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Esiodo, fr. 193,8 M.<strong>–</strong>W. 110 (1996) 100<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Pindar’s Prosodia and the Classification of Pindaric Papyrus Fragments. 118 (1997) 23<strong>–</strong>60<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Su di un papiro berlinese di lirica corale (P. Berol. inv. 13411 = Pind. fr. 52N S.M.). 126 (1999) 15<strong>–</strong>25<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Danni materiali e ricostruzione di rotoli papiracei: le Elleniche di Ossirinco (POxy 842) e altri esempi. 134 (2001) 23<strong>–</strong>41<br />

<strong>–</strong>, I “colossi” di Mirone (Posidippo 68,4 A.<strong>–</strong>B.). 149 (2004) 43<strong>–</strong>44<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Note al nuovo Archiloco (POxy LXIX 4708). 156 (2006) 19<strong>–</strong>22<br />

<strong>–</strong>, On the “Artemidorus” Papyrus. 171 (2009) 27<strong>–</strong>43<br />

ALEXANDRESCU, C.-G., Der Grabaltar eines beneficiarius consularis aus Moesia inferior. 164 (2008) 259<strong>–</strong>262<br />

ALEXANDRU, St., Traces of Ancient Reclamantes Surviving in Further Manuscripts of Aristotle’s Metaphysics. 131 (2000) 13<strong>–</strong>14<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Never Yet Deciphered Greek Palimpsest: Codex Athous Zographou Il’inskiy 40. 178 (2011) 159<strong>–</strong>178<br />

ALFÖLDY, G., Eine Bauinschrift aus dem Colosseum. 109 (1995) 195<strong>–</strong>226<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Die Großen Götter von Gorsium. 115 (1997) 225<strong>–</strong>241<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zur Lage und zu den Inschriften des Diana-Heiligtums von Saguntum. 129 (2000) 275<strong>–</strong>280<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Das neue Edikt des Augustus aus El Bierzo in Hispanien. 131 (2000) 177<strong>–</strong>205<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eine clarissima femina in Lucus Augusti. 136 (2001) 233<strong>–</strong>238<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Arcobriga in Hispanien, ein flavisches Municipium. 136 (2001) 239<strong>–</strong>250<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Epigraphica Pannonica I. Inschriften aus der näheren Umgebung von Aquincum. 140 (2002) 263<strong>–</strong>277<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eine eradierte Kaiserinschrift aus Valentia (Hispania citerior). 141 (2002) 257<strong>–</strong>260<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein römischer Ritter aus Cossura (Pantelleria). 151 (2005) 193<strong>–</strong>213<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Griechische Inschriften und griechische Kultur in Tarraco. 178 (2011) 87<strong>–</strong>125


Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff. 3<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eine führende Familie der Kolonie von Aquincum. 179 (2011) 271<strong>–</strong>278<br />

ALFÖLDY, G. <strong>–</strong> ABASCAL, J. M. <strong>–</strong> CEBRIÁN, R., Nuevos monumentos epigráficos del foro de Segobriga. Parte primera: inscripciones votivas,<br />

imperiales y de empleados del Estado romano. 143 (2003) 255<strong>–</strong>274<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nuevos monumentos epigráficos del foro de Segobriga. Parte segunda: inscripciones de dignatarios municipales, fragmentos de naturaleza desconocida,<br />

hallazgos más recientes. 144 (2003) 217<strong>–</strong>234<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Lápida funeraria de M’. Valerius Spantamicus en Segobriga. 168 (2009) 279<strong>–</strong>282<br />

<strong>–</strong>, R(es) p(ublica) S(egobrigensis vel Segobrigensium). 176 (2011) 291<strong>–</strong>294<br />

ALFÖLDY, G. <strong>–</strong> ABASCAL, J. M. <strong>–</strong> MILLÁN, J. M., Otro testimonio meridional de las “organizaciones suprafamiliares” indígenas de la Hispania<br />

citerior. 168 (2009) 283<strong>–</strong>285 (Corrigendum dazu: 173 (2010) 266)<br />

ALFÖLDY, G. <strong>–</strong> LŐRINCZ, B., Ein neues Militärdiplomfragment und ein neuer Statthalter der Provinz Pannonia superior. 139 (2002) 211<strong>–</strong>218<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Die cohors I Batavorum miliaria civium Romanorum pia fidelis im pannonischen Solva (Esztergom). 145 (2003) 259<strong>–</strong>262<br />

ALIQUOT, J., Une mosaïque inscrite de la Syrie côtière et le site de Pasieria. 172 (2010) 151<strong>–</strong>154<br />

ALONI, A., L’elegia di Simonide dedicata alla battaglia di Platea (Sim. frr. 10<strong>–</strong>18 W 2 ) e l’occasione della sua performance. 102 (<strong>1994</strong>) 9<strong>–</strong>22<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Anacreonte a Atene. Datazione e significato di alcune iscrizioni tiranniche. 130 (2000) 81<strong>–</strong>94<br />

ALONSO DÉNIZ, A., ἐκλογιζούσθω for ἐκλογιζέσθω in IG IX.1 2 (4), 798.104. Two False Characters in Search of an Author. 176 (2011) 163<strong>–</strong>168<br />

ALONSO DÉNIZ, A. <strong>–</strong> del BARRIO VEGA, M. L., Trois remarques à propos de la stèle de Pallantion, SEG XI 1084. 144 (2003) 141<strong>–</strong>146<br />

ALPERS, K., Der Garten des Philetas. Longos und Lukian. 136 (2001) 43<strong>–</strong>48<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Beobachtungen zur Überlieferung und zum Text des Platonlexikons des Timaios. 166 (2008) 85<strong>–</strong>99<br />

ALPERS, K. <strong>–</strong> PRIMAVESI, O., Empedokles im Wiener Herodian-Palimpsest. 156 (2006) 27<strong>–</strong>37<br />

AMATO, E., Favorino, Sul ‘proprio’ esilio. 133 (2000) 43<strong>–</strong>50<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ancora sull’esilio di Favorino. 144 (2003) <strong>101</strong><strong>–</strong>104<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Su una discussa citazione di Alceo nel De exilio di Favorino. 175 (2010) 45<strong>–</strong>47<br />

AMBÜHL, A., Callimachus and the Arcadian Asses: The Aitia Prologue and a Lemma in the London Scholion. 105 (1995) 209<strong>–</strong>213<br />

AMBÜHL, A. <strong>–</strong> MARKOVSKA, D. <strong>–</strong> MILNOR, K., P. Mich. Inv. 29: Two Astrological Treatises. 105 (1995) 229<strong>–</strong>236<br />

AMELING, W., Die Gefallenen der Phyle Erechtheis im Jahr 490 v. Chr. 176 (2011) 10<strong>–</strong>23<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Epigraphische Kleinigkeiten. 177 (2011) 71<strong>–</strong>74<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Epigraphische Kleinigkeiten II. 178 (2011) 185<strong>–</strong>190<br />

AMERUOSO, M., In margine a P.S.I. XII 1283 (= Pack 2 , 1343): un nuovo Antioco? 128 (1999) 133<strong>–</strong>149<br />

AMODIO, G., Alcune osservazioni sulle curie municipali nelle città dell’Occidente romano. 120 (1998) 233<strong>–</strong>249<br />

d’AMORE, L., Breve nota ad una defixio greca da Locri Epizefiri. 117 (1997) 95<strong>–</strong>98<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Contributo all’antroponimia di Rhegion: PERKVNIVN. 123 (1998) 291<strong>–</strong>296<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Epigramma greco inedito nel Museo Archeologico Nazionale di Reggio Calabria. 148 (2004) 81<strong>–</strong>84<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Un filatterio greco da Lazzàro (Reggio Calabria). 152 (2005) 157<strong>–</strong>160<br />

ANDERSON, C. A. <strong>–</strong> DIX, T. K., Politics and State Religion in the Delian League: Athena and Apollo in the Eteocarpathian Decree. 117 (1997) 129<strong>–</strong><br />

132<br />

ANDORLINI, I., PLB XXV 6 + P. Mon. II 35: Omero, Iliade A 384; 415<strong>–</strong>420. 115 (1997) 197<strong>–</strong>198<br />

ANDORLINI, I. <strong>–</strong> LUISELLI, R., Una ripresa di Diotogene Pitagorico, Sulla regalità, in PBingen 3 (encomio per Augusto?). 136 (2001) 155<strong>–</strong>166<br />

ANDORLINI, I. <strong>–</strong> L<strong>UND</strong>ON, J., Frammenti di Omero, Odissea XI 210<strong>–</strong>29 (PDuk inv. 60 + PPisaLit 23). 133 (2000) 1<strong>–</strong>6<br />

ANDREASSI, M., P. Oxy. III 413 (Moicheutria), rr. 122<strong>–</strong>124 verso. 124 (1998) 17<strong>–</strong>21<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Una congettura al Charition (Mim. Pap. fr. 6.125 Cunn.). 136 (2001) 41<strong>–</strong>42<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Il limÒjhrow nella Vita Aesopi e nel Philogelos. 158 (2006) 95<strong>–</strong>103<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Implicazioni magiche in Meleagro AP 5.152. 176 (2011) 69<strong>–</strong>81<br />

ANEZIRI, S., Zwischen Musen und Hof: Die dionysischen Techniten auf Zypern. 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 179<strong>–</strong>198<br />

ANGELI, A. <strong>–</strong> RISPOLI, G. M., La ricomposizione del quarto libro del trattato di Filodemo sulla musica: analisi e prospettive metodologiche. 114<br />

(1996) 67<strong>–</strong>95<br />

ANGELOV, A. <strong>–</strong> CONRAD, S. <strong>–</strong> LUPPE, W., Eine Grabinschrift aus Marcianopolis (Moesia inferior). 112 (1996) 102<strong>–</strong>104 (Corrigendum dazu: 113<br />

(1996) 248)<br />

ANGELOV, D. G., New Greek Inscriptions from the Strymon Valley (Province of Macedonia). 143 (2003) 138<strong>–</strong>142<br />

ANGERT, A. <strong>–</strong> LAST, R., Inscribed Slab from Caesarea Maritima. 114 (1996) 288<br />

ANGIÒ, F., Callimaco, Aitia, fr. 1,11<strong>–</strong>12 Pf. (= 1,11<strong>–</strong>12 M.). 160 (2007) 32<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Epigr. 10 Austin<strong>–</strong>Bastianini (P. Mil. Vogl. VIII 309, col. II 7<strong>–</strong>16). 160 (2007) 50 (Corrigendum dazu: 162 (2007) 94)<br />

<strong>–</strong>, L’epigramma di Gaudenzio (SGO 22/33/02 = GVI 1974). 173 (2010) 27<strong>–</strong>31<br />

ANGIÒ, F. <strong>–</strong> PUELMA, M., Die Sonnenuhr und das Mädchen. Kommentar zu einem Grabepigramm des neuen Poseidippos (P. Mil. Vogl. VIII 309, Kol.<br />

VIII 25<strong>–</strong>30 = ep. 52 A.<strong>–</strong>B.). 151 (2005) 15<strong>–</strong>29<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Sappho und Poseidippos. Nachtrag zum Sonnenuhr-Epigramm 52 A.<strong>–</strong>B. des Mailänder Papyrus. 152 (2005) 13<strong>–</strong>15<br />

ANTELA-BERNÁRDEZ, I. B., IG II 2 329: Another View. 160 (2007) 77<strong>–</strong>78<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Between Medeios and Mithridates: The Peripatetic Constitution of Athens (Agora I 2351). 171 (2009) 105<strong>–</strong>108<br />

ANTELA-BERNÁRDEZ, B. <strong>–</strong> VERDEJO MANCHADO, J., IG II 2 1334: A Crown for Onaso and the Archon Athenion. 177 (2011) 91<strong>–</strong>96<br />

ANTOLINOS MARIN, J. A. <strong>–</strong> DÍAZ ARIÑO, B., Una inscripción funeraria republicana procedente de Los Beatos (Cartagena, Murcia). 179 (2011) 291<strong>–</strong><br />

294<br />

ANTONACCIO, C. M., Kupãra, a Sikel Nymph? 126 (1999) 177<strong>–</strong>185<br />

ANTONACCIO, C. M. <strong>–</strong> NEILS, J., A New Graffito from Archaic Morgantina. 105 (1995) 261<strong>–</strong>277<br />

ANTOLINI, S., Rilettura di un’iscrizione funeraria di Trebula Mutuesca. 147 (2004) 208<strong>–</strong>210<br />

ANTONARAS, A. <strong>–</strong> NIGDELIS, P. M., Ein neues Militärdiplom im Museum Byzantinischer Kultur von Thessaloniki. 121 (1998) 283<strong>–</strong>286<br />

ANTONETTI, C., Un decreto etolico inedito del 165/4 a. C. per un acheo di Dime. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 127<strong>–</strong>135<br />

ANTONETTI, C. <strong>–</strong> CAVALLI, E., Il fondo epigrafico Petsas presso l’Università Ca’ Foscari Venezia: Iscrizioni di Termo. 280 (<strong>2012</strong>) 173<strong>–</strong>201<br />

AOUNALLAH, S., Sur la signification du martelage des mots castello ou ciuitate et Aurelia sur deux inscriptions du pagus Fortunalis et de Thugga. 175<br />

(2010) 287<strong>–</strong>294<br />

AOUNALLAH, S. <strong>–</strong> MAURIN, L., Pagus et civitas Siviritani. Une nouvelle “commune double” dans la pertica de Carthage. 167 (2008) 227<strong>–</strong>250<br />

APOSTOLAKOU, S. <strong>–</strong> MARTÍNEZ FERNÁNDEZ, A., Dos nuevos epigramas funerarios de Lat∆ prÚw Kãmara, Creta. 150 (2004) 43<strong>–</strong>47<br />

APPEL, W., Zur Frage der interpretatio Homeri bei den späteren Dichtern. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 49<strong>–</strong>52<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Postscriptum zum Grabmal des U. v. Wilamowitz. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 18


4 Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff.<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Grabinschrift für Athenokles (zu IOSPE I 2 687). 137 (2001) 179<strong>–</strong>182<br />

APTHORP, M. J., Iliad 14.306c Discovered in the Syriac Palimpsest. 109 (1995) 174<strong>–</strong>176<br />

<strong>–</strong>, New Evidence from the Syriac Palimpsest on the Numerus Versuum of the Iliad. 110 (1996) 103<strong>–</strong>114<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Iliad 18.200<strong>–</strong>201: Genuine or Interpolated? 111 (1996) 141<strong>–</strong>148<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Double News from Antinoopolis on Phoenix’s Parricidal Thoughts (Iliad 9.458<strong>–</strong>61). 122 (1998) 182<strong>–</strong>188<br />

<strong>–</strong>, New Light from Mount Sinai on the Text of the Iliad. 127 (1999) 141<strong>–</strong>148<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Homer’s Winged Words and the Papyri: Some Questions of Authenticity. 128 (1999) 15<strong>–</strong>22<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Did Athene Help Tydeus to Win the Cadmean Games (Iliad 5.808)? 131 (2000) 1<strong>–</strong>9<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Iliad 5.808 (Again), 5.57 and the D Scholia. 136 (2001) 105<strong>–</strong>109<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Iliad 4.337 and the Papyri: an Update. 137 (2001) 220<br />

ARBABZADAH, M., A Note on the Bilingual Curse Tablet from Barchín del Hoyo (Spain). 169 (2009) 193<strong>–</strong>195<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Note on Jewish and Christian Funerary Formulae (addendum to McKechnie, <strong>ZPE</strong> 169). 175 (2010) 165<strong>–</strong>166<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Lexicographical Note on a Curse Tablet from Antioch. 179 (2011) 199<strong>–</strong>200<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Disappearing Man: λακίνει/Λακινει⟨ν⟩ in a Greek Curse Tablet. 180 (<strong>2012</strong>) 253<strong>–</strong>255<br />

ARENA, R., Tra linguistica ed epigrafia. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 155<strong>–</strong>158<br />

ARGENTIERI, L., Epigramma e libro. Morfologia delle raccolte epigrammatiche premeleagree. 121 (1998) 1<strong>–</strong>20<br />

ARJAVA, A., Die römische Vormundschaft und das Volljährigkeitsalter in Ägypten. 126 (1999) 202<strong>–</strong>204<br />

ARMONI, Ch., Drei ptolemäische Papyri der Heidelberger Sammlung. 132 (2000) 225<strong>–</strong>239<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bemerkungen zu Urkunden. 136 (2001) 169<strong>–</strong>173<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Kornlieferung an Soldaten. Bemerkungen zu BGU XVIII.1 2747 (86 v. Chr.). 136 (2001) 174<strong>–</strong>176<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Katå forån épost°llv soi marg≈min. Ein frühbyzantinischer (?) Privatbrief. 137 (2001) 231<strong>–</strong>236<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Hebdomekontaruroi in numerierten Hipparchien: SB XXII 15213. 137 (2001) 237<strong>–</strong>239<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bemerkungen zu verschiedenen Papyri. 144 (2003) 173<strong>–</strong>176<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zur Bedeutung von metãbolow in den Papyri und Ostraka. 145 (2003) 213<strong>–</strong>218<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Med. I 2 32 und der ägyptische Aufstand in der Thebais. 149 (2004) 162<strong>–</strong>164<br />

<strong>–</strong>, PSI Com. 11: Ein seltenes Exemplar einer Exomosie. 154 (2005) 214<strong>–</strong>216<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Lesungs- und Interpretationsvorschläge zu dokumentarischen Papyri. 160 (2007) 227<strong>–</strong>231<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bemerkungen zu dokumentarischen Papyri. 171 (2009) 171<strong>–</strong>174<br />

ARMONI, Ch. <strong>–</strong> HAGEDORN, D., Ein Ostrakon aus Elephantine in Witzenhausen. 145 (2003) 219<strong>–</strong> 223<br />

ARMONI, Ch. <strong>–</strong> KRUSE, Th., Papyri editae in memoriam Wm. Brashear II. 140 (2002) 165<strong>–</strong>176<br />

ARNAOUTOGLOU, I., The Date of IG II 2 1273. 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 103<strong>–</strong>106<br />

<strong>–</strong>, érxeranistÆw and its Meaning in Inscriptions. 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 107<strong>–</strong>110<br />

ARNOTT, W. G., A New Look at P. Berol. 11771 (Pack 2 1641). 102 (<strong>1994</strong>) 61<strong>–</strong>70 (Corrigenda dazu: 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 22)<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Further Notes on Menander’s Perikeiromene. 109 (1995) 11<strong>–</strong>30<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes on Menander’s Misoumenos. 110 (1996) 27<strong>–</strong>39<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes on Menander’s Kolax, Koneiazomenai, Leukadia, Misoumenos and Perinthia. 111 (1996) 21<strong>–</strong>25<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Two Notes on Menander. 115 (1997) 73<strong>–</strong>74<br />

<strong>–</strong>, First Notes on Menander’s Sikyonioi. 116 (1997) 1<strong>–</strong>10<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Further Notes on Menander’s Sikyonioi (vv. 110<strong>–</strong>322). 117 (1997) 21<strong>–</strong>34<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Final Notes on Menander’s Sikyonioi (vv. 343<strong>–</strong>423 with frs. 1, 2 and 7). 118 (1997) 95<strong>–</strong>103<br />

<strong>–</strong>, First Notes on Menander’s Samia. 121 (1998) 35<strong>–</strong>44<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Second Notes on Menander’s Samia (Acts II<strong>–</strong>V). 122 (1998) 7<strong>–</strong>20<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Misoumenos 152<strong>–</strong>59 Sandbach (552<strong>–</strong>59 Arnott). 122 (1998) 20<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes on Menander’s Phasma. 123 (1998) 35<strong>–</strong>48<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Menander’s Fabula Incerta. 123 (1998) 49<strong>–</strong>58<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Note on fr. com. adesp. 1147 Kassel<strong>–</strong>Austin. 123 (1998) 59<strong>–</strong>60<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes on P. Antinoopolis 15 (fr. com. adesp. 1084 Kassel<strong>–</strong>Austin). 125 (1999) 61<strong>–</strong>64<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Further Notes on fr. com. adesp. 1147 Kassel<strong>–</strong>Austin. 125 (1999) 65<strong>–</strong>66<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes on Some Comic Papyri. 126 (1999) 77<strong>–</strong>80<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Length of Menander’s Samia. 128 (1999) 45<strong>–</strong>48<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes on P. Antinoopolis 55 (fr. com. adesp. 1096 Kassel<strong>–</strong>Austin). 128 (1999) 49<strong>–</strong>53<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Some Orthographical Problems in the Papyri of Later Greek Comedy I: po(i)e›n (along with Compounds and Congeners). 134 (2001) 43<strong>–</strong>51<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Some Orthographical Problems in the Papyri of Later Greek Comedy II: -ei or -h(i) as the Ending of the Second Person Singular Middle and Passive in<br />

the Present and Other Tenses of Verbs in -v. 135 (2001) 36<strong>–</strong>40<br />

ARNUSH, M., The Archonship of Sarpadon at Delphi. 105 (1995) 95<strong>–</strong>104<br />

ARONEN, J., Dragon Cults and nÊmfh drãkaina in IGUR 974. 111 (1996) 125<strong>–</strong>132<br />

ARRINGTON, N. T., The Form(s) and Date(s) of a Classical War Monument: Re-evaluating IG I 3 1163 and the Case for Delion. <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>) 61<strong>–</strong>75<br />

ARWEILER, A., Zu Text und Überlieferung einer gekürzten Fassung von Macrobius Saturnalia I,12,2<strong>–</strong>I,15,20. 131 (2000) 45<strong>–</strong>57<br />

ARZT-GRABNER, P., Drei Brieffragmente aus der Wiener Papyrussammlung. 139 (2002) 149<strong>–</strong>154<br />

ASHTON, R. H. J., The Attalid Poll-Tax. 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 57<strong>–</strong>60<br />

AST, R., Tziper, not Q. Iper. 137 (2001) 229<strong>–</strong>230<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Papyri editae in memoriam Wm. Brashear I. 139 (2002) 177<strong>–</strong>186<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Corrections to Papyri in the Jena Collection. 148 (2004) 235<strong>–</strong>238<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes on Documents. 153 (2005) 159<strong>–</strong>162<br />

<strong>–</strong>, BGU XVII 2685: An Eleven-Year Lease? 156 (2006) 194<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes on BGU XIX. 157 (2006) 162<strong>–</strong>164<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Two Receipts of Artemidora. 163 (2007) 183<strong>–</strong>187<br />

AST, R. <strong>–</strong> GONIS, N., P. Worp 27 and the Consul ‘Iulius’ Maximus. 171 (2009) 213<strong>–</strong>215<br />

ATALLAH, N., Une inscription grecque de la région de ‘Ajloun-Rasun. 121 (1998) 145<strong>–</strong>148<br />

AUSTIN, C., Notes on the “Pride of Halicarnassus”. 126 (1999) 92<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Paralipomena Posidippea. 136 (2001) 22<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Postscript. 139 (2002) 33


Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff. 5<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Varia Menandrea. 175 (2010) 9<strong>–</strong>14<br />

AUSTIN, C. <strong>–</strong> STIGKA, E., Not Comedy, but Epigram: ‘Mr. Perfect’ in fr. com. adesp. *1036. 161 (2007) 13<strong>–</strong>16<br />

AUSTIN, C. <strong>–</strong> TCHERNETSKA, N. <strong>–</strong> HANDLEY, E. W. <strong>–</strong> HORVÁTH, L., New Readings in the Fragment of Hyperides’ Against Timandros from the<br />

Archimedes Palimpsest. 162 (2007) 1<strong>–</strong>4<br />

AVNER, U. <strong>–</strong> ROLL, I., Tetrarchic Milestones Found Near Yahel in the Southern Aravah. 165 (2008) 267<strong>–</strong>286<br />

AVRAM, A. <strong>–</strong> JONES, C. P., An Actor from Byzantium in a New Epigram from Tomis. 178 (2011) 126<strong>–</strong>134<br />

AWIANOWICZ, B., A Hellenistic Ostracon from Nikonion. 168 (2009) 196<strong>–</strong>198<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A New Hellenistic Ostracon from Nikonion. 178 (2011) 237<strong>–</strong>239<br />

AYÁN VILA, X. <strong>–</strong> LÓPEZ BARJA DE QUIROGA, P., Una estela funeraria inédita de Taragoña (Rianxo, A Coruña). 161 (2007) 283<strong>–</strong>287<br />

AYBEK, S. <strong>–</strong> DREYER, B., Neues vom proconsul Asiae Sempronius Senecio aus Apollonia am Rhyndakos. 173 (2010) 119<strong>–</strong>123<br />

AZZARELLO, G., ¶mchfow in Divisionstabellen? 135 (2001) 169<strong>–</strong>171<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Rain. Unterricht 162 + P. Rain. Unterricht kopt. 322. 135 (2001) 172<strong>–</strong>174<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Le perdute tetradi di P. Laur. IV 146. 140 (2002) 206<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Osservazioni e proposte di lettura a P. Oxy. XXXI 2551 recto, col. II e verso, col. I. 153 (2005) 149<strong>–</strong>154<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Oxy. XVI 2039 e la nascita della domus gloriosa degli Apioni. 155 (2006) 207<strong>–</strong>228<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Tornano i conti … (Ri)edizione di UC Inv. 31914: O.Crum 480 (= Mertens<strong>–</strong>Pack 3 2309.5) e due frammenti inediti di divisioni. 166 (2008) 159<strong>–</strong>170<br />

AZZARELLO, G. <strong>–</strong> GONIS, N., P.Stras. VIII 800: Lettera ad un Pronoetes della Domus Divina. 171 (2009) 211<strong>–</strong>212<br />

BABIĆ, M. <strong>–</strong> FERJANČIĆ, S. <strong>–</strong> PELCER, O., New Inscriptions from Pannonia and Dalmatia. 169 (2009) 245<strong>–</strong>248<br />

BADOUD, N., Une famille de bronziers originaire de Tyr. 172 (2010) 125<strong>–</strong>143<br />

BAGNALL, R. S., The People of P. Mich. Inv. 5806. 105 (1995) 253<strong>–</strong>255<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Mandate from the Great Oasis. 116 (1997) 149<strong>–</strong>151<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A New Arsinoite Strategos? 119 (1997) 202<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Greek, Aramaic, and Coptic Gravestones from the Pyramid Complex of Senwosret III at Dahshur. 171 (2009) 131<strong>–</strong>170<br />

BAGNALL, R. S. <strong>–</strong> CHOAT, M. <strong>–</strong> GARDNER, I., O. Douch I 40. 147 (2004) 205<strong>–</strong>207<br />

BAGNALL, R. S. <strong>–</strong> DICKEY, E., SB XIV 11273: No Vocative. 146 (2004) 170<strong>–</strong>172<br />

BAGNALL, R. S. <strong>–</strong> RUFFINI, G. R., Civic Life in Fourth-Century Trimithis. Two Ostraka From the 2004 Excavations. 149 (2004) 143<strong>–</strong>152<br />

BAGNALL, R. S. <strong>–</strong> THANHEISER, U. <strong>–</strong> WORP, K. A., Tiphagion. 122 (1998) 173<strong>–</strong><strong>181</strong><br />

BAGNALL, R. S. <strong>–</strong> WORP, K. A., Three Notes on Byzantine Documents. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 96<strong>–</strong>98<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Consulate of BGU XVII 2676. 142 (2003) 188<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Dating the Coptic Legal Documents from Aphrodite. 148 (2004) 247<strong>–</strong>252<br />

BAILEY, D. M. <strong>–</strong> RÖMER, C. E., An Egyptian Seal of Severus Alexander. 160 (2007) 139<strong>–</strong>140<br />

BAIN, D., The Opening Line of Menander, Dis exapaton. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 27<strong>–</strong>28<br />

<strong>–</strong>, kinhtiçn/binhtiçn in P. Köln 203 A14. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 29<strong>–</strong>30<br />

<strong>–</strong>, fantazom°nh in PGM VII 888 <strong>–</strong> a Possible Parallel. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 31<strong>–</strong>32<br />

<strong>–</strong>, ?Bo.tiades ı prvktÒw: An Abusive Graffito from Thorikos. 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 33<strong>–</strong>35. Addendum dazu: 108 (1995) 58<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Some Unpublished Cyranidean Material in Marc. Gr. 512 (678): Three Addenda to Meschini. 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 36<strong>–</strong>42 (Corrigendum dazu: 106 (1995) 30)<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Two Submerged Items of Greek Sexual Vocabulary from Aphrodisias. 117 (1997) 81<strong>–</strong>84<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Name Dri(l)lÒmuw (OClaud. II.293.10). 125 (1999) 91<strong>–</strong>92<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A List of Bird-Names (P. Amst. 1.13). 128 (1999) 76<strong>–</strong>78<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Subuilicus, suppromus, subcustos, subBallio (Plaut. Pseud. 607). 134 (2001) 70<br />

BAKKER, N., A New Solution for the ‘Lille Stesichorus’ vv. 235<strong>–</strong>52. <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>) 4<strong>–</strong>7<br />

BAKOLA, E., Old Comedy Disguised as Satyr Play: A New Reading of Cratinus’ Dionysalexandros (P. Oxy. 663). 154 (2005) 46<strong>–</strong>58<br />

BALDWIN BOWSKY, M. W., Eight Inscriptions from Roman Crete. 108 (1995) 263<strong>–</strong>280 (Corrigendum dazu: 110 (1996) 188)<br />

<strong>–</strong>, An Atticizing Stele from Western Crete. 118 (1997) 197<strong>–</strong>206<br />

BAPLU, N. <strong>–</strong> HUYS, M., P.Bouriant 1, fol. I<strong>–</strong>V: Re-edition and Commentary of the Syllabic Word-lists. 169 (2009) 29<strong>–</strong>57<br />

BARBERA, R., M. Licinius Moschus negotians perticarius (CIL VI 9672 = 25081). 126 (1999) 255<strong>–</strong>261<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Caius Gavius Tertul[---] Peregrinus: un cavaliere inesistente? (CIL VI 1612, ex collezione Casali). 139 (2002) 283<strong>–</strong>287<br />

BÂRCĂ, V. <strong>–</strong> CIONGRADI, C. <strong>–</strong> TIMOFAN, A., Eine neue Erwähnung des kastellum Starva in einer Inschrift aus Alburnus maior. Studium zu<br />

epigraphisch bezeugten kastella und vici im dakischen Goldbergwerksgebiet. 165 (2008) 249<strong>–</strong>266<br />

BARCHIESI, A., Simonide e Orazio sulla morte di Achille. 107 (1995) 33<strong>–</strong>38<br />

BARDANI, V. <strong>–</strong> TRACY, St., A New List of Athenian Ephebes and a New Archon of Athens. 163 (2007) 75<strong>–</strong>80<br />

BARJA DE QUIROGA, P. L. <strong>–</strong> CARRIL, V. R., Vicarius en un nuevo altar a Edouius de Caldas de Reis (Pontevedra). 177 (2011) 298<strong>–</strong>302<br />

BARKER, D., Epitaph of Proklos. 157 (2006) 105<strong>–</strong>106 (Addendum dazu: 158 (2006) 164)<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Christian Hymn? P. Macquarie inv. 346. 159 (2007) 281<strong>–</strong>282 (Corrigendum dazu: 160 (2007) 134)<br />

BARNES, T. D., Damascus or Demessus? 151 (2005) 266<strong>–</strong>268<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Persian Sack of Antioch in 253. 169 (2009) 294<strong>–</strong>296<br />

BARRENECHEA, F., A Fragment of Old Comedy: P. Columbia inv. 430. 158 (2006) 49<strong>–</strong>54<br />

del BARRIO VEGA, M. L., Remarques sur une inscription de Sparte (MS 6747). 141 (2002) 134<strong>–</strong>136<br />

del BARRIO VEGA, M. L. <strong>–</strong> ALONSO DÉNIZ, A., Trois remarques à propos de la stèle de Pallantion, SEG XI 1084. 144 (2003) 141<strong>–</strong>146<br />

BARTELS, J., Lateinische Grabinschriften aus Philippi: Corrigenda. 157 (2006) 199<strong>–</strong>212<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Was tat der praefectus saltus? Städtischer Grundbesitz und seine Verwaltung in der römischen Kolonie Oescus. 167 (2008) 276<strong>–</strong>282<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Augustus in Amathus (Zypern). <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>) 91<strong>–</strong>94<br />

BARTOL, K., Between Loyalty and Treachery. P. Oxy. 2327 fr. 1 + 2 (a) col. I = Simonides 21 West 2 <strong>–</strong> Some Reconsiderations. 126 (1999) 26<strong>–</strong>28<br />

BASSINO, P., Certamen Homeri et Hesiodi: nuovi spunti per una riconsiderazione delle testimonianze papiracee. 180 (<strong>2012</strong>) 38<strong>–</strong>42<br />

BATTEZZATO, L., Sull’Inno al Nilo (tavoletta cerata del Louvre, inv. MNE<strong>–</strong>911). 111 (1996) 40<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Song, Performance, and Text in the New Posidippus. 145 (2003) 31<strong>–</strong>43<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes and Corrections on Papyri of Euripides and Aristophanes (P. Oxy. LXVII 4557 and 4559; PSI VI 720). 170 (2009) 9<strong>–</strong>15<br />

BATTISTONI, F., The Ancient pinakes from Tauromenion. Some New Readings. 157 (2006) 169<strong>–</strong>180<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Missing Relative? 169 (2009) 183<strong>–</strong>187<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Note al nuovo decreto dall’area di Caronia (<strong>ZPE</strong> 170). 174 (2010) 113<strong>–</strong>117<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Time(s) for Tauromenion. The Pilaster with the List of Stratagoi (IG XIV 421) <strong>–</strong> The Antikythera Mechanism. 179 (2011) 171<strong>–</strong>188<br />

BAUSCHATZ, J., Three Duke Petitions. 152 (2005) 187<strong>–</strong>196


6 Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff.<br />

BAUSCHATZ, J. <strong>–</strong> SOSIN, J. D., Four Duke Papyri concerning Pesouris, Basilikos Grammateus. 141 (2002) 177<strong>–</strong>190<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Stealing Livestock at Oxyrhyncha. 146 (2004) 167<strong>–</strong>169<br />

BAY, S. <strong>–</strong> BEARMAN, G. <strong>–</strong> MACFARLANE, R. <strong>–</strong> WAYMENT, T., Multi-Spectral Imaging vs. Monospectral Infrared Imaging. 173 (2010) 211<strong>–</strong>217<br />

BAYLISS, A. J., New Names on an Athenian Ephebic Inscription. 140 (2002) 85<strong>–</strong>88<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Decree Honouring Medeios of Larissa. 140 (2002) 89<strong>–</strong>92<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Curse-Tablets as Evidence: Identifying the Elusive “Peiraikoi Soldiers”. 144 (2003) 125<strong>–</strong>140<br />

<strong>–</strong>, New Readings on a List of Mercenaries from Athens. 146 (2004) 85<strong>–</strong>90<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Antigonos the One-Eyed’s Return to Asia in 322: A New Restoration for a rasura in IG II 2 682. 155 (2006) 108<strong>–</strong>126<br />

BAZ, F., Ein neues Ehrenmonument für Flavius Arrianus. 163 (2007) 123<strong>–</strong>127<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eine neue Statthalterinschrift aus Kappadokien. 163 (2007) 128<strong>–</strong>130<br />

BÉAL, J.-C. <strong>–</strong> CARRARA, S., Une inscription inédite d’Optevoz (Isère, France). 119 (1997) 213<strong>–</strong>216<br />

BEARMAN, G. <strong>–</strong> BAY, S. <strong>–</strong> MACFARLANE, R. <strong>–</strong> WAYMENT, T., Multi-Spectral Imaging vs. Monospectral Infrared Imaging. 173 (2010) 211<strong>–</strong>217<br />

BECK, H., Ostlokris und die „Tausend Opuntier“. Neue Überlegungen zum Siedlergesetz für Naupaktos. 124 (1998) 53<strong>–</strong>62<br />

van BEEK, B. <strong>–</strong> CLARYSSE, W., Philagris, Perkethaut and Hermoupolis: Three Villages or One? 140 (2002) 195<strong>–</strong>200<br />

BEER, B., Lukrez in Herkulaneum? <strong>–</strong> Beitrag zu einer Edition von PHerc. 395. 168 (2009) 71<strong>–</strong>82<br />

BEGASS, CH., Bemerkungen zum spätantiken Rangtitel ὑπερφυέστατος in den Papyri. 180 (<strong>2012</strong>) 279<strong>–</strong>286<br />

BEHREND, D., Repertorium der griechischen Rechtsinschriften. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 107<strong>–</strong>108<br />

BEKKER-NIELSEN, T., Colonia Iulia Carcaso? The Barbaira Milestone (CIL XVII 2, 299) and the Civic Status of Carcassonne. 164 (2008) 248<strong>–</strong>250<br />

BELLEMORE, J., The Wife of Sejanus. 109 (1995) 255<strong>–</strong>266<br />

BELLONI, L., Il «vecchio» Filita nel Nuovo Posidippo: la verità, le muse, il re (P. Mil. Vogl. VIII 309, col. X 16<strong>–</strong>25 = 63 A.<strong>–</strong>B.). 164 (2008) 21<strong>–</strong>27<br />

BELTRÁN LLORIS, F., El nacimiento de un tipo epigráfico provincial: Las tábulas de hospitalidad y patronato. 175 (2010) 273<strong>–</strong>286<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Hospitium municipal y ciuitas honoraria. Una relectura de la tésera de hospitalidad de Herrera de Pisuerga. <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>) 245<strong>–</strong>259<br />

BELTRÁN ORTEGA, A. <strong>–</strong> SASTRE, I. <strong>–</strong> SÁNCHEZ-PALENCIA, F. J., Nuevo pacto de hospitalidad procedente de Pino del Oro (Zamora). 168 (2009)<br />

287<strong>–</strong>292<br />

BEN ABDALLAH, Z., Nouvelles inscriptions de Chul de Byzacène (Aïn Jelloula). 164 (2008) 251<strong>–</strong>255<br />

BEN ZEEV, M. P., L. Tettius Crescens’ expeditio Iudaeae. 133 (2000) 256<strong>–</strong>258<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Giss. 24: A New Reading. 152 (2005) 219<strong>–</strong>220<br />

BENAISSA, A., The Archive of Tryphon Phibas. 158 (2006) 226<strong>–</strong>234<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Four Byzantine Papyri with Notarial Subscriptions. 160 (2007) 220<strong>–</strong>226<br />

<strong>–</strong>, New Light on the Episcopal Church of Oxyrhynchus. 161 (2007) 199<strong>–</strong>206<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Two Bishops Named Senuthes: Prosopography and New Texts. 166 (2008) 179<strong>–</strong>194<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Sixteen Letters to Agoranomi from Late First Century Oxyrhynchus. 170 (2009) 157<strong>–</strong>185<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Critical Notes on the Toponymy of the Oxyrhynchite Nome. 170 (2009) 186<strong>–</strong>190 (Corrigendum dazu: 173 (2010) 190)<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Bishop, a Village, and the Nomination of a Church Steward. 171 (2009) 175<strong>–</strong>180<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Terythis and Dahrūt: Reconsideration of a Topographical Problem. 171 (2009) <strong>181</strong><strong>–</strong>185<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Five Leases of the Roman Period. 172 (2010) 175<strong>–</strong>182<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Syrian Slave Girl Twice Sold in Egypt. 173 (2010) 175<strong>–</strong>189<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Thonis and Enteleu: Two ‘Ghost’ Villages of the Oxyrhynchite Nome. 174 (2010) 156<strong>–</strong>158<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Size of the Numerus Transtigritanorum in the Fifth Century. 175 (2010) 224<strong>–</strong>226<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Two Slave Sales from First-Century Oxyrhynchus. 177 (2011) 222<strong>–</strong>228<br />

<strong>–</strong>, An Anonymous Corrector Augustamnicae of the Sixth Century. 177 (2011) 240<strong>–</strong>242<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Giro Transfers of Grain in the Oxyrhynchite Nome: A New Document in the Beinecke Library. 179 (2011) 221<strong>–</strong>230<br />

BENCIVENNI, A., “Massima considerazione”. Forma dell’ordine e immagini del potere nella corrispondenza di Seleuco IV. 176 (2011) 139<strong>–</strong>153<br />

BENEDETTI, L. <strong>–</strong> SPADONI, M. C., Su alcune are con dedica ad Augusto da Perugia (CIL XI 1923). 174 (2010) 219<strong>–</strong>228<br />

BENEFIEL, R., A New Praetorian Laterculus from Rome. 134 (2001) 221<strong>–</strong>232<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Amianth, a Ball-Game, and Making one’s Mark. CIL IV 1936 and 1936a. 167 (2008) 193<strong>–</strong>200<br />

BENESS, J. L. <strong>–</strong> HILLARD, T., The First Romans at Philae (CIL I 2 .2.2937a). 144 (2003) 203<strong>–</strong>207<br />

BENNETT, Chr., The Children of Ptolemy III and the Date of the Exedra of Thermos. 138 (2002) 141<strong>–</strong>145<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Chronology of Berenice III. 139 (2002) 143<strong>–</strong>148<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Early Augustan Calendars in Rome and Egypt. 142 (2003) 221<strong>–</strong>240<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Early Augustan Calenders in Rome and Egypt: Addenda et Corrigenda. 147 (2004) 165<strong>–</strong>168<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Two Notes on the Chronology of the Late Republic. 147 (2004) 169<strong>–</strong>174<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Imperial Nundinal Cycle. 147 (2004) 175<strong>–</strong>179<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Livy and the Lex Hortensia: The Julian Chronology of the Comitial Dates in Livy. 149 (2004) 165<strong>–</strong>176<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Evidence for the Regulation of Intercalation under the Lex Acilia. 151 (2005) 167<strong>–</strong>184<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Arsinoe and Berenice at the Olympics. 154 (2005) 91<strong>–</strong>96<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Two Egyptian Birth Days of Augustus. 161 (2007) 195<strong>–</strong>198<br />

BENNETT, Chr. <strong>–</strong> DEPAUW, M., The Reign of Berenike IV. 160 (2007) 211<strong>–</strong>214<br />

BENSEDDIK, N., Lambèse (Algérie) ou l’archéologie du bulldozer. 135 (2001) 287<strong>–</strong>295<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Lueurs cirtéennes. 153 (2005) 249<strong>–</strong>260<br />

BENZINA BEN ABDALLAH, Z. <strong>–</strong> CARANDE, R. <strong>–</strong> FERNÁNDEZ, C. <strong>–</strong> GÓMEZ PALLARÈS, J. <strong>–</strong> JORBA, N., Carmina Latina Epigraphica Inedita<br />

Ammaedarae. 152 (2005) 89<strong>–</strong>113<br />

BÉRATO, J. <strong>–</strong> GASCOU, J., Inscriptions des territoires antiques d’Arles et de Fréjus. 119 (1997) 221<strong>–</strong>227<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Sive deo sive deae? À propos d’une inscription de Cassis (Bouches-du-Rhône). 137 (2001) 255<strong>–</strong>259<br />

BERENGUER-SANCHEZ, J. A. <strong>–</strong> LUJAN, E. R., La nueva inscripción falisca de Cavios Frenaios. 149 (2004) 213<strong>–</strong>222<br />

BERGAMASCO, M., Una nota su P. Heid. IV 327. 110 (1996) 174<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Kell. G. 19.A, Appendix. 121 (1998) 193<strong>–</strong>196<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Theabennis, maestro tessitore (P Osl. III 124 e 141). 147 (2004) 155<strong>–</strong>156<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Il contratto di baliatico in PDuk. inv. 915. 158 (2006) 203<strong>–</strong>206<br />

<strong>–</strong>, La didaskalikÆ di PCol. inv. 164. 158 (2006) 207<strong>–</strong>212<br />

BERMEJO RUBIO, F., Further Remarks on the Manichaean Nature of EÈxØ t«n probol«n (P. Kell. Gr. 98). 168 (2009) 221<strong>–</strong>238<br />

BERNABÉ, A., Some Thoughts about the ‘New’ Gold Tablet from Pherai. 166 (2008) 53<strong>–</strong>58


Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff. 7<br />

BERNAND, A., Les veilleurs du Phare. 113 (1996) 85<strong>–</strong>90<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Sur le “marbre” du Phare d’Alexandrie. 118 (1997) 131<strong>–</strong>138<br />

BERNAND, A. <strong>–</strong> BERNAND, E., Un procurateur des effigies impériales à Alexandrie. 122 (1998) 97<strong>–</strong><strong>101</strong><br />

BERNAND, A. <strong>–</strong> BERNAND, E. <strong>–</strong> GODDIO, F., L’épigraphie sous-marine dans le port oriental d’Alexandrie. 121 (1998) 131<strong>–</strong>143<br />

BERNAND, E., Une épitaphe de Šimm al-Baṣal (Moyenne Egypte). 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 93<strong>–</strong>94<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Etat du corpus des IG d’Egypte et de Nubie. 139 (2002) 119<strong>–</strong>126<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Epitaphe d’un soldat-bouvier. 140 (2002) 97<strong>–</strong>98<br />

BERNAND, E. <strong>–</strong> BERNAND, A., Un procurateur des effigies impériales à Alexandrie. 122 (1998) 97<strong>–</strong><strong>101</strong><br />

BERNAND, E. <strong>–</strong> BERNAND, A. <strong>–</strong> GODDIO, F., L’épigraphie sous-marine dans le port oriental d’Alexandrie. 121 (1998) 131<strong>–</strong>143<br />

BERNARD, S. G., Alexandrian Tainiai and Land Traffic Patterns: A Note on the Amnesty Decree (P.Teb. I 5) in Light of the Topography. 168 (2009)<br />

265<strong>–</strong>270<br />

BERNINI, A., Note a documenti di età tolemaica. 175 (2010) 171<strong>–</strong>176<br />

BERNSDORFF, H., Zu P. Oxy. 3723 (kaiserzeitliche Liebeselegie?). 111 (1996) 43<strong>–</strong>44<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zu Simonides fr. 22 West 2 . 114 (1996) 24<strong>–</strong>26<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Q. Sulpicius Maximus, Apollonios von Rhodos und Ovid. 118 (1997) 105<strong>–</strong>112<br />

<strong>–</strong>, scaenalis (CE 1559,11). 127 (1999) 67<strong>–</strong>68<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zum neuen Epigramm auf einen Seelenverkäufer (P. Oxy. 4501). 132 (2000) 145<strong>–</strong>147<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein Pferdearzt namens Hippokrates (SEG XLVII 1836). 136 (2001) 49<strong>–</strong>50<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Schwermut des Alters im neuen Kölner Sappho-Papyrus. 150 (2004) 27<strong>–</strong>35<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Taucher aus Liebe (zu Poseidipp 19, 7<strong>–</strong>8 A.<strong>–</strong>B. und Moschos fr. 3 G.). 150 (2004) 36<strong>–</strong>38<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Offene Gedichtschlüsse. 153 (2005) 1<strong>–</strong>6<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Halbgötter auf der Flucht <strong>–</strong> zu P. Oxy. 4708 (Archilochos?). 158 (2006) 1<strong>–</strong>7<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes on P.Oxy. 3722 (Commentary on Anacreon). 178 (2011) 29<strong>–</strong>34<br />

BERTOLAZZI, R., Iter precarium in una iscrizione inedita da Verona. <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>) 215<strong>–</strong>217<br />

BERTRANDY, F. <strong>–</strong> FAURE, P. <strong>–</strong> SERRALONGUE, J., Un monument funéraire de prétorien récemment découvert à Annecy (Haute-Savoie). 146<br />

(2004) 259<strong>–</strong>264<br />

BERTRANDY, F. <strong>–</strong> KAYSER, F., Une inscription de Vienne reconstituée: l’épitaphe de T. Vireius Masuetus. 114 (1996) 209<strong>–</strong>212<br />

BETA, S., Pisandro e la tortura. Il verbo diastr°fein in Eupoli, fr. 99 K.<strong>–</strong>A. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 25<strong>–</strong>26<br />

BETTARINI, L., Una nuova defixio di Selinunte? 151 (2005) 253<strong>–</strong>258<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Note linguistiche alla nuova Saffo. 154 (2005) 33<strong>–</strong>39<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Note esegetiche alla nuova Saffo: i versi di Titono (fr. 58,19<strong>–</strong>22 V.). 159 (2007) 1<strong>–</strong>10 (Corrigendum dazu: 160 (2007) 134)<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Saffo e l’aldilà in P.Köln 21351, 1<strong>–</strong>8. 165 (2008) 21<strong>–</strong>31<br />

BEUTLER, F., Paean, der procurator usiacus, und die Datierung von CIL XIV 2932. 160 (2007) 232<strong>–</strong>234<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein oberpannonisches Militärdiplom aus Carnuntum und der Statthalter L. Sergius Paullus. 172 (2010) 271<strong>–</strong>276<br />

BEUTLER-KRÄNZL, F., Fragment eines Militärdiploms aus Oberpannonien. 141 (2002) 252<strong>–</strong>256<br />

BEVILACQUA, G., Iscrizione inedita dal Foro Romano. 105 (1995) 74<strong>–</strong>76<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Un incantesimo per l’odio in una defixio di Roma. 117 (1997) 291<strong>–</strong>293<br />

BEVILACQUA, G. <strong>–</strong> GIANNOBILE, S., “Magia” rurale siciliana: iscrizioni di Noto e Modica. 133 (2000) 135<strong>–</strong>146<br />

BIANCARDI, M., Per una possibile correzione a CIL III 11918. 140 (2002) 245<strong>–</strong>251<br />

BIELLA, C. M., Una nuova iscrizione falisca di VII sec. a.C.: un sostantivo con tema in -o e genitivo in -i. 168 (2009) 273<strong>–</strong>277<br />

BIJ DE VAATE, A. J., Note on L. Y. Rahmani, A Catalogue of Jewish Ossuaries, nos. 319 and 322. 113 (1996) 187<strong>–</strong>190<br />

BILDERBACK, D. H. <strong>–</strong> POWERS, J. <strong>–</strong> DIMITROVA, N. <strong>–</strong> HUANG, R. <strong>–</strong> SMILGIES, D.-M. <strong>–</strong> CLINTON, K. <strong>–</strong> THORNE, R. E., X-ray Fluorescence<br />

Recovers Writing from Ancient Inscriptions. 152 (2005) 221<strong>–</strong>227<br />

BILES, Z., Eratosthenes on Plato Comicus: Didascaliae or Parabasis? 127 (1999) 182<strong>–</strong>188<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Aristophanes’ Victory Dance: Old Poets in the Parabasis of Knights. 136 (2001) 195<strong>–</strong>200<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Date of Phrynichus’ Lenaian Victory in IG II 2 2325: A Reply to J. Rusten (<strong>ZPE</strong> 157 [2006] 22<strong>–</strong>6). 170 (2009) 17<strong>–</strong>20<br />

BING, P., Medeios of Olynthos, Son of Lampon, and the Iamatika of Posidippus. 140 (2002) 297<strong>–</strong>300<br />

BINGEN, J., Apamée de Syrie, IGLS IV 1319 (392 après J.-C.). 109 (1995) 194<br />

<strong>–</strong>, L’épitaphe I. Louvre Bernand 99 (SB V 7902). 121 (1998) 192<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Le graffito archaïque Péluse 385 C.-M. 130 (2000) 151<br />

<strong>–</strong>, La dédicace I. Fayoum I 4. 130 (2000) 152<strong>–</strong>154<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Un nouvel épistratège et arabarque alexandrin. 138 (2002) 119<strong>–</strong>120<br />

<strong>–</strong>, SpoudastÆw - §pispoudastÆw. 157 (2006) 159<strong>–</strong>161<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Un anthroponyme fantôme: ÑHrãklhow. 163 (2007) 188<strong>–</strong>190<br />

BINSFELD, A., Römische Grabinschrift eines Freigelassenenpaares der Calveni. 151 (2005) 263<strong>–</strong>265<br />

BIRLEY, A. R., Hadrian and Greek Senators. 116 (1997) 209<strong>–</strong>245<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A New Governor of Britain (20 August 127): L. Trebius Germanus. 124 (1998) 243<strong>–</strong>248<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Some Writing-tablets Excavated at Vindolanda in 2001, 2002 and 2003. 170 (2009) 265<strong>–</strong>293<br />

BLANK, D., The Life of Antiochus of Ascalon in Philodemus’ History of the Academy and a Tale of Two Letters. 162 (2007) 87<strong>–</strong>93<br />

BLÄNSDORF, J., „Würmer und Krebs sollen ihn befallen“: Eine neue Fluchtafel aus Groß-Gerau. 161 (2007) 61<strong>–</strong>65<br />

BLÄNSDORF, J. <strong>–</strong> KROPP, A. <strong>–</strong> SCHOLZ, M., „Perverse agas, comodo hoc perverse scriptu(m) est“ <strong>–</strong> ein Fluchtäfelchen aus Köln. 174 (2010) 272<strong>–</strong><br />

276<br />

BLASS, F., Eudoxi ars astronomica qualis in charta Aegyptiaca superest. 115 (1997) 79<strong>–</strong><strong>101</strong><br />

BLOK, J. H. <strong>–</strong> LAMBERT, S. D., The Appointment of Priests in Attic gene. 169 (2009) 95<strong>–</strong>121<br />

BLUM, H., Bemerkungen zu einer Inschrift aus Patara (EMA I Nr. 15). 140 (2002) 93<strong>–</strong>96<br />

BLÜMEL, W. <strong>–</strong> HABICHT, C. <strong>–</strong> BRENNAN, T. C., Ehren für Cn. Domitius Calvinus in Nysa. 169 (2009) 157<strong>–</strong>161<br />

BLÜMEL, W. <strong>–</strong> MERKELBACH, R., Dorisch §nti statt §sti. 112 (1996) 151<strong>–</strong>152<br />

BLUMELL, L. H., Petition to a Beneficiarius from Late Third Century A.D. Oxyrhynchus. 165 (2008) 186<strong>–</strong>190<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Note on the Meaning of the Term monokt¤st(hw). 166 (2008) 22<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P.Vindob. G 42417 (= ∏ 116 ). Codex Fragment of the Epistle to the Hebrews 2:9<strong>–</strong>11 and 3:3<strong>–</strong>6 Reconsidered. 171 (2009) 65<strong>–</strong>69<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Gold Lamella with a Greek Inscription in the Brigham Young University Collection. 177 (2011) 166<strong>–</strong>168<br />

BODEL, J., Chronology and Succession 2: Notes on Some Consular Lists on Stone. 105 (1995) 279<strong>–</strong>296


8 Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff.<br />

BOEDEKER, D., Simonides on Plataea: Narrative Elegy, Mythodic History. 107 (1995) 217<strong>–</strong>229<br />

BOGAERT, R., Liste géographique des banques et des banquiers de l’Égypte romaine, 30 a <strong>–</strong>284. 109 (1995) 133<strong>–</strong>173<br />

<strong>–</strong>, La banque en Égypte byzantine. 116 (1997) 85<strong>–</strong>140<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Liste géographique des banques et des banquiers de l’Égypte ptolémaïque. 120 (1998) 165<strong>–</strong>202<br />

BÖHM, K. B., Ein neues Dokument zur Erhebung der Geldsteuern im Herakleopolites. 163 (2007) 205<strong>–</strong>214<br />

BOIY, T., Early Hellenistic Chronography in Cuneiform Tradition. 138 (2002) 249<strong>–</strong>255<br />

BONAMENTE, M., Due Sexti Valerii duoviri di Vettona. 114 (1996) 197<strong>–</strong>204<br />

BONATI, I., Note testuali a P. Tebt. I 4 (Hom. B 95<strong>–</strong>210). 176 (2011) 1<strong>–</strong>6<br />

BONETTO, J., Nuovo cippo gromatico iscritto dalla centuriazione di Padova nord. 146 (2004) 232<strong>–</strong>236<br />

BONGIOVANNI, R., P.Duk.inv. 4R: Homer, Iliad 22.111<strong>–</strong>149 with Marginalia. 179 (2011) 3<strong>–</strong>10<br />

BONNECHERE, P., Notes Trophoniaques, I: Triptolème, Rhadamanthe, Musée, Eumolpos et Trophonios (P. Corn. 55). 158 (2006) 83<strong>–</strong>87<br />

BORGONOVO, P., Callimaco frr. 238 SH e 571 Pf.: per un aition ‘attico’ di Epops. 110 (1996) 49<strong>–</strong>55<br />

BORGONOVO, P. <strong>–</strong> CAPPELLETTO, P., Callimaco frr. 114 e 115 Pf.: Apollo ‘Poligonale’ e Apollo Delio. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 13<strong>–</strong>17<br />

BORHY, L., Aeternae Quieti Perpetuae Securitati: Ein Sarkophagfund aus Brigetio. 130 (2000) 253<strong>–</strong>256<br />

BORRÉANI, M. <strong>–</strong> AGUSTA-BOULAROT, S., Deux inscriptions religieuses inédites de l’antique territoire d’Aquae Sextiae (Aix-en-Provence). 175<br />

(2010) 265<strong>–</strong>272<br />

BORRÉANI, M. <strong>–</strong> GASCOU, J., Le dieu Roquetius d’après trois inscriptions de Cabasse (Var). 121 (1998) 297<strong>–</strong>299<br />

BORUKHOVICH, V., The God Tychon in a Graffito from the Island of Berezan. 121 (1998) 165<strong>–</strong>166<br />

BOSSI, F., Nota a Hippon. fr. 108 (POxy. 2175,5),10 Dg. 159 (2007) 23<strong>–</strong>24 (Corrigendum dazu: 160 (2007) 134)<br />

BOST-POUDERON, C. <strong>–</strong> SARTRE, M., Un marchand d’épigrammes à Maaga de Batanée (Syrie). 160 (2007) 51<strong>–</strong>58<br />

BOTA, E. <strong>–</strong> CIONGRADI, C. <strong>–</strong> VOIŞIAN, V., Eine Konstitution für die Hilfstruppen von Dacia Porolissensis aus dem Jahr 128 n. Chr. 170 (2009) 207<strong>–</strong><br />

214<br />

BOTER, G. J., The Accentuation of Greek Forms of Latin Names Containing Non-Syllabic -u-. <strong>ZPE</strong> 177 (2011) 254<strong>–</strong>258<br />

BOTEVA, D., Legati Augusti pro praetore Moesiae inferioris A.D. 193<strong>–</strong>217/218. 110 (1996) 239<strong>–</strong>247<br />

<strong>–</strong>, On the cursus honorum of P. Fu... Pontianus (PIR 2 F 496), Provincial Governor of Lower Moesia. 110 (1996) 248<strong>–</strong>252<br />

BOTTERI, P., L’integrazione mommseniana a Res gestae Divi Augusti 34,1 “potitus rerum omnium” e il testo greco. 144 (2003) 261<strong>–</strong>267<br />

BOWERSOCK, G. W. <strong>–</strong> JONES, C. P., A New Inscription from Panticapaeum. 156 (2006) 117<strong>–</strong>128<br />

BOZIA, E. <strong>–</strong> SANGCO, G. <strong>–</strong> WAGMAN, R., A New Dedication by Diogenes and Other Unpublished Inscriptions from Epidauros. 160 (2007) 120<strong>–</strong>122<br />

BRACKMANN, St., Eine Basis für eine Statuette Kaiser Valerians I. 161 (2007) 275<strong>–</strong>276<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein Votivtäfelchen mit einer ungewöhnlichen Weihinschrift für Zeus. 178 (2011) 221<strong>–</strong>222<br />

BRANDL, U., Bemerkungen zu einem Ziegelstempeltyp der Legio XIV Gemina aus der Germania Superior und Carnuntum. 112 (1996) 224<strong>–</strong>228<br />

BRANDT, H., Die Historia Augusta, Philostrat und Asinius Quadratus. 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 78<strong>–</strong>80<br />

BRASHEAR, W. <strong>–</strong> JONES, A., An Astronomical Table Containing Jupiter’s Synodic Phenomena. 125 (1999) 206<strong>–</strong>210<br />

BRAUN, H. E., Mitteilung der Bibliotheca Bodmeriana. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 154<br />

BRAUN, L., Dem Schauspieler auf den Mund geschaut. 133 (2000) 34<br />

BRA<strong>UND</strong>, D., An Inscribed Bowl from the Volga Region: King Artheouazes and Ampsalakos. 102 (<strong>1994</strong>) 310<strong>–</strong>312<br />

<strong>–</strong>, In Search of the Creator of Athens’ Scythian Archer-Police: Speusis and the “Eurymedon Vase”. 156 (2006) 109<strong>–</strong>113<br />

BRAVO, B., Artemidoro di Efeso geografo e retore. Per la costituzione e l’interpretazione del testo del Papiro di Artemidoro. 170 (2009) 43<strong>–</strong>63<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Una tavoletta d’osso da Olbia Pontica della seconda metà del VI secolo a.C. (SEG XXXVI, 694): Apollo di Didyma e la nascita di Olbiē polis. 176<br />

(2011) 99<strong>–</strong>119<br />

van BREMEN, R., A Family from Sillyon. 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 43<strong>–</strong>56<br />

BREMMER, J. N., Myth as Propaganda: Athens and Sparta. 117 (1997) 9<strong>–</strong>17<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Birth of the Term ‘Magic’. 126 (1999) 1<strong>–</strong>12<br />

<strong>–</strong>, How Old is the Ideal of Holiness (of Mind) in the Epidaurian Temple Inscription and the Hippocratic Oath? 141 (2002) 106<strong>–</strong>108<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Spelling and Meaning of the Name Megabyxos. 147 (2004) 9<strong>–</strong>10<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Macedonian Maenad in Posidippus (AB 44). 155 (2006) 37<strong>–</strong>40<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Rise of the Hero Cult and the New Simonides. 158 (2006) 15<strong>–</strong>26<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Rescuing Deio in Sophocles and Euripides. 158 (2006) 27<br />

BRENK, F. E., The ka‹ sÊ stele in the Fitzwilliam Museum, Cambridge. 126 (1999) 169<strong>–</strong>174<br />

BRENNAN, T. C. <strong>–</strong> HABICHT, C. <strong>–</strong> BLÜMEL, W., Ehren für Cn. Domitius Calvinus in Nysa. 169 (2009) 157<strong>–</strong>161<br />

BRENTCHALOFF, D. <strong>–</strong> GASCOU, J., Milliaires des cités de Vence, Castellane, Fréjus. 109 (1995) 245<strong>–</strong>254<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Compléments aux ILN-Fréjus - 2. Fouilles de la cathédrale (1987<strong>–</strong>1988). 155 (2006) 263<strong>–</strong>267<br />

BRICAULT, L., Pour une nouvelle édition de SIRIS. 105 (1995) 154<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Les cultes isiaques en Grèce centrale et occidentale. 119 (1997) 117<strong>–</strong>122<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes d’épigraphie alexandrine et canopique. 126 (1999) 186<strong>–</strong>188<br />

BRINK, C. O., A Bipartite Stemma of Tacitus’ Dialogus de Oratoribus and Some Transmitted Variants. 102 (<strong>1994</strong>) 131<strong>–</strong>152<br />

BRISSAUD, L. <strong>–</strong> RÉMY, B. <strong>–</strong> MATHIEU, N. <strong>–</strong> PRISSET, J.-L., Un service officiel des eaux (cura aquarum) à Vienne? Le témoignage d’un tuyau de<br />

plomb découvert à Saint-Romain-en-Gal (Rhône). 179 (2011) 239<strong>–</strong>243<br />

BRISSON, L., Sky, Sex and Sun. The Meanings of afido›ow/afido›on in the Derveni Papyrus. 144 (2003) 19<strong>–</strong>29<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zeus did not Commit Incest with his Mother. An Interpretation of Column XXVI of the Derveni Papyrus. 168 (2009) 27<strong>–</strong>39<br />

BROCKLISS, W., A Letter to a Business Associate: P. CtYBR inv. 556. 163 (2007) 200<strong>–</strong>204<br />

BRODERSEN, K., Hippokrates und Artaxerxes. Zu P. Oxy. 1184 v , P. Berol. inv. 7094 v und 21137 v + 6934 v . 102 (<strong>1994</strong>) 100<strong>–</strong>110<br />

BROEKAERT, W., “Bread Baskets on the Marketplace”? A Short Note on CIL IX 2854 (ILS 5591). 167 (2008) 204<strong>–</strong>206<br />

BROUX, Y. <strong>–</strong> COUSSEMENT, S. <strong>–</strong> DEPAUW, M., ka‹ …w xrhmat¤zei and the Importance of Naming in Roman Egypt. 174 (2010) 159<strong>–</strong>166<br />

BROWN, C. G., The Big Sleep: Herodas 8.5. 102 (<strong>1994</strong>) 95<strong>–</strong>99 (Corrigendum dazu: 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 22)<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Stele of Mnesagora and Nikochares (CEG 84). 152 (2005) 1<strong>–</strong>5<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Precinct of Zeus and Parmenis’ Immortality (CEG 2.693). 170 (2009) 21<strong>–</strong>27<br />

<strong>–</strong>, To the Ends of the Earth: Sappho on Tithonus. 178 (2011) 21<strong>–</strong>25<br />

BROWNE, G. M., The Epitaph of Bishop Martyrophoros. 111 (1996) 187<strong>–</strong>188<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Tomb of Alyattes? 132 (2000) 172<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ad Varia Nubica V. 139 (2002) 194<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bayer’s Coin of Eucratides. 145 (2003) 212


Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff. 9<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Blemmyica. 148 (2004) 245<strong>–</strong>246<br />

BRUN, J.-P. <strong>–</strong> GASCOU, J., Un grand-prêtre du culte impérial de la province de Narbonnaise. 125 (1999) 261<strong>–</strong>271<br />

BRUN, P., Les ÉAstraioÊsioi du décret d’Aristotélès (IG II 2 43). 121 (1998) 103<strong>–</strong>108<br />

<strong>–</strong>, La datation de IG II 2 404, décret athénien concernant les cités de Kéos. 147 (2004) 72<strong>–</strong>78<br />

BRUN, P. <strong>–</strong> COUVENHES, J.-C., Des chiliarques à Athènes au milieu du IV e siècle? La datation de B. Petrakos, ÑO dÆmow toË ÑRamnoËntow II. Ofl<br />

§pigraf°w, n° 1. 157 (2006) 107<strong>–</strong>115<br />

BRUNET, S., The Date of the First Balbillea at Ephesos. 117 (1997) 137<strong>–</strong>138<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Winning the Olympics without Taking a Fall, Getting Caught in a Waistlock, or Sitting out a Round. 172 (2010) 115<strong>–</strong>124<br />

BRUSCHI, L., Alcmane, fr. 26.64<strong>–</strong>72 C. = 3 D. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 38<strong>–</strong>48<br />

BRUUN, Chr., Zwei Priscillae aus Ostia und der Stammbaum der Egrilii. 102 (<strong>1994</strong>) 215<strong>–</strong>225<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Temple of Mater Matuta in the regio sexta of Rome. 112 (1996) 219<strong>–</strong>223<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ti. Claudius Aegialus e l’acquedotto di Ostia (con altre osservazioni sulle fistule acquarie ostiensi). 122 (1998) 265<strong>–</strong>272<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A New Senator: Codonius Taurus c. v. 165 (2008) 287<strong>–</strong>290<br />

BUBELIS, W. S. <strong>–</strong> RENBERG, G. H., The Epistolary Rhetoric of Zoilos of Aspendos and the Early Cult of Sarapis: Re-reading P.Cair.Zen. I 59034.<br />

<strong>ZPE</strong> 177 (2011) 169<strong>–</strong>200<br />

BUCKING, S., On the Training of Documentary Scribes in Roman, Byzantine, and Early Islamic Egypt: A Contextualized Assessment of the Greek<br />

Evidence. 159 (2007) 229<strong>–</strong>247<br />

BULLOCH, A., Iamus and Narcissus in the Domus Musae. 156 (2006) 135<strong>–</strong>140<br />

BÜLOW-JACOBSEN, A., Stone for Bread. An Early Second-Century Bread-Weight. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 91<strong>–</strong>92<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ghost-Vegetable. A re-edition of SB VI 9610. 110 (1996) 124<strong>–</strong>126<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Cumin or Brooders in KAB? 148 (2004) 241<strong>–</strong>242<br />

<strong>–</strong>, ÑEl°nion, Inula helenium (L.), in the Papyri. 150 (2004) 214<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Infra-red Photography of Ostraca and Papyri. 165 (2008) 175<strong>–</strong>185<br />

BÜLOW-JACOBSEN, A. <strong>–</strong> CUVIGNY, H. <strong>–</strong> WORP, K. A., Litura: éleifãw, not êleifar, and Other Words for ‘erasure’. 130 (2000) 175<strong>–</strong>182<br />

BUNSCH, E. <strong>–</strong> MROZEWICZ, L., C. Sammucius Maior im titulus pictus aus Novae (ILatNovae 38 = IGrLat Novae 57). 165 (2008) 241<strong>–</strong>248<br />

BUONOCORE, M., Per uno studio sulla diffusione degli *Augustales nel mondo romano: l’esempio della regio IV augustea. 108 (1995) 123<strong>–</strong>139<br />

BUONOPANE, A., Statuarius: un nuovo documento epigrafico. 120 (1998) 292<strong>–</strong>294<br />

BUONOPANE, A. <strong>–</strong> ECK, W., Praefect[us ... Caes]aris, nicht praefect[us aerarii milit]aris: Zu CIL V 8845. 102 (<strong>1994</strong>) 195<strong>–</strong>205<br />

BURASELIS, K., Zu Caracallas Strafmaßnahmen in Alexandrien (215/6). Die Frage der Leinenweber in P. Giss. 40 II und der syssitia in Cass. Dio<br />

77(78).23.3. 108 (1995) 166<strong>–</strong>188<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eine Notiz zu Augustus, Caracalla und den syssitia in Cassius Dio 54.2.3 und 77(78).23.3. 124 (1998) 300<br />

BÜRGE, M., Dionysos in einer neuen Stempelinschrift vom Monte Iato? 129 (2000) 84<strong>–</strong>88<br />

BURGESS, R. W., Overlooked Evidence for Grain Prices in Antioch, A.D. 333. 120 (1998) 295<strong>–</strong>298<br />

<strong>–</strong>, ‘Non duo Antonini sed duo Augusti’: The Consuls of 161 and the Origins and Traditions of the Latin Consular Fasti of the Roman Empire. 132 (2000)<br />

259<strong>–</strong>290<br />

BURKERT, W., „Stumm wie ein Menander-Chor“: Ein zusätzliches Testimonium. 131 (2000) 23<strong>–</strong>24<br />

BUSCH, St., Leider keine Göttin. Übersehene Senare aus Dion. 137 (2001) 297<strong>–</strong>304<br />

BUSSI, S., Il prestito triangolare al Mons Claudianus ed il ruolo del kibariãthw. 167 (2008) 153<strong>–</strong>158<br />

BUTERA, C. J. <strong>–</strong> MOFFITT, D. M., P.Duk. inv. 727: A Dispute with “Proselytes” in Egypt. <strong>ZPE</strong> 177 (2011) 201<strong>–</strong>206<br />

BÜYÜKKOLANCI, M. <strong>–</strong> ENGELMANN, H., Inschriften aus Ephesos. 120 (1998) 65<strong>–</strong>82<br />

BÜYÜKKOLANCI, P. <strong>–</strong> GRONEWALD, M. <strong>–</strong> ENGELMANN, H., Grabepigramm auf den Sklaven Hyllos. 169 (2009) 87<strong>–</strong>88 (Corrigendum dazu: 170<br />

(2009) 28; Corrigendum zum Corrigendum: 171 (2009) 70)<br />

BYRNE, S., IG II 2 1095 and the Delia of 98/97 BC. A Document about the Athenian Politician Medeios. 109 (1995) 55<strong>–</strong>61<br />

CABALLOS RUFINO, A., MAS REP 1990/85, otro fragmento de la Lex coloniae Genetiuae Iuliae. 147 (2004) 211<strong>–</strong>216<br />

CABALLOS RUFINO, A. <strong>–</strong> FERNÁNDEZ GÓMEZ, F., Nuevos testimonios andaluces de la legislación municipal flavia. 141 (2002) 261<strong>–</strong>280<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Una ley municipal sobre una tabula aenea corregida y otros bronces epigráficos. 152 (2005) 269<strong>–</strong>293<br />

CACIAGLI, St., Lupi o codardi nell’Heraion di Lesbo. 171 (2009) 216<strong>–</strong>220<br />

CADILI, L., Teone e un’antica lezione pindarica (P. Oxy. 2536, col. I, ll. 4<strong>–</strong>5). 145 (2003) 13<strong>–</strong>18<br />

CADOTTE, A., Frugifer en Afrique du Nord: Épithète divine ou dieu à part entière? 143 (2003) 187<strong>–</strong>200<br />

CAFISSI, A., Una nuova iscrizione greca a ZeÁw Dolixa›ow. 122 (1998) 209<strong>–</strong>210<br />

CAIRNS, F., Epaphroditus, Fainianokor¤oiw and ‘Modestus’ (Suda e 2004). 124 (1998) 218<strong>–</strong>222<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Testimonium to a New Fragment of Philoxenus of Cythera? (Machon 77<strong>–</strong>80 = fr. 9.14<strong>–</strong>17 Gow and Hermesianax fr. 7.69<strong>–</strong>74 Powell). 130 (2000)<br />

9<strong>–</strong>11<br />

<strong>–</strong>, IG XII.9 11: An Inscription of Karystos? 134 (2001) 121<strong>–</strong>136<br />

CALDELLI, M. L., Considerazioni sulla cronologia dei Chrysanthina di Sardis. 109 (1995) 62<strong>–</strong>70<br />

<strong>–</strong>, La titolatura di Plauziano <strong>–</strong> Una messa a punto. 178 (2011) 261<strong>–</strong>272<br />

CALDWELL, R. Ch., Iuga in the Petra Papyri. 144 (2003) 198<strong>–</strong>200<br />

CALIFANO, M. L., Su un’iscrizione funeraria cristiana di Catania. 115 (1997) 261<strong>–</strong>262<br />

CAMERON, A., Avienus or Avienius? 108 (1995) 252<strong>–</strong>262<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Funeral of Junius Bassus. 139 (2002) 288<strong>–</strong>292<br />

CAMIA, F., Il “testamento” di Rebilus e l’epistola di Vinuleius Pataecius ai Tasii. 146 (2004) 265<strong>–</strong>271<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Pietre “erranti”. 155 (2006) 269<strong>–</strong>270<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Lykos, Son of Hermolaos, hiereus heptaeterikos of the Sebastoi. Emperor Worship and Traditional Cults at Thessalian Hypata (SEG 54, 556). 179<br />

(2011) 145<strong>–</strong>154<br />

CAMODECA, G., Una nuova coppia di consoli del 148 e il proconsul Achaiae M. Calpurnius Longus. 112 (1996) 235<strong>–</strong>240<br />

<strong>–</strong>, M. Aemilius Lepidus, cos. 126 a.C., le assegnazioni graccane e la via Aemilia in Hirpinia. 115 (1997) 263<strong>–</strong>270<br />

<strong>–</strong>, I consoli del 43 e gli Antistii Veteres d’età claudia dalla riedizione delle Tabulae Herculanenses. 140 (2002) 227<strong>–</strong>236<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Una inedita THerc. e la corretta lezione di Tacito, Hist. IV 7.2; Cn Sentius Saturninus, cos. 41, damnatus ex S.C. nell 66. 144 (2003) 235<strong>–</strong>241<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Cura secunda della tabula cerata londinese con la compravendita della puella Fortunata. 157 (2006) 225<strong>–</strong>230<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Fufidia Clementiana, c(larissima) p(uella), e i suoi avi consolari in una nuova iscrizione da Teanum dal tempo di M. Aurelio. 179 (2011) 231<strong>–</strong>238<br />

CAMPANELLI, S., Kline e synklitai nel culto di Hypsistos: nota su due iscrizioni del Serapeo di Tessalonica. 160 (2007) 123<strong>–</strong>133<br />

CAMPANILE, D., Sul ritorno in patria di Strabone. 154 (2005) 267<strong>–</strong>268


10 Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff.<br />

CAMPANILE, M. D., Un nuovo asiarca da Milasa. 119 (1997) 243<strong>–</strong>244<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Noterelle ai nuovi documenti da Afrodisia. 135 (2001) 136<strong>–</strong>138<br />

CAMPBELL, V. L., The Epitaph of Aulus Umbricius Scaurus (CIL X 1024): A Reconsideration. 174 (2010) 229<strong>–</strong>236<br />

CAMPOS DAROCA, J. <strong>–</strong> LÓPEZ CRUCES, J. L., The Metre of Cercidas. 102 (<strong>1994</strong>) 81<strong>–</strong>94 (Corrigendum dazu: 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 22)<br />

CANNATÀ FERA, M. <strong>–</strong> PINTAUDI, R., Pindaro, Nem. I 15<strong>–</strong>18, 35<strong>–</strong>42 in un papiro Laurenziano (PL III/310 C). 117 (1997) 197<strong>–</strong>199<br />

CANÓS I VILLENA, I. <strong>–</strong> NÉMETH, G., ORVRIOUY in Vilabertran. 130 (2000) 139<strong>–</strong>142<br />

CAPPELLETTI, L., Il giuramento degli Italici sulle monete del 90 a.C. 127 (1999) 85<strong>–</strong>92<br />

CAPPELLETTO, P. <strong>–</strong> BORGONOVO, P., Callimaco frr. 114 e 115 Pf.: Apollo ‘Poligonale’ e Apollo Delio. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 13<strong>–</strong>17<br />

CAPPONI, L., P. Oxy. IV 786: Conclusion of a Census-Return. 140 (2002) 177<strong>–</strong>180<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Maecenas and Pollio. 140 (2002) <strong>181</strong><strong>–</strong>184<br />

<strong>–</strong>, POxy IV 794: cessione di terreno catecico. 155 (2006) 235<strong>–</strong>238<br />

CAPRA, A. <strong>–</strong> CURTI, M., Semidei Simonidei. Note sull’elegia di Simonide per la battaglia di Platea. 107 (1995) 27<strong>–</strong>32 (Corrigendum dazu: 113 (1996)<br />

248)<br />

CAPRON, L., Nouveaux fragments du Mertens<strong>–</strong>Pack 3 572 (Iliade, chant I): P. Louvre inv. AF 12809. 142 (2003) 3<strong>–</strong>18 (Addendum dazu: 150 (2004)<br />

205<strong>–</strong>206)<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Relecture et identification de O. Berlin P. 19837 = MPER XVIII 218. 150 (2004) 203<strong>–</strong>204<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Déclarations fiscales du temple de Soknopaiou Nêsos: éléments nouveaux. 165 (2008) 133<strong>–</strong>160<br />

CAPRON, L. <strong>–</strong> DUMOULIN, C. <strong>–</strong> FOURNET, J.-L. <strong>–</strong> HUSSON, G., Corrigenda aux P. Reinach II. 150 (2004) 207<strong>–</strong>213<br />

CARANDE, R. <strong>–</strong> BENZINA BEN ABDALLAH, Z. <strong>–</strong> FERNÁNDEZ, C. <strong>–</strong> GÓMEZ PALLARÈS, J. <strong>–</strong> JORBA, N., Carmina Latina Epigraphica Inedita<br />

Ammaedarae. 152 (2005) 89<strong>–</strong>113<br />

CARBONELL MANILS, J. <strong>–</strong> GONZÁLEZ GERMAIN, G., La sylloge epigráfica de Diego de Covarrubias: un nuevo testimonio de epigrafía manuscrita<br />

de la segunda mitad del s. XVI. 172 (2010) 277<strong>–</strong>288<br />

CAREY, C. et al., Fragments of Hyperides’ Against Diondas from the Archimedes Palimpsest. 165 (2008) 1<strong>–</strong>19 (Addendum dazu: 166 (2008) 35<strong>–</strong>36)<br />

DE CARLO, A., Un anonimo praefectus equitum alae Moesicae da Abellinum. 149 (2004) 233<strong>–</strong>239<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Sulla cohors XV urbana e sulla esistenza ancora in epoca tardo-antonina. Nota a CIL X 1127. 170 (2009) 299<strong>–</strong>303<br />

CARLSEN, J., Subvilicus: Subagent or Assistant Bailiff? 132 (2000) 312<strong>–</strong>316<br />

CARRARA, P., Sull’inizio delle Fenicie di Euripide. 102 (<strong>1994</strong>) 43<strong>–</strong>51<br />

CARRARA, S. <strong>–</strong> BÉAL, J.-C., Une inscription inédite d’Optevoz (Isère, France). 119 (1997) 213<strong>–</strong>216<br />

CARRIL, V. R. <strong>–</strong> BARJA DE QUIROGA, P. L., Vicarius en un nuevo altar a Edouius de Caldas de Reis (Pontevedra). 177 (2011) 298<strong>–</strong>302<br />

CARTER, M., A Doctor Secutorum and the Retiarius Draukos from Corinth. 126 (1999) 262<strong>–</strong>268<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Artemidorus and the érbÆlaw Gladiator. 134 (2001) 109<strong>–</strong>115<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Gladiatorial Combat with ‘Sharp’ Weapons (to›w Ùj°si sidÆroiw). 155 (2006) 161<strong>–</strong>175<br />

CARTER, M. J., Blown Call? Diodorus and the Treacherous Summa Rudis. 177 (2011) 63<strong>–</strong>69<br />

CARUSI, C., Nota a P.Worp 57. 168 (2009) 219<strong>–</strong>220<br />

de CARVALHO GOMES, C. H., Xouthias Son of Philakhaios. On IG V.2 159 and its Possible Historical Placement. 108 (1995) 103<strong>–</strong>106<br />

CASARICO, L., Crocodilopolis <strong>–</strong> Ptolemais Euergetis in epoca tolemaica. Addenda et corrigenda. 130 (2000) 207<strong>–</strong>210<br />

CASSIO, A. C., Da Elea a Hipponion e Leontinoi: lingua di Parmenide e testi epigrafici. 113 (1996) 14<strong>–</strong>20<br />

CASTELLANETA, S., Note alla Gerioneide di Stesicoro. 153 (2005) 21<strong>–</strong>42<br />

CATLING, R. W. V. <strong>–</strong> KANAVOU, N., The Gravestone of Meniketes Son of Menestheus: IPrusa 1028 and 1054. 163 (2007) 103<strong>–</strong>117<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Dionysikles Son of Posideos from Teos. 163 (2007) 118<strong>–</strong>120<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Hikesios Son of Lykinos of Kolophon, Victor in the Boys Wrestling at Olympia, and Pausanias VI 17.4. 165 (2008) 109<strong>–</strong>110<br />

CAVALLI, E. <strong>–</strong> ANTONETTI, C., Il fondo epigrafico Petsas presso l’Università Ca’ Foscari Venezia: Iscrizioni di Termo. 280 (<strong>2012</strong>) 173<strong>–</strong>201<br />

CEBRIÁN, R. <strong>–</strong> ABASCAL, J. M., Carthago Nova como caput viae. Dos miliarios de Tiberio de Huelves (Hispania citerior). 162 (2007) 257<strong>–</strong>262<br />

CEBRIÁN, R. <strong>–</strong> ALFÖLDY, G. <strong>–</strong> ABASCAL, J. M., Nuevos monumentos epigráficos del foro de Segobriga. Parte primera: inscripciones votivas,<br />

imperiales y de empleados del Estado romano. 143 (2003) 255<strong>–</strong>274<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nuevos monumentos epigráficos del foro de Segobriga. Parte segunda: inscripciones de dignatarios municipales, fragmentos de naturaleza desconocida,<br />

hallazgos más recientes. 144 (2003) 217<strong>–</strong>234<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Lápida funeraria de M’. Valerius Spantamicus en Segobriga. 168 (2009) 279<strong>–</strong>282<br />

<strong>–</strong>, R(es) p(ublica) S(egobrigensis vel Segobrigensium). 176 (2011) 291<strong>–</strong>294<br />

CEBRIÁN, R. <strong>–</strong> FERNÁNDEZ MARTÍNEZ, C. <strong>–</strong> ABASCAL, J. M. <strong>–</strong> GÓMEZ PALLARÈS, J., Mors mala solvit. Nuevos CLE hallados en Segobriga<br />

(Hispania citerior). 161 (2007) 47<strong>–</strong>60<br />

CECCARELLI, P., Le dithyrambe et la pyrrhique. À propos de la nouvelle liste de vainqueurs aux Dionysies de Cos (Segre, ED 234). 108 (1995) 287<strong>–</strong><br />

305<br />

CHAMBERLAND, G., Remarques sur quatre inscriptions «amphithéâtrales» italiennes. 156 (2006) 284<strong>–</strong>292<br />

CHANDLER, C., A Note on PHerc. <strong>101</strong>8 col. II.5. 106 (1995) 53<strong>–</strong>55<br />

CHAUVEAU, M. <strong>–</strong> CUVIGNY, H., Étiquettes de momies grecques et démotiques de la Bibliothèque nationale. 130 (2000) 183<strong>–</strong>191<br />

CHELOTTI, M. <strong>–</strong> MENNELLA, G., Lettura e riletture epigrafiche nella Regio II. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 159<strong>–</strong>172<br />

CHICOTEAU, M., The “Orphic” Tablets Depicted in a Roman Catacomb (c. 250 AD?). 119 (1997) 81<strong>–</strong>83<br />

CHIRIAC, C. <strong>–</strong> MIHAILESCU-BÎRLIBA, L. <strong>–</strong> MATEI, I., Ein neues Militärdiplom aus Moesien. 150 (2004) 265<strong>–</strong>269<br />

CHOAT, M., Papnouthios in SB I 2266: New Man or New Patron? 133 (2000) 157<strong>–</strong>162<br />

CHOAT, M. <strong>–</strong> BAGNALL, R. <strong>–</strong> GARDNER, I., O. Douch I 40. 147 (2004) 205<strong>–</strong>207<br />

CHOAT, M. <strong>–</strong> GARDNER, I., O. Douch I 49. 143 (2003) 143<strong>–</strong>146<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Lond. Copt. I 1123: Another Letter to Apa Johannes? 156 (2006) 157<strong>–</strong>164<br />

CHOAT, M. <strong>–</strong> GARDNER, I. <strong>–</strong> NOBBS, A., P. Harr. 107: Is this another Greek Manichaean Letter? 131 (2000) 118<strong>–</strong>124<br />

CHRISTOL, M., Sur quelques centurions de la légion IIIa Augusta. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) <strong>181</strong><strong>–</strong>187<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Laticlavius. 135 (2001) 225<strong>–</strong>232<br />

<strong>–</strong>, C(aius) Macrinius Decianus, gouverneur de Numidie, et l’histoire militaire de la province au milieu du III e siècle. 138 (2002) 259<strong>–</strong>269<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Iuridicus per Aemiliam Liguriam. 151 (2005) 215<strong>–</strong>222<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Vir centenarius. 158 (2006) 243<strong>–</strong>250<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Consularis memoriae vir. 163 (2007) 276<strong>–</strong>280<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A propos d’inscriptions latines d’Uthina (Oudhna, Tunisie). 178 (2011) 285<strong>–</strong>299<br />

CHRISTOL, M. <strong>–</strong> AIBÈCHE, Y., Sur une inscription de Mons (Algérie) de l’époque de Marc Aurèle. 158 (2006) 251<strong>–</strong>258


Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff. 11<br />

CHRISTOL, M. <strong>–</strong> JANON, M., Albarinus, dieu indigène dans la cité de Carpentras (Gaule Narbonnaise). 146 (2004) 272<strong>–</strong>278<br />

CIOFFI, R. <strong>–</strong> TRNKA-AMRHEIN, Y., What’s in a Name? Further Similarities between Lollianos’ Phoinikika and Apuleius’ Metamorphoses. 173<br />

(2010) 66<strong>–</strong>68<br />

CIONGRADI, C., Ein neuer Altar für Silvanus aus Dacia Porolissensis. Studien über die arae in Dakien. 157 (2006) 213<strong>–</strong>224<br />

CIONGRADI, C. <strong>–</strong> TIMOFAN, A. <strong>–</strong> BÂRCĂ, V., Eine neue Erwähnung des kastellum Starva in einer Inschrift aus Alburnus maior. Studium zu<br />

epigraphisch bezeugten kastella und vici im dakischen Goldbergwerksgebiet. 165 (2008) 249<strong>–</strong>266<br />

CIONGRADI, C. <strong>–</strong> BOTA, E. <strong>–</strong> VOIŞIAN, V., Eine Konstitution für die Hilfstruppen von Dacia Porolissensis aus dem Jahr 128 n. Chr. 170 (2009) 207<strong>–</strong><br />

214<br />

CIONGRADI, C. <strong>–</strong> ZӐGREANU, R., Ein Militärdiplom aus Gherla für die Truppen von Dacia Porolissensis. 179 (2011) 295<strong>–</strong>298<br />

CLACKSON, J., A Greek Papyrus in Armenian Script. 129 (2000) 223<strong>–</strong>258<br />

<strong>–</strong>, New Readings on the Armeno-Greek Papyrus BnF 332 Arm. 141 (2002) 116<br />

CLARK, M., ka‹ tÚ mØ te¤nein êgan. 108 (1995) 281<strong>–</strong>284<br />

CLARYSSE, W., Greek Accents on Egyptian Names. 119 (1997) 177<strong>–</strong>184<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Souchos and Astarte in Syron Kome. 140 (2002) 201<strong>–</strong>202<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Democratisation of Atticism: Y°lv and §y°lv in Papyri and Inscriptions. 167 (2008) 144<strong>–</strong>148<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes on Papyri. 168 (2009) 243<strong>–</strong>246<br />

CLARYSSE, W. <strong>–</strong> van BEEK, B., Philagris, Perkethaut and Hermoupolis: Three Villages or One? 140 (2002) 195<strong>–</strong>200<br />

CLARYSSE, W. <strong>–</strong> CRISCUOLO, L., Two Petitions in the Archive of Pankrates. 153 (2005) 168<br />

CLARYSSE, W. <strong>–</strong> DEPAUW, M., Greek Registrations in Hawara. 131 (2000) 125<strong>–</strong>128<br />

CLARYSSE, W. <strong>–</strong> HUYS, M., A Verse Inscription from the Temple of Ain Labakha. 113 (1996) 213<strong>–</strong>215<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Soldier’s Epitaph Rescued from the Sea. 143 (2003) 147<strong>–</strong>148<br />

CLARYSSE, W. <strong>–</strong> THOMPSON, D. J., A Ptolemaic Census Declaration from the Alexandria Museum. 140 (2002) 203<strong>–</strong>205<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Two Greek Texts on Skin from Hellenistic Bactria. 159 (2007) 273<strong>–</strong>279<br />

CLAYTOR, W. G., P.Fordham inv. 5: a Ptolemaic Petition to the Archidikastes. 176 (2011) 213<strong>–</strong>220<br />

CLINTON, K. <strong>–</strong> DIMITROVA, N., Dedication of a Statue for the Egyptian God Tithoes. 148 (2004) 207<strong>–</strong>210<br />

CLINTON, K. <strong>–</strong> KARADIMA-MATSA, Ch., Korrane, a Sacred Woman in Samothrace. 138 (2002) 87<strong>–</strong>92<br />

CLINTON, K. <strong>–</strong> POWERS, J. <strong>–</strong> DIMITROVA, N. <strong>–</strong> HUANG, R. <strong>–</strong> SMILGIES, D.-M. <strong>–</strong> BILDERBACK, D. H. <strong>–</strong> THORNE, R. E., X-ray Fluorescence<br />

Recovers Writing from Ancient Inscriptions. 152 (2005) 221<strong>–</strong>227<br />

COLEMAN, K. M., A Left-Handed Gladiator at Pompeii. 114 (1996) 194<strong>–</strong>196<br />

COLIN, F., L’Isis “dynastique” et la Mère des dieux phrygiennes. Essai d’analyse d’un processus d’interaction culturelle. 102 (<strong>1994</strong>) 271<strong>–</strong>295<br />

<strong>–</strong>, De la signification du nom Parãmmvn. 107 (1995) 213<strong>–</strong>216<br />

COLIN, X., Une nouvelle inscription lyonnaise concernant un naute du Rhone. 119 (1997) 217<strong>–</strong>220<br />

COLLARD, Chr., P.Köln XI 431 and its ‘Genre’: a Suggestion. 171 (2009) 9<strong>–</strong>14<br />

COLLINS, A. W., Cleomenes of Naucratis, Heroonpolis, and the Revenue from Red Sea Trade under Alexander the Great. 180 (<strong>2012</strong>) 237<strong>–</strong>242<br />

COLOMBO, M., Correzioni testuali ed esegetiche all’epigrafe di Aurelius Gaius (regione di Kotiaeum in Phrygia). 174 (2010) 118<strong>–</strong>126<br />

COLOMO, D., Herakles and the Eleusinian Mysteries: P. Mil. Vogl. I 20, 18<strong>–</strong>32 Revisited. 148 (2004) 87<strong>–</strong>98<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Euripides’ Ur-Medea between Hypotheseis and Declamation. 176 (2011) 45<strong>–</strong>51<br />

COLOMO, D. <strong>–</strong> PERALE, M., On P.Oxy. LXXVI 5094 fr. 1. <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>) 1<strong>–</strong>3<br />

COLOMO, D. <strong>–</strong> SCHOLL, R., Psalmen und Rechnungen: P. Bonn Inv. 147 + P. Lips. I 97. 153 (2005) 163<strong>–</strong>167<br />

COLORU, O., A Marble Relief Representing the Gladiator Dareios. 175 (2010) 161<strong>–</strong>163 (Corrigendum dazu: 177 (2011) 90)<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Old and New Magical Inscriptions. 176 (2011) 135<strong>–</strong>138<br />

COMFORT, A., Legio IIII Scythica. 138 (2002) 275<strong>–</strong>276<br />

CONRAD, N., Krat›now Pula¤ai in einem D-Scholion zur Ilias. 128 (1999) 44<br />

CONRAD, S. <strong>–</strong> ANGELOV, A. <strong>–</strong> LUPPE, W., Eine Grabinschrift aus Marcianopolis (Moesia inferior). 112 (1996) 102<strong>–</strong>104 (Corrigendum dazu: 113<br />

(1996) 248)<br />

CONTIADES-TSITSONI, E., Euripides Pha. 227<strong>–</strong>244, Tro. 308<strong>–</strong>341, Iph. Aul. 1036<strong>–</strong>1079. 102 (<strong>1994</strong>) 52<strong>–</strong>60<br />

CORCELLA, A., Pollis and the Tattooers. 109 (1995) 47<strong>–</strong>48<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Oxy. 3239: Roma “città di legno”, la parola-fantasma éntikÊriow e qualche ipotesi. 133 (2000) 153<strong>–</strong>156<br />

CORCORAN, S., A Fragment of a Tetrarchic Constitution from Crete. 133 (2000) 251<strong>–</strong>255<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Tetrarchic Inscription from Corcyra and the Edictum de Accusationibus. 141 (2002) 221<strong>–</strong>230<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Heading of Diocletian’s Prices Edict at Stratonicea. 166 (2008) 295<strong>–</strong>302<br />

CORDELLA, R. <strong>–</strong> CRINITI, N., Iscrizioni inedite dall’area umbro-sabina: Amelia <strong>–</strong> Spoleto <strong>–</strong> Trevi <strong>–</strong> Rieti. 164 (2008) 231<strong>–</strong>244<br />

CORELL, J., Drei defixionum tabellae aus Sagunt (Valencia). <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 280<strong>–</strong>286<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Invocada la intervención de Iau en una defixio de Sagunto (Valencia). 130 (2000) 241<strong>–</strong>247<br />

CORFÙ, N. <strong>–</strong> WACHTER, R., Eine böotische Scherbe mit Graffito. 179 (2011) 141<strong>–</strong>144<br />

CORREA, J. A., Susarros (Susarres), ceca visigoda. 138 (2002) 256<strong>–</strong>258<br />

CORSTEN, Th., „Proconsul Graeciae“. 117 (1997) 117<strong>–</strong>122<br />

COSTANZA, S., Melampo, le Pretidi e il xÒlow di Era nel Catalogo esiodeo. 169 (2009) 1<strong>–</strong>14<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Artemide e le Pretidi da Bacchilide (ep. 11) a Callimaco (h. 3, 233<strong>–</strong>236). 172 (2010) 3<strong>–</strong>21<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Melampo in Bacchilide, Pae. 4 Sn.<strong>–</strong>M. (= P. Oxy. III 426), 50<strong>–</strong>53. <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>) 8<strong>–</strong>22<br />

COTTIER, M., A New Customs Receipt from Philadelphia at Philadelphia and the limØn M°mfevw. 161 (2007) 187<strong>–</strong>190<br />

COTTON, H. M., Loan with Hypothec: Another Papyrus from the Cave of Letters? <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 53<strong>–</strong>59<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Archive of Salome Komaise Daughter of Levi: Another Archive from the ‘Cave of Letters’. 105 (1995) 171<strong>–</strong>208<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Courtyard(s) in Ein-Gedi: P. Yadin 11, 19 and 20 of the Babatha Archive. 112 (1996) 197<strong>–</strong>201<br />

<strong>–</strong>, ÑH n°a §parxe¤a ÉArab¤a: The New Province of Arabia in the Papyri from the Judaean Desert. 116 (1997) 204<strong>–</strong>208<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Guardian (§p¤tropow) of a Woman in the Documents from the Judaean Desert. 118 (1997) 267<strong>–</strong>273<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Languages of the Legal and Administrative Documents from the Judaean Desert. 125 (1999) 219<strong>–</strong>231<br />

COTTON, H. M. <strong>–</strong> ECK, W., Ein Statthalter von Syria Palaestina unter Marc Aurel und Lucius Verus in einer Bauinschrift aus Jericho. 127 (1999) 211<strong>–</strong><br />

215<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Murabba‘at 114 und die Anwesenheit römischer Truppen in den Höhlen des Wadi Murabba‘at nach dem Bar Kochba Aufstand. 138 (2002) 173<strong>–</strong><br />

183<br />

COTTON, H. M. <strong>–</strong> GREENFIELD, J. C., Babatha’s Property and the Law of Succession in the Babatha Archive. 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 211<strong>–</strong>224


12 Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff.<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Babatha’s Patria: Maḥoza, Maḥoz ‘Eglatain and Ẓo‘ar. 107 (1995) 126<strong>–</strong>134<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Land Tenure in the Documents from the Nabataean Kingdom and the Roman Province of Arabia. 119 (1997) 255<strong>–</strong>265<br />

COTTON, H. M. <strong>–</strong> PRICE, J. J., A Bilingual Tombstone from Zo‘ar (Arabia). 134 (2001) 277<strong>–</strong>283<br />

COTTON, H. M. <strong>–</strong> di SEGNI, L. <strong>–</strong> ECK, W. <strong>–</strong> ISAAC, B., Corpus Inscriptionum Judaeae/Palaestinae. 127 (1999) 307<strong>–</strong>308<br />

COTTON, H. M. <strong>–</strong> WEISER, W., „Gebt dem Kaiser, was des Kaisers ist . . .“ Die Geldwährungen der Griechen, Juden, Nabatäer und Römer im syrischnabatäischen<br />

Raum. 114 (1996) 237<strong>–</strong>287<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Neues zum „Tyrischen Silbergeld“ herodianischer und römischer Zeit. 139 (2002) 235<strong>–</strong>250<br />

COTTON, H. M. <strong>–</strong> WÖRRLE, M., Seleukos IV to Heliodoros. A New Dossier of Royal Correspondence from Israel. 159 (2007) 191<strong>–</strong>205<br />

COUSSEMENT, S. <strong>–</strong> BROUX, Y. <strong>–</strong> DEPAUW, M., ka‹ …w xrhmat¤zei and the Importance of Naming in Roman Egypt. 174 (2010) 159<strong>–</strong>166<br />

COUVENHES, J.-C. <strong>–</strong> BRUN, P., Des chiliarques à Athènes au milieu du IV e siècle? La datation de B. Petrakos, ÑO dÆmow toË ÑRamnoËntow II. Ofl<br />

§pigraf°w, n° 1. 157 (2006) 107<strong>–</strong>115<br />

COWEY, J. M. S., Remarks on Various Papyri II (SB XIV). <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 79<strong>–</strong>82 (Corrigendum dazu: 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 22)<br />

<strong>–</strong>, New Readings in an Edict of M. Sempronius Liberalis (BGU II 372). 106 (1995) 195<strong>–</strong>199<br />

<strong>–</strong>, VBP II 10 and P. Lond. III 682 Reassembled. 120 (1998) 159<strong>–</strong>162<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Remarks on Various Papyri III. 132 (2000) 241<strong>–</strong>247<br />

<strong>–</strong>, On the Dating of BGU XVIII.1 2747. 136 (2001) 110<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Three Notes on Greek Ostraca. 151 (2005) 159<strong>–</strong>162<br />

COWEY, J. M. S. <strong>–</strong> HAGEDORN, D., VBP IV 71. 118 (1997) 237<strong>–</strong>238<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes on Texts in P. Bingen. 134 (2001) 179<strong>–</strong><strong>181</strong><br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Note on P. Ben. Mus. 1. 135 (2001) 178<br />

COWEY, J. M. S. <strong>–</strong> KAH, D., Bemerkungen zu Texten aus BGU I<strong>–</strong>IV. Teil I: Zensusdeklarationen. 163 (2007) 147<strong>–</strong>182<br />

COWEY, J. M. S. <strong>–</strong> KALTSAS, D., P. Eleph. DAIK 1. 123 (1998) 149<strong>–</strong>150<br />

COX, Ch. A., The Names of Adoptees: Some Prosopographical Afterthoughts. 107 (1995) 249<strong>–</strong>254<br />

CREVATIN, F., Nota a P.Oxy. III, 413. 171 (2009) 199<strong>–</strong>200<br />

CRIBIORE, R., A Hymn to the Nile. 106 (1995) 97<strong>–</strong>106<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Schooltablet from the Hearst Museum. 107 (1995) 263<strong>–</strong>270<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Literary School Exercises. 116 (1997) 53<strong>–</strong>60 (Corrigenda dazu: 117 (1997) 162)<br />

CRINITI, N. <strong>–</strong> CORDELLA, R., Iscrizioni inedite dall’area umbro-sabina: Amelia <strong>–</strong> Spoleto <strong>–</strong> Trevi <strong>–</strong> Rieti. 164 (2008) 231<strong>–</strong>244<br />

CRISCUOLO, L., Filometore a Ptolemais di Cirenaica: a proposito di SEG XLVI,2214. 135 (2001) 264<strong>–</strong>266<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Un cartoccio d’incenso: lettera tra militari in un ostracon torinese. 173 (2010) 205<strong>–</strong>207<br />

CRISCUOLO, L. <strong>–</strong> CLARYSSE, W., Two Petitions in the Archive of Pankrates. 153 (2005) 168<br />

CRISLIP, A., A Coptic Request for Materia Medica. 157 (2006) 165<strong>–</strong>167<br />

CROMWELL, J., Djême Documents in the Bodleian Library, Oxford. 168 (2009) 286<br />

<strong>–</strong>, ÉEn ÙnÒmati toË yeoË toË pantokrãtorow. Variation and Specificity in Christian Invocation Formulae from Jeme. 174 (2010) 151<strong>–</strong>155<br />

CROPP, M. <strong>–</strong> FICK, G., On the Date of the Extant Hippolytus. 154 (2005) 43<strong>–</strong>45<br />

CULASSO GASTALDI, E., Atene onora il re dei Pelagoni (IG II 2 190). 131 (2000) 69<strong>–</strong>79<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Un decreto ateniese di prossenia per tre individui di Iasos (IG II 2 3 + 165). 142 (2003) 109<strong>–</strong>118<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Una bule ateniese a Samos? Per una rilettura di Agora XVI 111. 144 (2003) 111<strong>–</strong>122<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Il canestro di Anteros. Osservazioni in margine a SEG XXXII 216. 162 (2007) 125<strong>–</strong>131<br />

CUNNINGHAM, I. C., Callimachus: A New Word. 150 (2004) 66 (Corrigendum dazu: 152 (2005) 6)<br />

CURBERA, J. B., Two Christian Inscriptions from Sicily. 108 (1995) 100<strong>–</strong><strong>101</strong><br />

<strong>–</strong>, Sabançw and ÉEstaminiçw: New Nouns in -çw. 108 (1995) <strong>101</strong><strong>–</strong>102<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Two Greek Christian Inscriptions from Spain. 110 (1996) 290<strong>–</strong>292<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Curse Tablet from Emporiae (IRC III 175). 110 (1996) 292<strong>–</strong>294<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Venusta and her Owner in Four Curse Tablets from Morgantina, Sicily. 110 (1996) 295<strong>–</strong>297<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Jewish Names from Sicily. 110 (1996) 297<strong>–</strong>300<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Greek Curse Tablets of Emporion. 117 (1997) 90<strong>–</strong>94<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Graecolatina. 118 (1997) 235<strong>–</strong>236<br />

CURBERA, J. <strong>–</strong> JORDAN, D. R., A Lead Curse Tablet in the National Archaeological Museum, Athens. 166 (2008) 135<strong>–</strong>150<br />

CURBERA, J. B. <strong>–</strong> SIERRA DELAGE, M. <strong>–</strong> VELÁZQUEZ, I., A Bilingual Curse Tablet from Barchín del Hoyo (Cuenca, Spain). 125 (1999) 279<strong>–</strong>283<br />

CURCHIN, L. A., The Celtiberian Vocable ‘KAR’ in Two Inscriptions from Central Spain. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 229<strong>–</strong>230<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Chelido’s Bones: A New Tombstone from Tunisia. 110 (1996) 283<strong>–</strong>284<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Milestone of Tiberius from Matalebreras (Spain). 135 (2001) 296<strong>–</strong>298<br />

CURTI, M., L’elmo caduto? Note a Stesicoro, Gerioneide, S15 Davies. 105 (1995) 1<strong>–</strong>5<br />

CURTI, M. <strong>–</strong> CAPRA, A., Semidei Simonidei. Note sull’elegia di Simonide per la battaglia di Platea. 107 (1995) 27<strong>–</strong>32 (Corrigendum dazu: 113 (1996)<br />

248)<br />

CUVIGNY, H., Plèrôma dans l’identification des soldats de marine. 110 (1996) 169<strong>–</strong>173<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Deux pièces d’argenterie hellénistique avec notations pondérales. 147 (2004) 183<strong>–</strong>200<br />

<strong>–</strong>, X¤lvma = musette. 166 (2008) 195<strong>–</strong>198<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Femmes tournantes: remarques sur la prostitution dans les garnisons romaines du désert de Bérénice. 172 (2010) 159<strong>–</strong>166<br />

CUVIGNY, H. <strong>–</strong> BÜLOW-JACOBSEN, A. <strong>–</strong> WORP, K. A., Litura: éleifãw, not êleifar, and Other Words for ‘erasure’. 130 (2000) 175<strong>–</strong>182<br />

CUVIGNY, H. <strong>–</strong> CHAUVEAU, M., Étiquettes de momies grecques et démotiques de la Bibliothèque nationale. 130 (2000) 183<strong>–</strong>191<br />

CUVIGNY, H. <strong>–</strong> VAGENHEIM, G., Un «faux» sur porphyre: avatars et aventures de la stèle de Théra honorant le gymnasiarque Batôn (IG XII 3, 331,<br />

153 av. J.-C.). 151 (2005) 105<strong>–</strong>126<br />

DĄBROWA, E., The Date of the Census of Quirinius and the Chronology of the Governors of the Province of Syria. 178 (2011) 137<strong>–</strong>142<br />

DAHMEN, K., Ein Altar mit Weihung an das kaiserliche Numen und die Iunones aus Krefeld-Gellep. 141 (2002) 298<strong>–</strong>300<br />

DALE, A., Topics in Alcman’s Partheneion. 176 (2011) 24<strong>–</strong>38<br />

DALE, A. <strong>–</strong> ELLIS-EVANS, A., A Cypriot Curser at Mytilene. 179 (2011) 189<strong>–</strong>198<br />

DALLA ROSA, A., Sulle fonti relative alle dispute confinarie nelle province romane. 160 (2007) 235<strong>–</strong>246<br />

DANA, D., Les Daces dans les ostraca du désert oriental de l’Égypte. Morphologie des noms daces. 143 (2003) 166<strong>–</strong>186<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Sur quelques noms fantômes thraces et daces. 154 (2005) 293<strong>–</strong>298<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Les noms de facture thrace dans LGPN IV: les noms fantômes et d’autres corrections. 157 (2006) 127<strong>–</strong>142


Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff. 13<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Inscriptions inédites de Macédoine et de Thrace. 168 (2009) 187<strong>–</strong>195<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Une nouvelle épitaphe grecque tardive de Bulgarie. 174 (2010) 106<strong>–</strong>108<br />

DANA, D. <strong>–</strong> IVANOV, R., Deux épitaphes latines inédites d’Abritus (Mésie Inférieure). Considérations sur le peuplement d’Abritus. <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>) 235<strong>–</strong><br />

244<br />

DANA, M., Lettre sur plomb d’Apatorios à Léanax. Un document archaïque d’Olbia du Pont. 148 (2004) 1<strong>–</strong>14<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Alphabets et exercices scolaires dans deux cités du Pont ouest: Istros et Tyras. 171 (2009) 71<strong>–</strong>82<br />

DANIEL, R. W., Neither Do They Put New Wine in Old Skins. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 61<strong>–</strong>66<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Mime P. Lit. Lond. 97: An Unnoticed Correction. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 303<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Epicharmus in Trier: A Note on the Monnus Mosaic. 114 (1996) 30<strong>–</strong>36<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Toponomastic Mal in P. Nessana 22 and P. Petra Inv. 10. 122 (1998) 195<strong>–</strong>196<br />

<strong>–</strong>, From Work on the Petra Papyri: Arabic on a Greek Ostracon from Roman Egypt and the Name of the Church Father Sozomen. 131 (2000) 173<strong>–</strong>176<br />

(Corrigendum dazu: 132 (2000) 150)<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Some Magical Gems in the British Museum. 142 (2003) 139<strong>–</strong>142<br />

<strong>–</strong>, OfikÒpeda in Xenophon, Diodorus Siculus and Elsewhere. 159 (2007) 61<strong>–</strong>69<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Oxy. XLI 2951 and O. Edfou II 316. 159 (2007) 70<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Palaeography and Gerontology: The Subscriptions of Hermas Son of Ptolemaios. 167 (2008) 151<strong>–</strong>152<br />

DANIEL, R. W. <strong>–</strong> GRONEWALD, M., Ein neuer Sappho-Papyrus. 147 (2004) 1<strong>–</strong>8<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nachtrag zum neuen Sappho-Papyrus. 149 (2004) 1<strong>–</strong>4<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Lyrischer Text (Sappho-Papyrus). 154 (2005) 7<strong>–</strong>12<br />

DANIEL, R. W. <strong>–</strong> RÖMER, C. E. <strong>–</strong> WORP, K. A., Das Gebet zur Handauflegung bei Kranken in P. Barc. 155,19<strong>–</strong>156,5 und P. Kellis I 88. 119 (1997)<br />

128<strong>–</strong>131<br />

DANIEL, R. W. <strong>–</strong> SULIMANI, G., A New Curse Tablet from Jerusalem. 171 (2009) 123<strong>–</strong>128<br />

DANIELEWICZ, J., Posidippus Epigr. 52 Austin<strong>–</strong>Bastianini (P. Mil. Vogl. VIII 309, col. VIII 25<strong>–</strong>30). 151 (2005) 30<strong>–</strong>32<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bacchylides fr. 20A, 12 S.<strong>–</strong>M. and Sappho, P. Köln fr. I<strong>–</strong>II, 12. 155 (2006) 19<strong>–</strong>21<br />

DAREGGI, G., Ancora sul somplesso edilizio di Soueidiè (Baalbek). 125 (1999) 190<strong>–</strong>194<br />

DARIS, S., SB III 6267. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 88<strong>–</strong>90<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Due frammenti di epoca tarda. 120 (1998) 163<strong>–</strong>164<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Tre Ostraca Mediolanensia. 131 (2000) 158<strong>–</strong>160<br />

<strong>–</strong>, I quartieri di Ossirinco: materiali e note. 132 (2000) 211<strong>–</strong>221<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Contabilità privata. 140 (2002) 207<strong>–</strong>209<br />

<strong>–</strong>, I quartieri di Arsinoe: Addenda. 157 (2006) 143<strong>–</strong>146<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Il soldato-giudice: una postilla. 164 (2008) 185<strong>–</strong>190<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Appunti per SB XX 15175. 167 (2008) 159<strong>–</strong>161<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Takona nell’ Ossirinchite. 168 (2009) 247<strong>–</strong>251<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bozza di Comunicazione. 173 (2010) 201<strong>–</strong>203<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Appunti per un verbale di assemblea. 176 (2011) 205<strong>–</strong>212<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Su qualche toponimo dell’Ossirinchite. 180 (<strong>2012</strong>) 263<strong>–</strong>266<br />

DART, C. J. <strong>–</strong> VERVAET, F. J., The Significance of the Naval Triumph in Roman History (260<strong>–</strong>29 BCE). 176 (2011) 267<strong>–</strong>280<br />

DAUBNER, F., Der Fährmann des Statthalters. Zu einer neuen Steininschrift aus Köln. 161 (2007) 277<strong>–</strong>279<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eine époik¤a in einer hellenistischen Inschrift aus Tyros. 168 (2009) 177<strong>–</strong>182<br />

DAVENPORT, C., Iterated Consulships and the Government of Severus Alexander. <strong>ZPE</strong> 177 (2011) 281<strong>–</strong>288<br />

DAVIES, J. K. <strong>–</strong> OLIVER, G. J., The Revision of Athenian Propertied Families. 110 (1996) 306<strong>–</strong>308<br />

DAVIES, M., Euripides Telephus fr. 149 (Austin) and the Folk-Tale Origins of the Teuthranian Expedition. 133 (2000) 7<strong>–</strong>10<br />

DAWSON, S. E., The Egesta Decree IG I 3 11. 112 (1996) 248<strong>–</strong>252<br />

DEBIASI, A., POxy LIII 3698: Eumeli Corinthii fragmentum novum. 143 (2003) 1<strong>–</strong>5<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eumeli Corinthii fragmenta neglecta? 153 (2005) 43<strong>–</strong>58<br />

DE CARLO, A., Novità sul cavaliere beneventano di III sec. C. Caelius C. f. St. Bassaeus Donatus Verzobius. Rilettura di CIL IX 1640 + 1599. 174<br />

(2010) 243<strong>–</strong>247<br />

DECOURT, J.-Cl., Une épigramme funéraire inédite à Nimes. 110 (1996) 65<strong>–</strong>68<br />

DECOURT, J.-Cl. <strong>–</strong> TZIAFALIAS, A., Une liste civique à Crannon: la stèle dite des Ménandridai. 137 (2001) 139<strong>–</strong>152<br />

DEININGER, J., Kaisarion. Bemerkungen zum alexandrinischen Scherznamen für Ptolemaios XV. 131 (2000) 221<strong>–</strong>226<br />

DELATTRE, A., Une liste de propriétés foncières du monastère d’apa Apollô de Baouît. 151 (2005) 163<strong>–</strong>165<br />

DELATTRE, D., En relisant les subscriptiones des PHerc. 1065 et 1427. 109 (1995) 39<strong>–</strong>41<br />

<strong>–</strong>, La reconstruction du livre IV de la Musique de Philodème est-elle matériellement impossible? 117 (1997) 67<strong>–</strong>71<br />

DELATTRE, D. <strong>–</strong> MOREL, P.-M., Du nouveau sur le fr. B 144 D.<strong>–</strong>K. de Démocrite. 121 (1998) 21<strong>–</strong>24<br />

DELIGIANNAKIS, G., A New consularis from the Province Insulae? 169 (2009) 180<strong>–</strong>182<br />

DELL’ORO, F., Zur sprachlichen Bedeutung einer Inschrift für Athena in der Stadt Himera (CEG 392). Das Fehlen der dritten Ersatzdehnung und andere<br />

Merkmale des euböischen Dialekts. 175 (2010) 15<strong>–</strong>19<br />

DELMAIRE, R., Flauius Aetius, delatorum inimicissimus, uindex libertatis, pudoris ultor (CIL VI 41389). 166 (2008) 291<strong>–</strong>294<br />

DELRIEUX, F., Les décrets d’Iasos en l’honneur d’étrangers au début de l’époque hellénistique. Notes sur un essai de classement. 154 (2005) 173<strong>–</strong>180<br />

DELRIEUX, F. <strong>–</strong> PÉBARTHE, Chr., La transaction du plomb de Pech-Maho. 126 (1999) 155<strong>–</strong>161<br />

DEMOUGIN, S. <strong>–</strong> LORIOT, X., D’une Chersonèse à l’autre. 151 (2005) 225<strong>–</strong>234<br />

DEPAUW, M., Controlling the Perfume Monopoly. A Demotic letter in Macquarie referring to a proxy in Duke. 171 (2009) 201<strong>–</strong>208<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Physical Descriptions, Registration and εἰκονίζειν with New Interpretations for P. Par. 65 and P. Oxy. I 34. 176 (2011) 189<strong>–</strong>199<br />

DEPAUW, M. <strong>–</strong> BENNETT, Chr., The Reign of Berenike IV. 160 (2007) 211<strong>–</strong>214<br />

DEPAUW, M. <strong>–</strong> BROUX, Y. <strong>–</strong> COUSSEMENT, S., ka‹ …w xrhmat¤zei and the Importance of Naming in Roman Egypt. 174 (2010) 159<strong>–</strong>166<br />

DEPAUW, M. <strong>–</strong> CLARYSSE, W., Greek Registrations in Hawara. 131 (2000) 125<strong>–</strong>128<br />

DERDA, T., Did the Jews Use the Name of Moses in Antiquity? 115 (1997) 257<strong>–</strong>260<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Jews and the Name of Moses in Antiquity <strong>–</strong> a Reply. 124 (1998) 210<br />

DERKS, T., Vier neue Bronzeinschriften aus Naaldwijk (Niederlande). 173 (2010) 283<strong>–</strong>293<br />

DEROW, P. S. <strong>–</strong> MA, J. T. <strong>–</strong> MEADOWS, A. R., RC 38 (Amyzon) Reconsidered. 109 (1995) 71<strong>–</strong>80<br />

DESCAT, R., La géographie dans les listes des tributs attiques: Lepsimandos et Kasôlaba en Carie. 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 61<strong>–</strong>68


14 Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff.<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Autour de la tombe d’Hékatomnos. Nouvelle lecture d’une inscription de Mylasa. 178 (2011) 195<strong>–</strong>202<br />

DESHOURS, N., Cultes de Déméter, d’Artémis Ortheia et culte impérial à Messène (1 er s. av. notre ère <strong>–</strong> 1 er s. de notre ère). 146 (2004) 115<strong>–</strong>127<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Les institutions civiques de Messène à l’époque hellénistique tardive. 150 (2004) 134<strong>–</strong>146<br />

DESTAEBLER, P. <strong>–</strong> SKOUNTAKIS, M. <strong>–</strong> PETROVIC, A., Two New Honorific Epigrams for Pollion, a Governor from Aphrodisias. 172 (2010) 38<strong>–</strong>42<br />

DETTORI, E., Fr. com. adesp. 1146 (Comoedia Dukiana) 37 K.<strong>–</strong>A. e phgÒw. 115 (1997) 75<strong>–</strong>78<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Annotazioni sulla defixio di Tiriolo. 119 (1997) 132<strong>–</strong>134<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Trag. adesp. *120c K.<strong>–</strong>Sn. (bag≈tAn). 153 (2005) 75<strong>–</strong>82<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Gãmorow: una occorrenza “fantasma”. 157 (2006) 41<strong>–</strong>42<br />

DEVIJVER, H., A New Roman Auxiliary Cohort in Egypt? P. Egypt. Mus. inv. S. R. 3055. 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 69<strong>–</strong>72<br />

DI BARI, M. F., Dobree o Dindorf? Sulla paternità di un emendamento ad Ar. Thesm. 1203. 174 (2010) 33<strong>–</strong>36<br />

DI BENEDETTO, V., Osservazioni sul nuovo papiro di Saffo. 149 (2004) 5<strong>–</strong>6<br />

<strong>–</strong>, La nuova Saffo e dintorni. 153 (2005) 7<strong>–</strong>20<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Il tetrastico di Saffo e tre postille. 155 (2006) 5<strong>–</strong>18<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Una proposta di soluzione per Saffo fr. 31.17 V. 175 (2010) 1<strong>–</strong>2<br />

DI GIUSEPPE, H., Un Romanius sacerdos evergete a Bantia. Contributi epigrafici e archeologici alla storia della città. 169 (2009) 231<strong>–</strong>244<br />

DI MARCO, M., Un epigramma-indovinello su tavoletta cerata (T. British Museum inv. 29527 = P.Lond. Lit. 63 = Pack 2 1765 = LDAB 5055). 169<br />

(2009) 84<strong>–</strong>86<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Meropes nel Phoinikides di Stratone comico. 174 (2010) 37<strong>–</strong>43<br />

DI NINO, M. M., Primavera ‘purpurea’ e quotidianità infranta (Posidipp. P. Mil. Vogl. VIII 309 col. VIII 19<strong>–</strong>24 = 51 A.<strong>–</strong>B.). 146 (2004) 36<strong>–</strong>38<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Archeanax’s Shipwreck (Posidipp. 90 A.<strong>–</strong>B.). 152 (2005) 9<strong>–</strong>10<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Tra aretalogia e gioco letterario: l’ottava sezione del P. Mil. Vogl. VIII 309. 155 (2006) 26<strong>–</strong>36<br />

DI STEFANO MANZELLA, I., Accensi velati consulibus apparentes ad sacra: Proposta per la soluzione di un problema dibattuto. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 261<strong>–</strong>279<br />

<strong>–</strong>, C. Iulius Africanus eques Romanus, orator, dominus figlinarum? 111 (1996) 211<strong>–</strong>217<br />

<strong>–</strong>, “Furcula Falisca”. Una soluzione per l’enigmatica epigrafe latina rupestre CIL XI 3161. 111 (1996) 218<strong>–</strong>225<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A proposito di signacula: la tarda et neglegens subscriptio libellorum. Una forma (ex aere?) di Commodus. 173 (2010) 267<strong>–</strong>277<br />

DÍAZ ARIÑO, B., Glandes inscriptae de la Península Ibérica. 153 (2005) 219<strong>–</strong>236<br />

<strong>–</strong>, C. Memmius, gobernador de la Hispania Ulterior. 157 (2006) 231<strong>–</strong>236<br />

DÍAZ ARIÑO, B. <strong>–</strong> ANTOLINOS MARIN, J. A., Una inscripción funeraria republicana procedente de Los Beatos (Cartagena, Murcia). 179 (2011) 291<strong>–</strong><br />

294<br />

DICKEY, E., Latin Influence on the Greek of Documentary Papyri: an Analysis of its Chronological Distribution. 145 (2003) 249<strong>–</strong>257<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Creation of Latin Teaching Materials in Antiquity. A Re-interpretation of P.Sorb. inv. 2069. 175 (2010) 188<strong>–</strong>208<br />

DICKEY, E. <strong>–</strong> BAGNALL, R. S., SB XIV 11273: No Vocative. 146 (2004) 170<strong>–</strong>172<br />

DICKEY, E. <strong>–</strong> FERRI, R., A New Edition of the Latin-Greek Glossary on P.Sorb. inv. 2069 (verso). 175 (2010) 177<strong>–</strong>187<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A New Edition of the Colloquium Harleianum Fragment in P.Prag. 2.118. 180 (<strong>2012</strong>) 127<strong>–</strong>132<br />

DICKIE, M. W., The Dionysiac Mysteries in Pella. 109 (1995) 81<strong>–</strong>86<br />

DIETHART, J., Lexikographische Lesefrüchte. Bemerkungen zu „Liddell<strong>–</strong>Scott“: „revised supplement“ 1996. 123 (1998) 165<strong>–</strong>176<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Drei Papyri aus der Papyrussammlung der Österreichischen Nationalbibliothek zur Realienkunde und Lexikographie. 127 (1999) 163<strong>–</strong>166<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Lexikographische Lesefrüchte II. Weitere Bemerkungen zu „Liddell-Scott“: „Revised Supplement“ 1996. 128 (1999) 177<strong>–</strong>182<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nochmals Ùfe¤lv + Infinitiv. 140 (2002) 154<br />

DIETHART, J. M. <strong>–</strong> HASITZKA, M., Eine ungewöhnliche koptische Schreibhelferformel in P.Gen. IV 189 und Korrekturen zum griechischen und<br />

koptischen Teil der Urkunde. <strong>ZPE</strong> 177 (2011) 237<strong>–</strong>239<br />

DIGGLE, J., Sophocles, Ichneutae (fr. 314 Radt). 112 (1996) 3<strong>–</strong>17<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Two Notes on Eur. Bacchae (64 and 370). 180 (<strong>2012</strong>) 48<br />

DIGNAS, B., ‘Inventories’ or ‘Offering Lists’? Assessing the Wealth of Apollo Didymaeus. 138 (2002) 235<strong>–</strong>244<br />

DIJKSTRA, J. H. F., A Cult of Isis at Philae after Justinian? Reconsidering P. Cair. Masp. I 67004. 146 (2004) 137<strong>–</strong>154<br />

DIJKSTRA, J. H. F. <strong>–</strong> WORP, K. A., The Administrative Position of Omboi and Syene in Late Antiquity. 155 (2006) 183<strong>–</strong>187<br />

DILLERY, J., The First Egyptian Narrative History: Manetho and Greek Historiography. 127 (1999) 93<strong>–</strong>116<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Manetho and Udjahorresne: Designing Royal Names for non-Egyptian Pharaohs. 144 (2003) 201<strong>–</strong>202<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Alexander’s Tomb at “Rhacotis”: Ps. Callisth. 3.34.5 and the Oracle of the Potter. 148 (2004) 253<strong>–</strong>258<br />

DILLEY, P., Dipinti in Late Antiquity and Shenoute’s Monastic Federation: Text and Image in the Paintings of the Red Monastery. 165 (2008) 111<strong>–</strong>128<br />

DILLON, M. P. J., The Didactic Nature of the Epidaurian Iamata. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 239<strong>–</strong>260 (Corrigendum dazu: 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 22)<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Lakedaimonian Dedication to Olympian Zeus: The Date of Meiggs & Lewis 22 (SEG 11, 1203a). 107 (1995) 60<strong>–</strong>68<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Ecology of the Greek Sanctuary. 118 (1997) 113<strong>–</strong>127<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Homeric Pun from Abu Simbel (Meiggs & Lewis 7a). 118 (1997) 128<strong>–</strong>130<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Post-nuptial Sacrifices on Kos (Segre, ED 178) and Ancient Greek Marriage Rites. 124 (1998) 63<strong>–</strong>80<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Was Kleisthenes or Pleisthenes Archon at Athens in 525 BC? 155 (2006) 91<strong>–</strong>107<br />

DIMITROVA, N., A Latin Epitaph from the Johnson Museum, Cornell University. 144 (2003) 208<strong>–</strong>210<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Addenda to Some Documents from Lemnos. 148 (2004) 211<strong>–</strong>212<br />

DIMITROVA, N. <strong>–</strong> CLINTON, K., Dedication of a Statue for the Egyptian God Tithoes. 148 (2004) 207<strong>–</strong>210<br />

DIMITROVA, N. <strong>–</strong> MATSAS, D., New Samothracian Inscriptions Found Outside the Sanctuary of the Great Gods. 155 (2006) 127<strong>–</strong>136<br />

DIMITROVA, N. <strong>–</strong> POWERS, J. <strong>–</strong> HUANG, R. <strong>–</strong> SMILGIES, D.-M. <strong>–</strong> BILDERBACK, D. H. <strong>–</strong> CLINTON, K. <strong>–</strong> THORNE, R. E., X-ray Fluorescence<br />

Recovers Writing from Ancient Inscriptions. 152 (2005) 221<strong>–</strong>227<br />

DIMITROVA, N. <strong>–</strong> SHARANKOV, N., A New Greek Word in a Mason’s Graffito from Thrace. 143 (2003) 201<strong>–</strong>204<br />

DISE Jr., R. L., The Beneficiarii Procuratoris of Celeia and the Development of the Statio Network. 113 (1996) 286<strong>–</strong>292<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Trajan, the Antonines, and the Governor’s Staff. 116 (1997) 273<strong>–</strong>283<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Variation in Roman Administrative Practice: The Assignments of Beneficiarii Consularis. 116 (1997) 284<strong>–</strong>299<br />

DIX, T. K. <strong>–</strong> ANDERSON, C. A., Politics and State Religion in the Delian League: Athena and Apollo in the Eteocarpathian Decree. 117 (1997) 129<strong>–</strong><br />

132<br />

DIXON, M. D., IG IV 2 .1.75+ and the Date of the Arbitration between Epidauros and Hermion. 137 (2001) 169<strong>–</strong>173<br />

DMITRIEV, S. V., On I. Priene 82.15<strong>–</strong>21. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 115<strong>–</strong>116<br />

DOHNICHT, M. <strong>–</strong> HEIL, M., Ein Legat Sullas in Messenien. 147 (2004) 235<strong>–</strong>242<br />

DOLBEAU, F., Un témoignage inconnu contre des Manichéens d’Afrique. 150 (2004) 225<strong>–</strong>232


Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff. 15<br />

DOLENZ, H., Zwei römische Grabtituli aus der Ostnekropole von Caesarea in Mauretanien (Cherchel/DZ). 137 (2001) 260<strong>–</strong>262<br />

DONDIN-PAYRE, M., Une nouvelle épitaphe d’Argentomagus (I er s.). 129 (2000) 311<strong>–</strong>314<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Un nouveau document sur des Sergii affranchis. 140 (2002) 284<strong>–</strong>286<br />

DÖPP, S., Das Stegreifgedicht des Q. Sulpicius Maximus. 114 (1996) 99<strong>–</strong>114<br />

DORANDI, T., Corrigenda Stoica. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 24 (Corrigendum dazu: 102 (<strong>1994</strong>) 262)<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Prolegomeni per una edizione dei frammenti di Antigono Caristo. III. 106 (1995) 61<strong>–</strong>90<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Chartae Latinae Antiquiores. 106 (1995) 91<strong>–</strong>93<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Un papiro ercolanese a Leiden. 109 (1995) 35<strong>–</strong>38<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Gaio bambino. 111 (1996) 41<strong>–</strong>42<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Papiri latini documentari. Un aggiornamento. 111 (1996) 193<strong>–</strong>198<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Chiarificazione. 125 (1999) 74<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Supplemento ai Supplementi al Catalogo dei Papiri Ercolanesi. 135 (2001) 45<strong>–</strong>49<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Note sulla tradizione e sul testo del poema di Aristotele in onore di Ermia di Atarneo. 161 (2007) 21<strong>–</strong>26<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Dig. 32, 52, 4<strong>–</strong>6. 172 (2010) 51<strong>–</strong>54<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Solon fr. 24 G.<strong>–</strong>P. 2 = 26 W. 2 <strong>ZPE</strong> 177 (2011) 21<strong>–</strong>22<br />

DÖSSEL, A., Einige Bemerkungen zum „Gesetz gegen Tyrannis und Oligarchie“ aus Eretria, 4. Jahrhundert v. Chr. 161 (2007) 115<strong>–</strong>124<br />

DRÄGER, P., Ein Brief Wilamowitzens an Mommsen über das Monumentum Ancyranum. 164 (2008) 75<strong>–</strong>80<br />

DRAGO, A. T., Sofrone 4d K.<strong>–</strong>A. = 4d Hordern. <strong>ZPE</strong> 177 (2011) 30<strong>–</strong>34<br />

DREYER, B., Der Beginn der Freiheitsphase Athens 287 v. Chr. und das Datum der Panathenäen und Ptolemaia im Kalliasdekret. 111 (1996) 45<strong>–</strong>67<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Pãppow LukoËrgow ı nomoy°thw. 121 (1998) 33<strong>–</strong>34<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zum ersten Diadochenkrieg. Der Göteborger Arrian-Palimpsest (ms Graec 1). 125 (1999) 39<strong>–</strong>60<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Roms Ostpolitik, Athen und der Beginn der Neustil-Silberprägung. 129 (2000) 77<strong>–</strong>83<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Die Thrasykrates-Rede bei Polybius (11,4<strong>–</strong>6) und die Bezeichnung der „Opfer“ im römisch-aitolischen Vertrag von 212 v. Chr. Zur inhaltlichen<br />

Ergänzung der Inschrift von Thyrrheion (Akarnanien) IG IX 1 2 , 2 Nr. 241 = StVA III 536 vor der sog. Klausel a. 140 (2002) 33<strong>–</strong>39<br />

DREYER, B. <strong>–</strong> AYBEK, S., Neues vom proconsul Asiae Sempronius Senecio aus Apollonia am Rhyndakos. 173 (2010) 119<strong>–</strong>123<br />

DREYER, B. <strong>–</strong> ENGELMANN, H., Augustus und Germanicus im ionischen Metropolis. 158 (2006) 173<strong>–</strong>182<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Neue Dokumente zum Kult des Ares in Metropolis. 168 (2009) 161<strong>–</strong>176<br />

DREW-BEAR, Th. <strong>–</strong> SCHEID, J., La copie des Res Gestae d’Antioche de Pisidie. 154 (2005) 217<strong>–</strong>260<br />

DÜHRSEN, N. C., De Diogenis Laertii cod. N falso laudato. 110 (1996) 63<strong>–</strong>64<br />

DUMOULIN, C. <strong>–</strong> HUSSON, G., Quelques lettres privées de la collection Théodore Reinach. 129 (2000) 215<strong>–</strong>222<br />

DUMOULIN, C. <strong>–</strong> CAPRON, L. <strong>–</strong> FOURNET, J.-L. <strong>–</strong> HUSSON, G., Corrigenda aux P. Reinach II. 150 (2004) 207<strong>–</strong>213<br />

DUNN, F. M., Tampering with the Calendar. 123 (1998) 213<strong>–</strong>231<br />

DUPLOUY, A., Un nouveau fragment de décret hellénistique de Colophon-sur-Mer. <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>) 76<strong>–</strong>78<br />

DURAN, M., Nikias et Ion, fabricants de céramique à Rhodé. 128 (1999) 107<strong>–</strong>114<br />

DURAN, M. <strong>–</strong> MASSÓ, J., Ein neuer griechischer Grabstein im spätrömischen Tarraco. 140 (2002) 64<strong>–</strong>66<br />

DURBEC, Y., La rhétorique apollinienne chez Callimaque, Aitia, fr. 75, 22<strong>–</strong>37. 151 (2005) 49<strong>–</strong>50<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Callimaque, Aitia fr. 260 A SH: une nouvelle interprétation. 157 (2006) 43<strong>–</strong>45<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Trois notes de philologie. 160 (2007) 33<strong>–</strong>36<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Une note sur Posidippe, Épigr. 82,6 A.<strong>–</strong>B. 164 (2008) 28<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Callimaque, Iambe I 3<strong>–</strong>4 et Ovide, Ibis 1<strong>–</strong>6. 173 (2010) 25<strong>–</strong>26<br />

DUŠANIČ, S., Fragment of a Severan Auxiliary Diploma: Notes on a Variety of the “Two-Province” Diplomata. 122 (1998) 219<strong>–</strong>228<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Attic-Chian Alliance (IG II 2 34) and the ‘Troubles in Greece’ of the Late 380’s BC. 133 (2000) 21<strong>–</strong>30<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Diploma for the Lower Pannonian auxilia of the Early 140’s. 135 (2001) 209<strong>–</strong>219<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Asinius Maximus in AD 253. 144 (2003) 254<strong>–</strong>260<br />

DUTTENHÖFER, R., Korrekturen zu Ostraka aus Elephantine/Syene. 147 (2004) 180<strong>–</strong>182<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Korrekturen zu Ostraka aus Elephantine/Syene II. 157 (2006) 147<strong>–</strong>158<br />

EBERT, J., Das Grabepigramm für den Hopliten Pollis. 112 (1996) 66<br />

ECK, W., Prosopographica. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 227<strong>–</strong>232<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Prosopographica II: 1. Zur Laufbahn des C. Pontius Paelignus. 2. Lucilius Capito oder Cn. Vergilius Capito auf Cos? 106 (1995) 249<strong>–</strong>254<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein neues Militärdiplom für die misenische Flotte und Severus Alexanders Rechtsstellung im J. 221/222. 108 (1995) 15<strong>–</strong>34<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Senatorische Familien der Kaiserzeit in der Provinz Sizilien. 113 (1996) 109<strong>–</strong>128<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zu lateinischen Inschriften aus Caesarea in Iudaea/Syria Palaestina. 113 (1996) 129<strong>–</strong>143<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zu kleinasiatischen Inschriften (Ephesos; Museum Bursa). 117 (1997) 107<strong>–</strong>116<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Probleme der Konsularfasten. 118 (1997) 275<strong>–</strong>280<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein Prokuratorenpaar von Syria Palaestina in P. Berol. 21652. 123 (1998) 249<strong>–</strong>255<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Kaiserliche Imperatorenakklamation und ornamenta triumphalia. 124 (1998) 223<strong>–</strong>227<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zu Inschriften von Prokuratoren. 124 (1998) 228<strong>–</strong>241<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Miscellanea Epigraphica. 127 (1999) 193<strong>–</strong>204<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Prosopographica III. 127 (1999) 205<strong>–</strong>210<br />

<strong>–</strong>, M. Gavius Crispus Numisius Iunior als Prokonsul von Lycia-Pamphylia in einer Inschrift aus Perge. 131 (2000) 251<strong>–</strong>257<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bronzeinschriften von Ehrendenkmälern aus Rom. 133 (2000) 275<strong>–</strong>282<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Prosopographische Bemerkungen zum Militärdiplom vom 20. 12. 202 n. Chr. Der Flottenpräfekt Aemilius Sullectinus und das Gentilnomen des<br />

Usurpators Regalianus. 139 (2002) 208<strong>–</strong>210<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zum Zeitpunkt des Wechsels der tribunicia potestas des Philippus Arabs und anderer Kaiser. 140 (2002) 257<strong>–</strong>261<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eine Bürgerrechtskonstitution Vespasians aus dem Jahr 71 n. Chr. und die Aushebung von brittonischen Auxiliareinheiten. 143 (2003) 220<strong>–</strong>228<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eine weitere Kopie der domitianischen Bürgerrechtskonstitution für die Truppen Syriens vom 7. Nov. 88. 143 (2003) 229<strong>–</strong>233<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Suffektkonsuln der Jahre 132<strong>–</strong>134 und Hadrians Rückkehr nach Rom im Jahr 132. 143 (2003) 234<strong>–</strong>242<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Prosopographische Klärungen zu Statthaltern von Syria Palaestina. 155 (2006) 253<strong>–</strong>256<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zwei lateinische Grabinschriften, wohl aus Ostia und Rom. 163 (2007) 252<strong>–</strong>254<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Die Benennung von römischen Amtsträgern und politisch-militärisch-administrativen Funktionen bei Flavius Iosephus <strong>–</strong> Probleme der korrekten<br />

Identifizierung. 166 (2008) 218<strong>–</strong>226<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Die Bauinschrift der neronischen Thermen in Patara. Zur methodischen Auswertung einer partiell eradierten Inschrift. 166 (2008) 269<strong>–</strong>275


16 Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff.<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Revision lateinischer Inschriften aus Jerusalem. 169 (2009) 213<strong>–</strong>229<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eine Rasur auf einer Statuenbasis aus Jerusalem. Nachtrag zu CIL III 6641 = 12080a und <strong>ZPE</strong> 169, 2009, 215 f. 173 (2010) 219<strong>–</strong>222<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zu alten und neuen Inschriften aus Caesarea Maritima. Vorarbeiten für den 2. Band des CIIP. 174 (2010) 169<strong>–</strong>184<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein Altar aus Caesarea Maritima und ein neues Dokument für den nordsyrischen Gott Turmasgade. 174 (2010) 185<strong>–</strong>188<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Neue Zeugnisse zu zwei bekannten kaiserlichen Bürgerrechtskonstitutionen. 177 (2011) 263<strong>–</strong>271<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Longitudo pedes XXXII <strong>–</strong> latitudo pedes XXXII. Zu einer rätselhaften Inschrift aus Caesarea Maritima. 177 (2011) 272<strong>–</strong>274<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zwei Diplome für Rätien und Thrakien. 178 (2011) 247<strong>–</strong>251<br />

ECK, W. <strong>–</strong> BUONOPANE, A., Praefect[us --- Caes]aris, nicht praefect[us aerarii milit]aris: Zu CIL V 8845. 102 (<strong>1994</strong>) 195<strong>–</strong>205<br />

ECK, W. <strong>–</strong> COTTON, H. M., Ein Statthalter von Syria Palaestina unter Marc Aurel und Lucius Verus in einer Bauinschrift aus Jericho. 127 (1999) 211<strong>–</strong><br />

215<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Murabba‘at 114 und die Anwesenheit römischer Truppen in den Höhlen des Wadi Murabba‘at nach dem Bar Kochba Aufstand. 138 (2002) 173<strong>–</strong><br />

183<br />

ECK, W. <strong>–</strong> COTTON, H. M. <strong>–</strong> di SEGNI, L. <strong>–</strong> ISAAC, B., Corpus Inscriptionum Judaeae/Palaestinae. 127 (1999) 307<strong>–</strong>308<br />

ECK, W. <strong>–</strong> EICH, P., Ein neues römisches bronzenes signaculum aus Yavneh-Yam (Israel). 171 (2009) 253<strong>–</strong>260<br />

ECK, W. <strong>–</strong> HOLDER, P. <strong>–</strong> PANGERL, A., A Diploma for the Army of Britain in 132 and Hadrian’s Return to Rome from the East. 174 (2010) 189<strong>–</strong>200<br />

ECK, W. <strong>–</strong> İŞKAN-IŞIK, H. <strong>–</strong> ENGELMANN, H., Der Leuchtturm von Patara und Sex. Marcius Priscus als Statthalter der Provinz Lycia von Nero bis<br />

Vespasian. 164 (2008) 91<strong>–</strong>121<br />

ECK, W. <strong>–</strong> IVANOV, R., C. Iulius Victor, senatorischer Legat von Moesia inferior unter Valerianus und Gallienus und das Kastell Sostra-Siosta. 170<br />

(2009) 191<strong>–</strong>200<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zwei Votivinschriften aus Ratiaria in der Provinz Moesia superior. 174 (2010) 201<strong>–</strong>205<br />

ECK, W. <strong>–</strong> LOBÜSCHER, Th., Ein neuer Stadtplan der Colonia Ulpia Traiana Dacica Sarmizegetusa. 137 (2001) 263<strong>–</strong>269<br />

ECK, W. <strong>–</strong> MACDONALD, D. <strong>–</strong> PANGERL, A., Neue Militärdiplome für Truppen in Italien: Legio II Adiutrix, Flotten und Prätorianer. 139 (2002)<br />

195<strong>–</strong>207<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein weiteres Diplom aus der Konstitution des Antoninus Pius für die Truppen von Moesia superior vom 23. April 157. 165 (2008) 237<strong>–</strong>239<br />

ECK, W. <strong>–</strong> NAVARRO, F. J., Das Ehrenmonument der Colonia Carthago für L. Minicius Natalis Quadronius Verus in seiner Heimatstadt Barcino. 123<br />

(1998) 237<strong>–</strong>248<br />

ECK, W. <strong>–</strong> PANGERL, A., Sex. Iulius Frontinus als Legat des niedergermanischen Heeres. Zu neuen Militärdiplomen in den germanischen Provinzen.<br />

143 (2003) 205<strong>–</strong>219<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Neue Diplome für Heere von Germania superior und Germania inferior. 148 (2004) 259<strong>–</strong>268<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eine Bürgerrechtskonstitution für zwei Veteranen des kappadokischen Heeres. Zur Häufigkeit von Bürgerrechtskonstitutionen für Auxiliarsoldaten.<br />

150 (2004) 233<strong>–</strong>241<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zwei Konstitutionen für die Truppen Niedermösiens vom 9. September 97. 151 (2005) 185<strong>–</strong>192<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Neue Konsulndaten in neuen Diplomen. 152 (2005) 229<strong>–</strong>262<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Neue Militärdiplome für die Truppen der mauretanischen Provinzen. 153 (2005) 187<strong>–</strong>206<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Die Konstitution für die classis Misenensis aus dem Jahr 160 und der Krieg gegen Bar Kochba unter Hadrian. 155 (2006) 239<strong>–</strong>252<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zur Herstellung der diplomata militaria: Tinte auf einem Diplom des Titus für Noricum. 157 (2006) <strong>181</strong><strong>–</strong>184<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eine Konstitution für die Truppen von Syria Palaestina aus dem Jahr 158. 157 (2006) 185<strong>–</strong>191<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eine Konstitution für die Hilfstruppen von Syria Palaestina vom 6. Februar 158 n. Chr. 159 (2007) 283<strong>–</strong>290<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A., Neue Diplome für die Hilfstruppen von Britannia. 162 (2007) 223<strong>–</strong>234<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Weitere Militärdiplome für die mauretanischen Provinzen. 162 (2007) 235<strong>–</strong>247<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Neue Diplome für Flotten in Italien. 163 (2007) 217<strong>–</strong>232<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eine Konstitution für die Truppen der Provinz Dalmatien unter Nerva. 163 (2007) 233<strong>–</strong>238<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Titus Flavius Norbanus, praefectus praetorio Domitians, als Statthalter Rätiens in einem neuen Militärdiplom. 163 (2007) 239<strong>–</strong>251<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nochmals: „Vater, Mutter, Schwestern, Brüder ...“. 165 (2008) 213<strong>–</strong>218<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eine Konstitution für die Auxiliartruppen Syriens unter dem Statthalter Cornelius Nigrinus aus dem Jahr 93. 165 (2008) 219<strong>–</strong>226<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Das erste Diplom für die Flotte von Britannien aus dem Jahr 93 n. Chr. 165 (2008) 227<strong>–</strong>231<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein Diplom für einen Soldaten der classis Moesica vom 20. August 127 n. Chr. 165 (2008) 232<strong>–</strong>236<br />

<strong>–</strong>, „Vater, Mutter, Schwestern, Brüder ...“: 3. Akt. 166 (2008) 276<strong>–</strong>284<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein Diplom für die Auxiliartruppen von Pannonia inferior vom 5. September 152 n. Chr. 171 (2009) 221<strong>–</strong>230<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eine neue Bürgerrechtskonstitution für die Truppen von Pannonia inferior aus dem Jahr 162 mit einem neuen Konsulnpaar. 173 (2010) 223<strong>–</strong>236<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein weiteres Diplom der Konstitution Vespasians für die Truppen Mösiens vom 7. Februar 78 n. Chr. 173 (2010) 237<strong>–</strong>243<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Sex. Iulius Severus, cos. suff. 126, und seine Militärdiplome (PA 456). 175 (2010) 247<strong>–</strong>257<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Diplome für das Heer in Dakien. 176 (2011) 221<strong>–</strong>233<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Diplome für Prätorianersoldaten aus der Herrschaftszeit der Philippi. 176 (2011) 243<strong>–</strong>261<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Drei Konstitutionen im Jahr 123 für Truppen von Dacia Porolissensis unter dem Präsidialprokurator Livius Gratus. 176 (2011) 234<strong>–</strong>242<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Verdienste um Kaiser und Reich? Zu einem Diplom aus der Regierungszeit Nervas mit dem Statthalter Iulius C[andidus Marius Celsus]. <strong>ZPE</strong> 177<br />

(2011) 259<strong>–</strong>262<br />

<strong>–</strong>, L. Minicius Natalis in einem weiteren Militärdiplom für Pannonia superior. 180 (<strong>2012</strong>) 287<strong>–</strong>294<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein weiteres Diplom aus einer Konstitution für die Truppen von Moesia inferior vom 14. August 99 n. Chr. 180 (<strong>2012</strong>) 295<strong>–</strong>301<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eine Konstitution für die Truppen von Dacia superior aus dem Jahr 142 mit der Sonderformel für Kinder von Auxiliaren. <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>) 173<strong>–</strong>182<br />

<strong>–</strong>. Ein M. Ulpius Marcellus als praefectus classis Ravennatis in einem Diplom des Jahres 119 n. Chr. <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>) 202<strong>–</strong>206<br />

ECK, W. <strong>–</strong> ROXAN, M. M., A Diploma of Moesia Inferior: 125 Iun. 1. 116 (1997) 193<strong>–</strong>203<br />

ECK, W. <strong>–</strong> VEEN, CH., Epigraphische Bronzefragmente aus Nijmegen. 175 (2010) 241<strong>–</strong>246<br />

ECK, W. <strong>–</strong> WACHTEL, K., Die Prosopographia Imperii Romani im Internet. 125 (1999) 232<br />

ECK, W. <strong>–</strong> WEISS, P., Tusidius Campester, cos. suff. unter Antoninus Pius, und die Fasti Ostienses der Jahre 141/142 n. Chr. 134 (2001) 251<strong>–</strong>260<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Die Sonderregelungen für Soldatenkinder seit Antoninus Pius. Ein niederpannonisches Militärdiplom vom 11. Aug. 146. 135 (2001) 195<strong>–</strong>208<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eine Konstitution für die Truppen Iudaeas aus dem Jahr 87. 170 (2009) 201<strong>–</strong>206<br />

ECKERMAN, Chr., TÚ bÒlimon in the Lease Inscriptions of the Klytidai. 154 (2005) 183<strong>–</strong>189<br />

ECKERMAN, Ch. C., Teasing and Pleasing in Archilochus’ ‘First Cologne Epode’. 179 (2011) 11<strong>–</strong>19<br />

EDM<strong>UND</strong>S, L., The New Sappho: ¶fanto (9). 156 (2006) 23<strong>–</strong>26<br />

EDWARDS, M. J., The Naming of the Naassenes: Hippolytus, Refutatio V.6<strong>–</strong>10 as hieros logos. 112 (1996) 74<strong>–</strong>80<br />

EHLING, K., Kaiser Julian, der Senat und die Stadt Rom. 137 (2001) 292<strong>–</strong>296


Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff. 17<br />

EHMIG, U., Die Auswirkungen der Pest in antoninischer Zeit. 122 (1998) 206<strong>–</strong>208<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein hölzerner militärischer Besitzeranhänger aus Mainz. 153 (2005) 237<strong>–</strong>240<br />

EHMIG, U. <strong>–</strong> HAENSCH, R., Lateinische Inschriften aus Albanien: Nampame, Murcis und ihre Verwandten. 179 (2011) 279<strong>–</strong>290<br />

EICH, A., Probleme der staatlichen Einheit in der griechischen Antike. 149 (2004) 83<strong>–</strong>102<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Überlegungen zur juristischen und sozialen Bewertung der Fälschung öffentlicher Urkunden während der späten Republik und der Kaiserzeit. 166<br />

(2008) 227<strong>–</strong>246<br />

EICH, P. <strong>–</strong> ECK, W., Ein neues römisches bronzenes signaculum aus Yavneh-Yam (Israel). 171 (2009) 253<strong>–</strong>260<br />

EIDINOW, E., An Inscription in the Basement of the Ashmolean Museum, Oxford. 156 (2006) 114<strong>–</strong>116<br />

EILERS, C., C. Sentius Saturninus, Piso Pontifex, and the titulus Tiburtinus: A Reply. 110 (1996) 207<strong>–</strong>226<br />

<strong>–</strong>, C. Poppaeus Sabinus and the Salvation of the Greeks. 134 (2001) 284<strong>–</strong>286<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Forgery, Dishonesty, and Incompetence in Josephus’ Acta: The Decree of Athens (AJ 14. 149<strong>–</strong>155). 166 (2008) 211<strong>–</strong>217<br />

ELLIOTT, J. M., A New Mime-Fragment (P. Col. Inv. 546 A). 145 (2003) 60<strong>–</strong>66<br />

ELLIS-EVANS, A. <strong>–</strong> DALE, A., A Cypriot Curser at Mytilene. 179 (2011) 189<strong>–</strong>198<br />

ELLIS JONES, J. <strong>–</strong> LAMBERT, S. D., Two Security Horoi from an Ore-washery at Agrileza, Southern Attica. 125 (1999) 131<strong>–</strong>136<br />

ELMAYER, A. F., A New Latino-Punic Inscription from the Tripolitanian Hinterland. 156 (2006) 265<strong>–</strong>266<br />

ELMAYER, A. F. <strong>–</strong> MAEHLER, H., A Boundary Inscription from Roman Cyrenaica. 164 (2008) 136<strong>–</strong>138<br />

EMMEL, S., Greek Biblical Papyri in the Beinecke Library. 112 (1996) 289<strong>–</strong>294<br />

ENGELMANN, H., Konzilsakten und Grabungsbericht (Zur Marienkirche in Ephesos). 102 (<strong>1994</strong>) 185<strong>–</strong>188<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zum Opisthodom des ephesischen Artemisions. 102 (<strong>1994</strong>) 188<strong>–</strong>190<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ephesos und die Johannesakten. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 297<strong>–</strong>302<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Philostrat und Ephesos. 108 (1995) 77<strong>–</strong>87<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Das Grab des Androklos und ein Olympieion (Pausanias VII 2,9). 112 (1996) 131<strong>–</strong>133<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Der ephesische Hafen in einer koptischen Erzählung. 112 (1996) 134<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eine Victoria Caesaris und das Parthermonument (IvE 721). 113 (1996) 91<strong>–</strong>93<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Phylen und Chiliastyen von Ephesos. 113 (1996) 94<strong>–</strong>100<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Der Koressos, ein ephesisches Stadtviertel. 115 (1997) 131<strong>–</strong>135<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Artemis Protothronia. 117 (1997) 18<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Inschriften aus Metropolis. 125 (1999) 137<strong>–</strong>146<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notizen zu ephesischen Inschriften. 126 (1999) 163<strong>–</strong>168<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Asiarchs. 132 (2000) 173<strong>–</strong>175<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Das epigraphische Depot in Selçuk. 136 (2001) 85<strong>–</strong>104<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Marcus Agrippa in Patara (SEG 44, 1208) . 146 (2004) 129<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eine Marginalie in einer Inschrift (TAM II 905, XVIII G). 146 (2004) 130<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zum Stadion von Ephesos (IvE 2113). 149 (2004) 71<strong>–</strong>72<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Opramoas als Archiphylax (TAM II 3, 905). 152 (2005) 121<strong>–</strong>124<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Archiereus und Lykiarch (zu TAM II 1, 175). 154 (2005) <strong>181</strong><strong>–</strong>182<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zur Lykiarchie. 158 (2006) 183<strong>–</strong>186<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Folgekosten einer Stiftung (TAM II 905; Dokument Nr. 18). 160 (2007) 76<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Statthalter, Erzpriester und Gesandte (TAM II 3, 905; Dokument Nr. 15). 161 (2007) 66<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Dekret und Protokoll im Opramoas-Dossier (TAM II 3, 905). 170 (2009) 99<strong>–</strong>103<br />

ENGELMANN, H. <strong>–</strong> BÜYÜKKOLANCI, M., Inschriften aus Ephesos. 120 (1998) 65<strong>–</strong>82<br />

ENGELMANN, H. <strong>–</strong> BÜYÜKKOLANCI, P. <strong>–</strong> GRONEWALD, M., Grabepigramm auf den Sklaven Hyllos. 169 (2009) 87<strong>–</strong>88 (Corrigendum dazu: 170<br />

(2009) 28; Corrigendum zum Corrigendum: 171 (2009) 70)<br />

ENGELMANN, H. <strong>–</strong> DREYER, B., Augustus und Germanicus im ionischen Metropolis. 158 (2006) 173<strong>–</strong>182<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Neue Dokumente zum Kult des Ares in Metropolis. 168 (2009) 161<strong>–</strong>176<br />

ENGELMANN, H. <strong>–</strong> IÇTEN, Ç., Inschriften aus Ephesos und Metropolis. 108 (1995) 88<strong>–</strong>94<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Inschriften aus Ephesos und Kolophon. 120 (1998) 83<strong>–</strong>91<br />

ENGELMANN, H. <strong>–</strong> İŞKAN-IŞIK, H. <strong>–</strong> ECK, W., Der Leuchtturm von Patara und Sex. Marcius Priscus als Statthalter der Provinz Lycia von Nero bis<br />

Vespasian. 164 (2008) 91<strong>–</strong>121<br />

ENGELMANN, H. <strong>–</strong> KARWIESE, St., Zwei ephesische Münzmeister. 130 (2000) 155<strong>–</strong>157<br />

ENGELS, J., Das athenische Getreidesteuer-Gesetz des Agyrrhios und angebliche ‚sozialstaatliche‘ Ziele in den Maßnahmen zur Getreideversorgung<br />

spätklassischer und hellenistischer Poleis. 132 (2000) 97<strong>–</strong>124<br />

ENSTE, S., Qumran-Fragment 7Q5 ist nicht Markus 6,52<strong>–</strong>53. 126 (1999) 189<strong>–</strong>194<br />

EPSTEIN, S., Why Did Attic Building Projects Employ Free Laborers Rather than Slaves? 166 (2008) 108<strong>–</strong>112<br />

ERCOLES, M. <strong>–</strong> FIORENTINI, L., Giocasta tra Stesicoro (PMGF 222(b)) ed Euripide (Fenicie). 179 (2011) 21<strong>–</strong>34<br />

ERKELENZ, D., Ehrenmonumente des L. Minicius Natalis in Rom und Africa. 123 (1998) 257<strong>–</strong>269<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Patria, civis, condecurio <strong>–</strong> Zur Identifizierung der Herkunft von Rittern und Senatoren in der Römischen Kaiserzeit. 137 (2001) 271<strong>–</strong>279<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ara pro salute und statua honoraria <strong>–</strong> Überlegungen zur epigraphischen Praxis und Überlieferung in den Grenzprovinzen des Römischen Reiches.<br />

143 (2003) 287<strong>–</strong>294<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Varia epigraphica. 143 (2003) 295<strong>–</strong>305<br />

<strong>–</strong>, (K)ein Ehrenbogen für L. Egnatius Victor Lollianus in Ephesos? 146 (2004) <strong>101</strong><strong>–</strong>104<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Das Kreuz mit den Abkürzungen oder Das letzte „Opfer“ des Severus Alexander. 158 (2006) 240<strong>–</strong>242<br />

ERSKINE, A., Delos, Aeneas and IG XI.4.756. 117 (1997) 133<strong>–</strong>136<br />

ESPLUGA, X., Primeras notas sobre el manuscrito epigráfico 858 de la Biblioteca de la Universidad de Barcelona, tradicionalmente atribuido a Antonio<br />

Agustín. 151 (2005) 269<strong>–</strong>277<br />

<strong>–</strong>, First History of a Forged Inscription (CIL II 149*): A Joke about Cyriacus of Ancona by Francesco Contarini (1450 circa). 176 (2011) 295<strong>–</strong>300<br />

ESPOSITO, E., P. Oxy. XVII 2087 e una citazione dal Per‹ dikaiosÊnhw di Aristotele. 154 (2005) 79<strong>–</strong>85<br />

ETCHETO, H., Des Scipions plébéiens: l’origine familiale du tribun de la plèbe P. Cornelius Scipio (Orestinus). 174 (2010) 241<strong>–</strong>242<br />

EVANS, T. V., A Note on boulÆ in P. Col. Zen. I 10. 145 (2003) 246<strong>–</strong>248<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Valedictory ¶rrvso in Zenon Archive Letters from Hierokles. 153 (2005) 155<strong>–</strong>158<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Counting Chickens in PSI VI 569. 173 (2010) 191<strong>–</strong>200<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Optative at PMichZen 36. 3. 179 (2011) 218<strong>–</strong>220


18 Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff.<br />

FACELLA, M., Twin Peaks: On a New Royal Hellenistic Coin from the Auction Market. 178 (2011) 223<strong>–</strong>235<br />

FAGAN, G. G., Gifts of gymnasia: A Test Case for Reading Quasi-technical Jargon in Latin Inscriptions. 124 (1998) 263<strong>–</strong>275<br />

FANTUZZI, M., Sugli epp. 37 e 74 Austin<strong>–</strong>Bastianini del P. Mil. Vogl. VIII 309. 146 (2004) 31<strong>–</strong>35<br />

FANTUZZI, M. <strong>–</strong> MALTOMINI, F., Ancora magia in Teocrito (VII 103<strong>–</strong>114). 114 (1996) 27<strong>–</strong>29<br />

FARAGUNA, M., Legislazione e scrittura nella Grecia arcaica e classica. 177 (2011) 1<strong>–</strong>20<br />

FARAONE, Chr. A., New Light on Ancient Greek Exorcisms of the Wandering Womb. 144 (2003) 189<strong>–</strong>197<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes on Four Inscribed Magical Gemstones. 160 (2007) 158<strong>–</strong>159<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes on Some Greek Amulets. 172 (2010) 213<strong>–</strong>219<br />

FARAONE, Chr. A. <strong>–</strong> RIFE, J. L., A Greek Curse against a Thief from the Koutsongila Cemetery at Roman Kenchreai. 160 (2007) 141<strong>–</strong>157<br />

FARHI, Y., Roman Imperial Lead Sealing from Ramat Raḥel Excavations. 170 (2009) 295<strong>–</strong>298<br />

FASSINO, M., Contributi alla ricostruzione del commentario alcaico P. Oxy. 2306 e del fr. 208a V. 113 (1996) 7<strong>–</strong>13<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Revisione di P. Stras. W.G. 304<strong>–</strong>307: nuovi frammenti della Medea e di un’altra tragedia di Euripide. 127 (1999) 1<strong>–</strong>46<br />

FAULKNER, A., The Homeric Hymn to Dionysus: P. Oxy. 670. 172 (2010) 1<strong>–</strong>2<br />

FAURE, P., Les symboles des centuries légionnaires. 165 (2008) 293<strong>–</strong>303<br />

<strong>–</strong>, De Rome à Salone: T. Flavius Lucilius, cavalier de la garde impériale. 172 (2010) 223<strong>–</strong>238<br />

FAURE, P. <strong>–</strong> BERTRANDY, F. <strong>–</strong> SERRALONGUE, J., Un monument funéraire de prétorien récemment découvert à Annecy (Haute-Savoie). 146<br />

(2004) 259<strong>–</strong>264<br />

FAVUZZI, A., Ancora su Caracalla e i syssitia degli Alessandrini. 121 (1998) 251<strong>–</strong>256<br />

FEIG VISHNIA, R., The transitio ad plebem of C. Servilius Geminus. 114 (1996) 289<strong>–</strong>298<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Shadow Army <strong>–</strong> The Lixae and the Roman Legions. 139 (2002) 265<strong>–</strong>272<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Case of “Bad Press”? Gaius Flaminius in Ancient Historiography. <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>) 27<strong>–</strong>45<br />

FEISSEL, D., Un fragment palestinien de la constitution d’Anastase sur l’administration militaire du diocèse d’Orient. 173 (2010) 125<strong>–</strong>129<br />

FELL, M., Konkordanz zu den frühen griechischen Gesetzestexten. 118 (1997) 183<strong>–</strong>196<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Neue Inschriften aus Palairos. 137 (2001) 125<strong>–</strong>138<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Neue Inschriften aus Palairos II. 174 (2010) 89<strong>–</strong>105<br />

FELLE, A. E., Due nuove iscrizioni runiche dalla catacomba romana ad duas lauros. 149 (2004) 205<strong>–</strong>212<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Una novità epigrafica beneventana. 173 (2010) 278<strong>–</strong>282<br />

FERJANČIĆ, S. <strong>–</strong> PELCER, O. <strong>–</strong> BABIĆ, M., New Inscriptions from Pannonia and Dalmatia. 169 (2009) 245<strong>–</strong>248<br />

FERNÁNDEZ, C. <strong>–</strong> BENZINA BEN ABDALLAH, Z. <strong>–</strong> CARANDE, R. <strong>–</strong> GÓMEZ PALLARÈS, J. <strong>–</strong> JORBA, N., Carmina Latina Epigraphica Inedita<br />

Ammaedarae. 152 (2005) 89<strong>–</strong>113<br />

FERNÁNDEZ DELGADO, J. A. <strong>–</strong> PORDOMINGO, F., PMilVogl I 20: bocetos de progymnásmata. 167 (2008) 167<strong>–</strong>192<br />

FERNÁNDEZ GÓMEZ, F. <strong>–</strong> CABALLOS RUFINO, A., Nuevos testimonios andaluces de la legislación municipal flavia. 141 (2002) 261<strong>–</strong>280<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Una ley municipal sobre una tabula aenea corregida y otros bronces epigráficos. 152 (2005) 269<strong>–</strong>293<br />

FERNÁNDEZ MARTÍNEZ, C. <strong>–</strong> ABASCAL, J. M. <strong>–</strong> GÓMEZ PALLARÈS, J. <strong>–</strong> CEBRIÁN, R., Mors mala solvit. Nuevos CLE hallados en Segobriga<br />

(Hispania citerior). 161 (2007) 47<strong>–</strong>60<br />

FERRARI, F., P. Oxy. 3331 e Vita Aesopi 18. 107 (1995) 296<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Menandrea. 121 (1998) 49<strong>–</strong>51<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Note al testo delle colonne II<strong>–</strong>VII del papiro di Derveni. 162 (2007) 203<strong>–</strong>211<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Rites without Frontiers: Magi and Mystae in the Derveni Papyrus. 179 (2011) 71<strong>–</strong>83<br />

FERRARI, F. <strong>–</strong> PONTANI, F., Alcaeus’ Grandfathers: A Note on fr. 6, ll. 17<strong>–</strong>20 V. 113 (1996) 1<strong>–</strong>4<br />

FERRARI, F. <strong>–</strong> PRAUSCELLO, L., Demeter Chthonia and the Mountain Mother in a New Gold Tablet from Magoula Mati. 162 (2007) 193<strong>–</strong>202<br />

FERREIRO, A., Veremundu R(eg)e: Revisiting an Inscription from San Salvador de Vairão (Portugal). 116 (1997) 263<strong>–</strong>272<br />

FERRI, R., New Evidence on the Meaning of =vmaistÆw in IG XI.2 133: ‘Actor of Latin Comedies’? 166 (2008) 155<strong>–</strong>158<br />

FERRI, R. <strong>–</strong> DICKEY, E., A New Edition of the Latin-Greek Glossary on P.Sorb. inv. 2069 (verso). 175 (2010) 177<strong>–</strong>187<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A New Edition of the Colloquium Harleianum Fragment in P.Prag. 2.118. 180 (<strong>2012</strong>) 127<strong>–</strong>132<br />

FEZZI, L., Una nuova tabula dei privilegi per i soldati e i veterani. 163 (2007) 269<strong>–</strong>275<br />

FICK, G. <strong>–</strong> CROPP, M., On the Date of the Extant Hippolytus. 154 (2005) 43<strong>–</strong>45<br />

FIGUEIRA, T. J. <strong>–</strong> WALLACE, M. B.(†), Notes on the Island phoros. 172 (2010) 65<strong>–</strong>69<br />

FIKHMAN, I. F., Sur quelques aspects socio-économiques de l’activité des corporations professionelles de l’Égypte byzantine. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 19<strong>–</strong>40<br />

FINGLASS, P. J., Erinys or Hundred-hander? Pindar, fr. 52i(a).19<strong>–</strong>21 Snell<strong>–</strong>Maehler = B3.25<strong>–</strong>7 Rutherford (Paean 8a). 154 (2005) 40<strong>–</strong>42<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Epicharmus’ Monkey. 180 (<strong>2012</strong>) 51<strong>–</strong>52<br />

FIORENTINI, L. <strong>–</strong> ERCOLES, M., Giocasta tra Stesicoro (PMGF 222(b)) ed Euripide (Fenicie). 179 (2011) 21<strong>–</strong>34<br />

FISCHER, Chr., Retour sur SB XX 14070: Les affaires de la famille d’un vétéran dans le nome arsinoïte. 155 (2006) 200<strong>–</strong>206<br />

FISH, J., A Plus-verse from the Odyssey in PHerc. 1507, Philodemus’ On the Good King According to Homer. 159 (2007) 73<strong>–</strong>80 (Corrigendum dazu:<br />

160 (2007) 134)<br />

FISHER, B. J. <strong>–</strong> OLESON, J. P. <strong>–</strong> REEVES, M. B., New Dedicatory Inscriptions from Humayma (Ancient Hawara), Jordan. 140 (2002) 103<strong>–</strong>121<br />

FISHWICK, D., Flavian Regulations at the Sanctuary of the Three Gauls. 124 (1998) 249<strong>–</strong>260<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Municipal Decree at Tarraco. 126 (1999) 291<strong>–</strong>295<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Extravagant Honours at Mellaria. 128 (1999) 283<strong>–</strong>292<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Career of C. Titius Antonius Peculiaris. 130 (2000) 257<strong>–</strong>260<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Numinibus Domus Divinae. 159 (2007) 293<strong>–</strong>296<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Cn. Piso pater and the numen Divi Augusti. 159 (2007) 297<strong>–</strong>300<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Numen Augustum. 160 (2007) 247<strong>–</strong>255<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Agrippa and the Ara Providentiae at Rome. 174 (2010) 251<strong>–</strong>258<br />

<strong>–</strong>, L. Cornelius L. f. Bocchus and the Office of [curator templi Divi] Augusti. 178 (2011) 252<strong>–</strong>254<br />

FLAMENT, Chr., Considérations sur les coins monétaires mentionnés dans les inventaires du 4 e s. 150 (2004) 149<strong>–</strong>154<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Autour d’IG I 3 375. Étude des finances athéniennes au sortir de la première révolution oligarchique. 158 (2006) 165<strong>–</strong>172<br />

FLEISCHER, K., Die Teilung von P. Oxy. III 448. 172 (2010) 201<strong>–</strong>202<br />

FLINTERMAN, J.-J., The Date of Lucian’s Visit to Abonuteichos. 119 (1997) 280<strong>–</strong>282<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Pannucome Revisited. Lines 11<strong>–</strong>13 of the Laodice Inscription Again. <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>) 79<strong>–</strong>87<br />

FONTANI, E., I Vedii di Efeso nel II secolo d.C. 110 (1996) 227<strong>–</strong>237<br />

FORSELV, I. L., A Petition to the Royal Scribe Horos of the Arsinoite Nome (P. Mich. Inv. 6956). 139 (2002) 189<strong>–</strong>193


Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff. 19<br />

FORTSON, B. W. <strong>–</strong> POTTER, D. S., A Fragmentary Early Republican Public Inscription from Gabii. 178 (2011) 255<strong>–</strong>260<br />

FORTUNA, St., Due osservazioni al testo di P. Lit. Lond. 97 (= Cunningham, p. 54 s.). 147 (2004) 154<br />

FOSS, C., The Sellarioi and Other Officers of Persian Egypt. 138 (2002) 169<strong>–</strong>172<br />

FOUNTOULAKIS, A., âV pareÒn[tew in Herondas 8.61. 131 (2000) 27<strong>–</strong>28<br />

FOURNET, J.-L., Quelques remarques sur des inscriptions grecques des Kellia (Égypte) récemment éditées. 117 (1997) 163<strong>–</strong>166<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Révision du P. Rein. II 107. Un papyrus de Syène de moins, un étalon monétaire de plus. 117 (1997) 167<strong>–</strong>170<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Un témoin passé inaperçu de l’Ad Demonicum du Pseudo-Isocrate dans le Codex Glazier. 135 (2001) 150<strong>–</strong>152<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Reddite quae sunt Horionis Horioni. 139 (2002) 138<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Encore Akoris. 142 (2003) 189<strong>–</strong>196<br />

FOURNET, J.-L. <strong>–</strong> CAPRON, L. <strong>–</strong> DUMOULIN, C. <strong>–</strong> HUSSON, G., Corrigenda aux P. Reinach II. 150 (2004) 207<strong>–</strong>213<br />

FOURNET, J.-L. <strong>–</strong> GASCOU, J., À propos de PSI IX 1061 descr.: Le nom du saunier et une formation méconnue d’anthroponymes féminins. 135 (2001)<br />

139<strong>–</strong>149<br />

FOWLER, D. H., Further Arithmetical Tables. 105 (1995) 225<strong>–</strong>228<br />

FOWLER, R. L., Alkman PMGF 1.45: A Reprise. 109 (1995) 1<strong>–</strong>4<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Oxy. 4458: Poseidonios. 132 (2000) 133<strong>–</strong>142<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Euripides Bacchae 135<strong>–</strong>42. 158 (2006) 43<strong>–</strong>48<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Paul Maas’s Athenaeus. 172 (2010) 55<strong>–</strong>64<br />

FRANCE, J., Three Papyri from Theadelpheia in Gent. 123 (1998) 135<strong>–</strong>144<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Michigan Papyrus Reconsidered. 124 (1998) 205<strong>–</strong>209<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Un dispensator [f(isci) k(astrensis)?] des trois Augustes dans le port romain de Toulon (Telo Martius). 125 (1999) 272<strong>–</strong>276<br />

FRANCE, J. <strong>–</strong> MAURIN, L., Une liste comptable sur plomb découverte à Bordeaux. 170 (2009) 247<strong>–</strong>264<br />

FRANGOULAKI, P. <strong>–</strong> KOZIRAKIS, V., Two Notes on Texts in BKT IX. 172 (2010) 199<strong>–</strong>200<br />

FREEMAN, Ph., CIL I 2 365 and Faliscan Language Survival. 140 (2002) 252<br />

FREI-STOLBA, R. <strong>–</strong> ABERSON, M., Un fragment de table de bronze inscrite découvert dans l’église Saint-Sylvestre à Compesières (GE): indice d’un<br />

document officiel important? 172 (2010) 267<strong>–</strong>270<br />

FREI-STOLBA, R. <strong>–</strong> LIEB, H., Un diplôme civil: le fragment de Carnuntum (AE, 1999, 1250). 143 (2003) 243<strong>–</strong>254<br />

FRESSURA, M., PVindob L 62 identificato (Verg. Aen. II 130<strong>–</strong>139, 142<strong>–</strong>150, 152<strong>–</strong>160, [160]<strong>–</strong>?, con traduzione greca). 168 (2009) 83<strong>–</strong>96<br />

FRIESEN, S., Asiarchs. 126 (1999) 275<strong>–</strong>290<br />

FRINGS, I., Mantua me genuit <strong>–</strong> Vergils Grabepigramm und seine Rezeption. 123 (1998) 89<strong>–</strong>100<br />

FRISINA, M., Nuovo, probabile frammento dei fasti pontificum di Sutri. 125 (1999) 253<strong>–</strong>256<br />

FÜHRER, R., „Schwerlich Zufall“. 109 (1995) 45<strong>–</strong>46<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nochmals zu P. Oxy. 3723 (hellenistische Liebeselegie?). 112 (1996) 67<strong>–</strong>68<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Oxy. 1176 fr. 39 col. XX 7<strong>–</strong>15 (SatÊrou b¤ow EÈrip¤dou). 115 (1997) 46<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zur handschriftlichen Anordnung der inschriftlichen 7-Weisen-Sprüche. 118 (1997) 153<strong>–</strong>161<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Oxy. 3723: Philetas? 122 (1998) 47<strong>–</strong>48<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Responsion in P. Oxy. 3876 (Stesich. fr. 222 a Davies) fr. 26. 126 (1999) 13<strong>–</strong>14<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Oxy. 4450 Stesichoros? 130 (2000) 8<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zu den Ostraka <strong>ZPE</strong> 145, 2003, 141ff. 149 (2004) 38<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Callimachus Posidippum aemulando superat. 152 (2005) 11<strong>–</strong>12<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zum neuen Sappho-Papyrus. 159 (2007) 11<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Responsion in Simonidesfragmenten. 159 (2007) 12<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein Papyrusakzent in Call. fr. 112, 4 Pf. 174 (2010) 44<br />

FUNGHI, M. S. <strong>–</strong> MARTINELLI, M. C., Ostraca letterari inediti della collezione Petrie. 145 (2003) 141<strong>–</strong>182<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ostraca letterari della collezione Flinders Petrie: un addendum. 164 (2008) 63<strong>–</strong>73<br />

FURLEY, W. D., A Lesson to All: Lykourgos’ Fate in the Tbilisi Hymn (P.Ross.Georg. I.11). 162 (2007) 63<strong>–</strong>84<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Note on Posidippus’ Pharos Epigram (no. 115 Austin<strong>–</strong>Bastianini). 170 (2009) 29<strong>–</strong>30<br />

<strong>–</strong>, ‘Admit me to the Company of Initiates’: Suggestions on the Text of the Recently (Re-)Discovered Gold Funerary Lamella from Pherai. 170 (2009)<br />

31<strong>–</strong>34<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Revisiting Some Textual Problems in the Delian Sarapis Aretalogy by Maiistas (IG XI 4 no. 1299). 180 (<strong>2012</strong>) 117<strong>–</strong>125<br />

FUSCO, U. <strong>–</strong> GREGORI, G. L., A proposito dei matrimoni di Marcella minore e del monumentum dei suoi schiavi e liberti. 111 (1996) 226<strong>–</strong>232<br />

GABAYET, F. <strong>–</strong> REMY, B., Découverte d’une dédicace à Jupiter Salutaris à Valence (Narbonnaise). 149 (2004) 256<strong>–</strong>258<br />

GAFFINO, S., Une nouvelle tablette de défixion: kataklitikÒn. 140 (2002) 185<strong>–</strong>194<br />

GAGLIARDI, P., Per la datazione dei versi di Gallo da Qaṣr Ibrîm. 171 (2009) 45<strong>–</strong>63<br />

<strong>–</strong>, PLAKATO IUDICE TE. Per la lettura dei vv. 8<strong>–</strong>9 del papiro di Gallo. 176 (2011) 82<strong>–</strong>95<br />

GAGOS, T., P. Lond. III 875a: A Puzzling Beginning. 105 (1995) 256<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Mich. Koenen 795: Two Corrections. 121 (1998) 144<br />

GAGOS, T. <strong>–</strong> SIJPESTEIJN, P. J., Settling a Dispute in Fourth Century Small Oasis (P. Mich. Inv. No. 4008). 105 (1995) 245<strong>–</strong>252<br />

GALDI, G., Memoriacus? 148 (2004) 289<strong>–</strong>290<br />

GALLAZZI, C., Un altro frammento di Pack 2 643 (Ilias B). 110 (1996) 118<strong>–</strong>120<br />

<strong>–</strong>, I falsi rotoli dell’Acerbi, P. Paris 3 ter e P. Lond. Lit. 13. 112 (1996) 183<strong>–</strong>188<br />

GALLAZZI, C. <strong>–</strong> LEHNUS, L., Due nuovi frammenti delle Diegeseis. Approssimazioni al III libro degli Aitia di Callimaco. 137 (2001) 7<strong>–</strong>18<br />

GALLAZZI, C. <strong>–</strong> SIJPESTEIJN, P. J., P. Cairo inv. JE 51509: Lists of Payments. 113 (1996) 171<strong>–</strong>182<br />

GÄLLNÖ, S., Déclaration de naissance d’un métropolite. 141 (2002) 155<strong>–</strong>157<br />

GAMBETTI, S., In Defense of a Historical Reading of P. Yale II 107 (= P. Giss. Lit. 4.7). 165 (2008) 191<strong>–</strong>208<br />

GARCÍA BUENO, C. <strong>–</strong> ABASCAL, J. M., Inscripciones de Fuencaliente (addendum a <strong>ZPE</strong> 67, 1987) y Puebla de Don Rodrigo (Baetica, conventus<br />

Cordubensis). 169 (2009) 269<strong>–</strong>272<br />

GARCÍA-DILS DE LA VEGA, S. <strong>–</strong> SÁEZ FERNÁNDEZ, P. <strong>–</strong> ORDÓÑEZ AGULLA, S. <strong>–</strong> SAQUETE CHAMIZO, J. C., Hispania Baetica, provincia<br />

immunis. 154 (2005) 299<strong>–</strong>311<br />

GARCÍA-DILS DE LA VEGA, S. <strong>–</strong> SAQUETE CHAMIZO, J. C. <strong>–</strong> ORDÓÑEZ AGULLA, S., Una uotorum nuncupatio en Colonia Augusta Firma<br />

(Écija<strong>–</strong>Sevilla). 176 (2011) 281<strong>–</strong>290<br />

GARCÍA GONZÁLEZ, J. J., Dos inscripciones sepulcrales latinas de Villacarrillo (Jaén). 159 (2007) 303<strong>–</strong>306


20 Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff.<br />

GARCÍA-RAMÓN, J. L., Zwei neue Namen auf der Stele der Menandridai (Krannon): Xeira¤netow und ÉErra¤naw (= ÉEri-a¤naw) und die griechische<br />

dichterische Phraseologie. 159 (2007) 179<strong>–</strong>188<br />

GARDEÑES SANTIAGO, M. <strong>–</strong> SANTIAGO ÁLVAREZ, R.-A., Algunas observaciones a la “Lettre d’Apatorios à Léanax”. 157 (2006) 57<strong>–</strong>69<br />

GARDNER, I., An Old Coptic Ostracon from Ismant el-Kharab? 125 (1999) 195<strong>–</strong>200<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Kellis I 67 Revisited. 159 (2007) 223<strong>–</strong>228<br />

GARDNER, I. <strong>–</strong> BAGNALL, R. <strong>–</strong> CHOAT, M., O. Douch I 40. 147 (2004) 205<strong>–</strong>207<br />

GARDNER, I. <strong>–</strong> CHOAT, M., O. Douch I 49. 143 (2003) 143<strong>–</strong>146<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Lond. Copt. I 1123: Another Letter to Apa Johannes? 156 (2006) 157<strong>–</strong>164<br />

GARDNER, I. <strong>–</strong> CHOAT, M. <strong>–</strong> NOBBS, A., P. Harr. 107: Is this another Greek Manichaean Letter? 131 (2000) 118<strong>–</strong>124<br />

GARDNER, I. <strong>–</strong> WORP, K. A., Leaves from a Manichaean Codex. 117 (1997) 139<strong>–</strong>155<br />

GARGIULO, T., Fr. com. adesp. 1152,44 K.<strong>–</strong>A. 116 (1997) 11<strong>–</strong>12<br />

GÄRTNER, Th., Falsch zusammengezogene Lemmata und andere Überlieferungsschäden im neuen Tiberius Claudius Donatus. 118 (1997) 139<strong>–</strong>152<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eine Verbesserung zum Text des D-Scholions zu Hom. Il. C 142. 122 (1998) 6<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zum Geschick der Pleiade Elektra im sogenannten „Mythographus Homericus“ (Pap. Ox. 4096) und bei Quintus von Smyrna. 124 (1998) 22<strong>–</strong>24<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zum Text eines hexastichischen Vers-Argumentums zu Stat. Theb. I. 132 (2000) 151<strong>–</strong>152<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zur mittellateinischen Übersetzung des neuen Fragments aus Aristoteles(?) ‚De inundatione Nili‘. 133 (2000) 31<strong>–</strong>33<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zum neugefundenen Dankepigramm des Paulinus von Nola. 135 (2001) 43<strong>–</strong>44<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nachtrag zum Dankepigramm des Paulinus von Nola. 138 (2002) 71<strong>–</strong>72<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zum neuen Poseidipp, col. XII 16<strong>–</strong>19: Ein Seelenverwandter des Alkibiades in hellenistischer Zeit. 139 (2002) 31<strong>–</strong>32<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Kritische Bemerkungen zu Gedichten des Mailänder Epigrammpapyrus und zum „alten Poseidipp“. 156 (2006) 75<strong>–</strong>98<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Elysische Schau oder unterirdische Grabwohnung? Ein neuer Rekonstruktionsversuch zu Poseidipp (?) epigr. 52 = col. VIII 25<strong>–</strong>30. 163 (2007) 37<strong>–</strong>39<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Lys. or. 1,48 im P. Ryl. 489. 171 (2009) 17<strong>–</strong>18<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Noch einmal Poseidipps Leuchtturmgedicht. 175 (2010) 28<br />

<strong>–</strong> Eine hartnäckige Korruptel im hexastichischen Argumentum zu Stat. Theb. I. 175 (2010) 48<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Der Erotikerkatalog in der Elegie „Leontion“ des Hermesianax von Kolophon: Überlegungen zu Aufbau und Überlieferung. 180 (<strong>2012</strong>) 77<strong>–</strong>103<br />

GARULLI, V., Posidippo in schol. Flor. Call. Aet. fr. 1 Pf. (PSI XI 1219). 154 (2005) 86<strong>–</strong>90<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Frinico e l’epitafio di Aurelio Marciano (IGUR 411): un presunto hapax. 166 (2008) 80<strong>–</strong>82<br />

<strong>–</strong>, La forte stirpe di Sarapione (SGO 05/01/52,6). 167 (2008) 17<strong>–</strong>21<br />

GASCOU, J., À propos d’un décurion de Lodève (Hérault). 105 (1995) 89<strong>–</strong>94<br />

<strong>–</strong>, À propos d’une inscription de Furnos Minus (CIL, VIII, 14751 + ILT, 1267). 113 (1996) 144<strong>–</strong>152<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Claude et Drusilla d’après une inscription d’Avignon (CIL, XII, 1026 = ILS, 195). 121 (1998) 291<strong>–</strong>296<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Sur un problème d’onomastique africaine. 126 (1999) 296<strong>–</strong>300<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Hadrien et le droit latin. 127 (1999) 294<strong>–</strong>300<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Le gentilice Vrittius. Remarques sur l’onomastique du pagus Lucretius (territoire oriental d’Arles). 130 (2000) 223<strong>–</strong>231<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Deux bornes d’enclos funéraire de Bédoin (Vaucluse). 137 (2001) 251<strong>–</strong>254<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Un document sur la fiscalité des Largesses au début du V e siècle (Réédition de P. Mich. III 160). 149 (2004) 153<strong>–</strong>156<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Procès-verbal d’audience du juge Ammonius. 170 (2009) 149<strong>–</strong>155<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes critiques: P.Prag. I 87, P.Mon. Apollo 27, P.Stras. VII 660. 177 (2011) 243<strong>–</strong>253<br />

GASCOU, J. <strong>–</strong> BÉRATO, J., Inscriptions des territoires antiques d’Arles et de Fréjus. 119 (1997) 221<strong>–</strong>227<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Sive deo sive deae? À propos d’une inscription de Cassis (Bouches-du-Rhône). 137 (2001) 255<strong>–</strong>259<br />

GASCOU, J. <strong>–</strong> BORRÉANI, M., Le dieu Roquetius d’après trois inscriptions de Cabasse (Var). 121 (1998) 297<strong>–</strong>299<br />

GASCOU, J. <strong>–</strong> BRENTCHALOFF, D., Milliaires des cités de Vence, Castellane, Fréjus. 109 (1995) 245<strong>–</strong>254<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Compléments aux ILN-Fréjus - 2. Fouilles de la cathédrale (1987<strong>–</strong>1988). 155 (2006) 263<strong>–</strong>267<br />

GASCOU, J. <strong>–</strong> BRUN, J.-P., Un grand-prêtre du culte impérial de la province de Narbonnaise. 125 (1999) 261<strong>–</strong>271<br />

GASCOU, J. <strong>–</strong> FOURNET, J.-L., À propos de PSI IX 1061 descr.: Le nom du saunier et une formation méconnue d’anthroponymes féminins. 135 (2001)<br />

139<strong>–</strong>149<br />

GASCOU, J. <strong>–</strong> MARTOS, F., Deux inscriptions de Forum Voconi. Contribution à l’étude des sources de Pline, N. H., 3, 31<strong>–</strong>37. 130 (2000) 232<strong>–</strong>237<br />

GASCOU, J. <strong>–</strong> WORP, K. A., The Panopolitan Village Sunor¤a. 112 (1996) 163<strong>–</strong>164<br />

GATIER, P.-L., Inscriptions grecques et latines du Proche-Orient: Questions de provenance. 147 (2004) 139<strong>–</strong>144<br />

GATSIOUFA, P., „ÑH Basile¤a YeoË“ in einer christlichen Inschrift aus Germa (Galatien). 160 (2007) 135<strong>–</strong>138<br />

GAULY, B. M., Poseidipp und das Gedichtbuch. Überlegungen zur Sphragis und zum Mailänder Papyrus. 151 (2005) 33<strong>–</strong>47<br />

GEENS, K., Two Contracts from Panopolis in CPR XVIIB. 155 (2006) 229<strong>–</strong>234<br />

GEISSEN, A. <strong>–</strong> WEBER, M., Untersuchungen zu den ägyptischen Nomenprägungen. 144 (2003) 277<strong>–</strong>300<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Untersuchungen zu den ägyptischen Nomenprägungen II. 147 (2004) 259<strong>–</strong>280<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Untersuchungen zu den ägyptischen Nomenprägungen III. 149 (2004) 283<strong>–</strong>306<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Untersuchungen zu den ägyptischen Nomenprägungen IV. 151 (2005) 279<strong>–</strong>305<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Untersuchungen zu den ägyptischen Nomenprägungen V. 153 (2005) 291<strong>–</strong>316<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Untersuchungen zu den ägyptischen Nomenprägungen VI. 155 (2006) 271<strong>–</strong>300<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Untersuchungen zu den ägyptischen Nomenprägungen VII. 157 (2006) 277<strong>–</strong>304<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Untersuchungen zu den ägyptischen Nomenprägungen VIII. 158 (2006) 271<strong>–</strong>300<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Untersuchungen zu den ägyptischen Nomenprägungen IX. 160 (2007) 275<strong>–</strong>300<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Untersuchungen zu den ägyptischen Nomenprägungen X. 164 (2008) 277<strong>–</strong>305<br />

GELZER, Th., Die Trimeter Fr. com. adesp. *1036 K.<strong>–</strong>A. und Menander. 114 (1996) 61<strong>–</strong>66<br />

GENGLER, O., Le peintre Nikias chez Pausanias et IG II 2 3055. 130 (2000) 143<strong>–</strong>146<br />

GERA, D., Philonides the Epicurean at Court: Early Connections. 125 (1999) 77<strong>–</strong>83<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Olympiodoros, Heliodoros and the Temples of Koilē Syria and Phoinikē. 169 (2009) 125<strong>–</strong>155<br />

GERHARD, Y., La «coupe de Nestor»: reconstitution du vers 1. 176 (2011) 7<strong>–</strong>9<br />

GERMAN, E. <strong>–</strong> LAST, R., Roman Funeral Stele of a Boy Chrysanthus. 130 (2000) 249<strong>–</strong>252<br />

GIANNATTASIO, R., Novità testuali su P. Oxy. 2330 (Ctesias Cnidius, FGrHist 688 F 8b). 144 (2003) 15<strong>–</strong>18<br />

GIANNOBILE, S., Il dio egizio Ptah nella documentazione magica: amuleti e papiri. 152 (2005) 161<strong>–</strong>167<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Una preghiera cristiana da Reggio Calabra contro l’emicrania, il mal di testa e l’oftalmia. 167 (2008) 135<strong>–</strong>143<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Una nuova defixio da Cipro. 171 (2009) 129<strong>–</strong>130


Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff. 21<br />

GIANNOBILE, S. <strong>–</strong> BEVILACQUA, G., “Magia” rurale siciliana: iscrizioni di Noto e Modica. 133 (2000) 135<strong>–</strong>146<br />

GIBSON, C. A., The Critical Note Above Col. 12 of the Didymus Papyrus (P. Berol. Inv. 9780). 132 (2000) 148<br />

GIGANTE, M., Precisazioni sull’edizione comparettiana dello Stoicorum Index Herculanensis (PHerc. <strong>101</strong>8). 122 (1998) 49<strong>–</strong>54<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Il poeta di Salmacide e Filodemo di Gadara. 126 (1999) 91<strong>–</strong>92<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Dove visse Filodemo? 136 (2001) 25<strong>–</strong>32<br />

GIGLI PICCARDI, D., Antinoo, Antinoupolis e Diocleziano (P. Oxy. 4352 fr. 5 II). 139 (2002) 55<strong>–</strong>60<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Phanes érx°gonow FrÆn (Nonno, D. 12.68 e orac., ap. Didym., De trin. II 27). 169 (2009) 71<strong>–</strong>78<br />

di GIGLIO, A., Alcuni nomi nuovi di strumenti musicali. 119 (1997) 77<strong>–</strong>80<br />

GILMORE, G. <strong>–</strong> RAY, J., A Fixed Point in Coptic Chronology: The Solar Eclipse of 10 March, 601. 158 (2006) 190<strong>–</strong>192<br />

GILULA, D., The Choregoi Vase <strong>–</strong> Comic yes, but Angels? 109 (1995) 5<strong>–</strong>10<br />

GIMENO PASCUAL, H. <strong>–</strong> RAMÍREZ SÁNCHEZ, M., Dos inscripciones inéditas de la provincia de Soria (España). 139 (2002) 273<strong>–</strong>278<br />

GIOVANNINI, A., Les pouvoirs d’Auguste de 27 à 23 av. J.-C. Une relecture de l’ordonnance de Kymè de l’an 27 (IK 5, n˚ 17). 124 (1998) 95<strong>–</strong>106<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Imposition et exemption fiscales des étrangers dans le règlement athénien sur Chalcis IG I 3 40. 133 (2000) 61<strong>–</strong>74<br />

GIOVANNINI, A. <strong>–</strong> HIRT, M., L’inscription de Nazareth: nouvelle interprétation. 124 (1998) 107<strong>–</strong>132<br />

GIRARDET, K. M., Das Edikt des Imperator Caesar in Suetons Augustusvita 28,2. Politisches Programm und Publikationszeit. 131 (2000) 231<strong>–</strong>243<br />

GIUSEPPETTI, M., Callimaco, Inno a Delo 52<strong>–</strong>69, 80<strong>–</strong>97: Oxford, Bodleian Library, Ms. Gr. class. f 109 (P). 162 (2007) 51<strong>–</strong>56<br />

GLOCK, A., Hermann Dessaus Grabinschrift. 178 (2011) 300<strong>–</strong>306<br />

GNILKA, Chr., Prudentius über den colymbus bei St. Peter. 152 (2005) 61<strong>–</strong>88<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zum Chrēsis-Mosaik in Antakya. 162 (2007) 95<strong>–</strong>98<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nota Prudentiana. 165 (2008) 65<strong>–</strong>66<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zur Frage der Verfasserschaft der ambrosianischen Tituli. 168 (2009) 123<strong>–</strong>148<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zum Grabepigramm auf Ennodius, zu den ambrosianischen Tituli und zu vates gleich episcopus. 169 (2009) 79<strong>–</strong>83<br />

GODDIO, F. <strong>–</strong> BERNAND, A. <strong>–</strong> BERNAND, E., L’épigraphie sous-marine dans le port oriental d’Alexandrie. 121 (1998) 131<strong>–</strong>143<br />

GOLAN, D., The Qualified Praise Decree of Kephisodoros and Historiography. 131 (2000) 227<strong>–</strong>230<br />

GOLDFUS, H. <strong>–</strong> VERRETH, H., A Greek Magical(?) Ostrakon from Elousa (Haluza). 128 (1999) 150<strong>–</strong>152<br />

GOLDMAN, A. <strong>–</strong> ROLLER, L. E., A Latin Epitaph from Gordion. 141 (2002) 215<strong>–</strong>220<br />

GÓMEZ PALLARÈS, J., Nuove e ‘vecchie’ interpretazioni d’iscrizioni latine su mosaico, nordafricane. 129 (2000) 304<strong>–</strong>310<br />

GÓMEZ PALLARÈS, J. <strong>–</strong> BENZINA BEN ABDALLAH, Z. <strong>–</strong> CARANDE, R. <strong>–</strong> FERNÁNDEZ, C. <strong>–</strong> JORBA, N., Carmina Latina Epigraphica Inedita<br />

Ammaedarae. 152 (2005) 89<strong>–</strong>113<br />

GÓMEZ PALLARÈS, J. <strong>–</strong> FERNÁNDEZ MARTÍNEZ, C. <strong>–</strong> ABASCAL, J. M. <strong>–</strong> CEBRIÁN, R., Mors mala solvit. Nuevos CLE hallados en Segobriga<br />

(Hispania citerior). 161 (2007) 47<strong>–</strong>60<br />

GÓMEZ-PANTOJA, J. L., Missing the Point: Una pequeña enmienda a CIL XIII 6858. <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>) 263<strong>–</strong>268<br />

GONIS, N., Remarks on Private Letters. 119 (1997) 135<strong>–</strong>147<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes on Two Epistolary Conventions. 119 (1997) 148<strong>–</strong>154<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Two Female Ghost-Names. 119 (1997) 155<strong>–</strong>156<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Revisions of some Harris Papyri (Letters). 123 (1998) <strong>181</strong><strong>–</strong>195<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Chronological Notes on III.<strong>–</strong>V. Century Documents. 123 (1998) 196<strong>–</strong>198<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes on some Byzantine Leases of Buildings. 124 (1998) 191<strong>–</strong>194<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Two Declarations of Uninundated Land Reread. 126 (1999) 207<strong>–</strong>210<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes on Oxyrhynchus Papyri. 126 (1999) 211<strong>–</strong>212<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Six Notes on Documentary Papyri. 129 (2000) 179<strong>–</strong><strong>181</strong><br />

<strong>–</strong>, Oxyrhynchus, the Christ-Loving City? 129 (2000) 182<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes on Oxyrhynchus Papyri II. 129 (2000) 183<strong>–</strong>184<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Wash. Univ. I 16 + 23: Loan of Money with Interest in Kind. 129 (2000) 185<strong>–</strong>186<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Fragment of the Great Doxology in the Bodleian Library. 130 (2000) 172<strong>–</strong>174<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Two Poll-Tax Receipts from Early Islamic Egypt. 131 (2000) 150<strong>–</strong>154<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Three Notes on Governors of Byzantine Egypt. 132 (2000) 179<strong>–</strong>180<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Symmachos on Mission and his Paymaster: P. Herm. 80 Enlarged. 132 (2000) <strong>181</strong><strong>–</strong>182<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Three Consular Dates. 132 (2000) 183<strong>–</strong>186<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Some Pragmateuta¤ with False Identities. 132 (2000) 187<strong>–</strong>188<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Oxy. XVI 1964: A Lease of a Room from Byzantine Oxyrhynchus. 132 (2000) 189<strong>–</strong>192<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Wash. Univ. II 93: A Receipt for Anabolikon. 132 (2000) 196<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Incestuous Twins in the City of Arsinoe. 133 (2000) 197<strong>–</strong>198<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Some More Elaborate Epistolary Addresses. 136 (2001) 116<strong>–</strong>118<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Abbreviated Nomismata in Seventh- and Eighth-Century Papyri. Notes on Palaeography and Taxes. 136 (2001) 119<strong>–</strong>122<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Yet Another Memphis [Poll] Tax Receipt. 136 (2001) 123<strong>–</strong>124<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Two New Arsinoite Curatores Civitatis? 137 (2001) 221<strong>–</strong>222<br />

<strong>–</strong>, On the Knowledge in Egypt of the Death of Severus. 137 (2001) 223<strong>–</strong>224<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Reconsidering Some Fiscal Documents from Early Islamic Egypt. 137 (2001) 225<strong>–</strong>228<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Consular Date of P. Bodl. I 52. 138 (2002) 140<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Oslo II 35: Oxyrhynchite Nobles and Dubious Supplements. 141 (2002) 159<strong>–</strong>161<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Further Texts from the Oxyrhynchus Racing Archive. 141 (2002) 162<strong>–</strong>164<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Bodl. I 141: An Arsinoite Church and a Room to Rent in the Summer of an Elusive Year. 141 (2002) 165<strong>–</strong>168<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Laur. III 73 + P. Giss. 119: Lease of Part of a House. 141 (2002) 169<strong>–</strong>172<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Remarks on Private Letters II. 142 (2003) 163<strong>–</strong>170<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Declaration of Artificially Inundated Land. 142 (2003) 171<strong>–</strong>175<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Hermopolite Localities and Splinter Nomes. 142 (2003) 176<strong>–</strong>184<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Five Tax Receipts from Early Islamic Egypt. 143 (2003) 149<strong>–</strong>157<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes on Miscellaneous Documents. 143 (2003) 158<strong>–</strong>162<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ship-Owners and Skippers in Fourth-Century Oxyrhynchus. 143 (2003) 163<strong>–</strong>165<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Five Ostraca from Oxford. 144 (2003) <strong>181</strong><strong>–</strong>186<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Oxy. XVI 1969 desc.: Loan of Two Solidi. 144 (2003) 186<strong>–</strong>188


22 Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff.<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Two Hermopolite Leases of the Reign of Heraclius. 145 (2003) 203<strong>–</strong>206<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Flavius Nestorius, praeses Thebaidis? 145 (2003) 207<strong>–</strong>208<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Vindob. G. 14965 (= CPR IX 67) + 18880: Requisitioned Workers in Eighth-Century Egypt. 145 (2003) 209<strong>–</strong>211<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Bingen 135 and Flavius Apion I. 146 (2004) 175<strong>–</strong>178<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Tax Receipts on Coptic and Greek Ostraca Re-read. 147 (2004) 157<strong>–</strong>163<br />

<strong>–</strong>, An Unrecognised (Post)Consular Date of 383. 147 (2004) 164<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Arabs, Monks, and Taxes: Notes on Documents from Deir el-Bala’izah. 148 (2004) 213<strong>–</strong>224<br />

-, Another Look at Some Officials in Early ‘Abbāsid Egypt. 149 (2004) 189<strong>–</strong>195<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Reconsidering Some Fiscal Documents from Early Islamic Egypt II. 150 (2004) 187<strong>–</strong>193<br />

<strong>–</strong>, J. G. Tait Reads O. Ashm. Shelton. 150 (2004) 194<strong>–</strong>196<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes on Oxyrhynchus Papyri III. 150 (2004) 197<strong>–</strong>202<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A. S. Hunt and ‘Youtie’s Law’. 151 (2005) 166<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Consular Epithets and Regionalism in Sixth-Century Egypt. 152 (2005) 183<strong>–</strong>186<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Seventh-Century Oxyrhynchite Documents in the Beinecke Library. 153 (2005) 169<strong>–</strong>171<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes on Miscellaneous Documents II. 154 (2005) 203<strong>–</strong>210<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Stein’s Style Nouveau and the Post-Consulates of Iustinus II and Tiberius II. 154 (2005) 211<strong>–</strong>213<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Mommsen, Grenfell, and ‘The Century of Papyrology’. 156 (2006) 195<strong>–</strong>196<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Two Ostraca from Syene/Elephantine. 156 (2006) 197<strong>–</strong>198<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes on Miscellaneous Documents III. 159 (2007) 267<strong>–</strong>272<br />

<strong>–</strong>, SB VI 8986 and Heraclius’ Sons. 166 (2008) 199<strong>–</strong>202<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes on the Aristocracy of Byzantine Fayum. 166 (2008) 203<strong>–</strong>210<br />

<strong>–</strong>, ‘Aurelius and Verus’: A Ghost Combination. 166 (2008) 268<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Egypt and the Date of the Death of Lucius Verus. 169 (2009) 196<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Reconsidering Some Fiscal Documents from Early Islamic Egypt III. 169 (2009) 197<strong>–</strong>208<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Symmachos on Mission: P.Herm. 80 Completed. 171 (2009) 209<strong>–</strong>210<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Paramone 18: Emperors, Conquerors and Vassals. 173 (2010) 133<strong>–</strong>135<br />

<strong>–</strong>, An ‘Our Father’ with Problems. <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>) 46<strong>–</strong>47<br />

GONIS, N. <strong>–</strong> ADAMS, C. E. P., Two Customs-House Receipts from the Bodleian Library. 126 (1999) 213<strong>–</strong>218<br />

GONIS, N. <strong>–</strong> AST, R., P. Worp 27 and the Consul ‘Iulius’ Maximus. 171 (2009) 213<strong>–</strong>215<br />

GONIS, N. <strong>–</strong> AZZARELLO, G., P.Stras. VIII 800: Lettera ad un Pronoetes della Domus Divina. 171 (2009) 211<strong>–</strong>212<br />

GONIS, N. <strong>–</strong> L<strong>UND</strong>ON, J., Scholia Minora to Iliad I 595<strong>–</strong>604, II 4<strong>–</strong>10. 136 (2001) 111<strong>–</strong>115<br />

GONIS, N. <strong>–</strong> MORELLI, F., A Requisition for the ‘Commander of the Faithful’: SPP VIII 1082 Revised. 132 (2000) 193<strong>–</strong>195<br />

GONIS, N. <strong>–</strong> RÖMER, C. E., Ein Lobgesang an den Vater der Größe in P. Kellis II 94. 120 (1998) 299<strong>–</strong>300<br />

GONIS, N. <strong>–</strong> SCHENKE, G., Grüne gegossene Steine. 123 (1998) 199<strong>–</strong>200<br />

GONIS, N. <strong>–</strong> WORP, K. A., P. Bodl. I 77: The King of Kings in Arsinoe under Arab Rule. 141 (2002) 173<strong>–</strong>176<br />

GONZALES, M., New Observations on the Lindian Cult-Tax for Enyalios (SEG 4.171). 166 (2008) 121<strong>–</strong>134<br />

GONZÁLEZ GERMAIN, G. <strong>–</strong> CARBONELL MANILS, J., La sylloge epigráfica de Diego de Covarrubias: un nuevo testimonio de epigrafía manuscrita<br />

de la segunda mitad del s. XVI. 172 (2010) 277<strong>–</strong>288<br />

GONZÁLEZ GONZÁLEZ, M., Un eco de Semónides Fr. 7 en CEG II 530. 178 (2011) 26<strong>–</strong>28<br />

GOREN, D. <strong>–</strong> PORAT, P., A Greek Epitaph from Sepphoris. 120 (1998) 64<br />

GOREN, D. <strong>–</strong> PORAT, P. <strong>–</strong> HAENSCH, R., Epigraphical Discoveries from Scythopolis. 140 (2002) 123<strong>–</strong>126<br />

GOREN, Y., Scientific Examination of a Seleucid Limestone Stele. 159 (2007) 206<strong>–</strong>216<br />

GORMAN, R., Ofl per¤ tina in Strabo. 136 (2001) 201<strong>–</strong>213<br />

GOROSTIDI PI, D. <strong>–</strong> RUIZ VALDERAS, E., Un nuevo aedilis lustralis procedente de Tusculum (Lacio, Italia). 178 (2011) 273<strong>–</strong>278<br />

GOUW, P., Hadrian and the Calendar of Greek Agonistic Festivals. A New Proposal for the Third Year of the Olympic Cycle. 165 (2008) 96<strong>–</strong>104<br />

GRAF, F., Pedestals of the Gods. 141 (2002) 137<strong>–</strong>138<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Oracle and the Image. Returning to Some Oracles from Clarus. 160 (2007) 113<strong>–</strong>119<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Untimely Death, Witchcraft, and Divine Vengeance. A Reasoned Epigraphical Catalog. 162 (2007) 139<strong>–</strong>150<br />

GRANINGER, D., Studies in the Cult of Artemis Throsia. 162 (2007) 151<strong>–</strong>164<br />

<strong>–</strong>, IG IX.2 1099b and the komai of Demetrias. 177 (2011) 119<strong>–</strong>122<br />

GRANINO CECERE, M. G., C. Iulius Aug. l. Hilarus, navarchus. 109 (1995) 289<strong>–</strong>297<br />

<strong>–</strong>, La legio X Gemina e la rivolta di L. Antonius Saturninus. 131 (2000) 207<strong>–</strong>212<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Dalle sponde del Reno a quelle dell’Aniene: marinai e navigazione fluviale. 157 (2006) 237<strong>–</strong>246<br />

GRASSL, H., Eine littera Claudiana am Magdalensberg. 153 (2005) 241<strong>–</strong>242<br />

GRECO, E., Un ostrakon da Thurii. 173 (2010) 97<strong>–</strong><strong>101</strong><br />

GREENFIELD, J. C. <strong>–</strong> COTTON, H. M., Babatha’s Property and the Law of Succession in the Babatha Archive. 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 211<strong>–</strong>224<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Babatha’s Patria: Maḥoza, Maḥoz ‘Eglatain and Ẓo‘ar. 107 (1995) 126<strong>–</strong>132<br />

GREGORI, G. L., Un nuovo senatore dell’età di Commodo? 106 (1995) 269<strong>–</strong>279<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Alcune iscrizioni imperiali, senatore ed equestri nell’Antiquarium Comunale de Celio. 116 (1997) 161<strong>–</strong>175<br />

GREGORI, G. L. <strong>–</strong> FUSCO, U., A proposito dei matrimoni di Marcella minore e del monumentum dei suoi schiavi e liberti. 111 (1996) 226<strong>–</strong>232<br />

GRIMES, B., IG II 2 1198: Money Awarded by Attic Demes for the Purpose of Sacrifice. 140 (2002) 80<br />

GRONEWALD, M., Bemerkungen zu Menander. 102 (<strong>1994</strong>) 71<strong>–</strong>75<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bemerkungen zu Menander. 106 (1995) 27<strong>–</strong>29<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bemerkungen zu Menander. 107 (1995) 57<strong>–</strong>59<br />

<strong>–</strong>, PCG VIII Adespota *1031 K<strong>–</strong>A. 111 (1996) 174<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bemerkungen zu Menander. 114 (1996) 60<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Hesiod, Xenophon, Psalmen und Alexanderapophthegma in Berliner Papyri. 115 (1997) 117<strong>–</strong>120<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bemerkungen zu Menander. 117 (1997) 19<strong>–</strong>20<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Menander, Epitrepontes 688 s. 126 (1999) 74<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bemerkungen zum neuen Poseidippos. 137 (2001) 1<strong>–</strong>5<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nochmal zu Menander, Epitrepontes 326 f. 139 (2002) 54<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bemerkungen zu Poseidippos. 144 (2003) 63<strong>–</strong>66


Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff. 23<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bemerkungen zu Poseidippos. 149 (2004) 49<strong>–</strong>53<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Kallimachos, Aitia fr. 64,10 Pf. 157 (2006) 46 (Corrigendum dazu: 158 (2006) 88)<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zu P. Lit. Lond. 196. 159 (2007) 71<strong>–</strong>72 (Corrigendum dazu: 160 (2007) 134)<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bemerkungen zu Poseidippos. 161 (2007) 32<strong>–</strong>34<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zu dem Grabepigramm aus Atrax SEG 51, 673. 161 (2007) 34<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zu Poseidippos 91 A.<strong>–</strong>B. 168 (2009) 54<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Macquarie inv. 586 (1), ein neues Fragment zu P.Köln XII 467: Sibyllinische Orakel 177 (2011) 57<strong>–</strong>62<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nachlese zu P.Macq. inv. 586 (1) (<strong>ZPE</strong> 177, 2011, 58). 178 (2011) 84<br />

GRONEWALD, M. <strong>–</strong> BÜYÜKKOLANCI, P. <strong>–</strong> ENGELMANN, H., Grabepigramm auf den Sklaven Hyllos. 169 (2009) 87<strong>–</strong>88 (Corrigendum dazu: 170<br />

(2009) 28; Corrigendum zum Corrigendum: 171 (2009) 70)<br />

GRONEWALD, M. <strong>–</strong> DANIEL, R. W., Ein neuer Sappho-Papyrus. 147 (2004) 1<strong>–</strong>8<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nachtrag zum neuen Sappho-Papyrus. 149 (2004) 1<strong>–</strong>4<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Lyrischer Text (Sappho-Papyrus). 154 (2005) 7<strong>–</strong>12<br />

GRÜNEWALD, M. <strong>–</strong> RICHTER, A., Zeugen Caesars schwerster Schlacht? Beschriftete andalusische Schleuderbleie aus der Zeit des Zweiten Punischen<br />

Krieges und der Kampagne von Munda. 157 (2006) 261<strong>–</strong>269<br />

GRZYBEK, E., Rhodische Inschriften. 165 (2008) 67<strong>–</strong>83<br />

GRZYBEK, E. <strong>–</strong> SORDI, M., L’Edit de Nazareth et la politique de Néron à l’égard des chrétiens. 120 (1998) 279<strong>–</strong>291<br />

GUERBER, E. <strong>–</strong> SARTRE, M., Un logistès à Canatha (Syrie). 120 (1998) 93<strong>–</strong>98<br />

GUICHARD ROMERO, L. A., Notes on Posidippus 74 AB (P. Mil. Vogl. VIII 309, XI 33 <strong>–</strong> XII 7). 148 (2004) 77<strong>–</strong>80<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Sur les papyrus d’Achmîm 3 et 5. 154 (2005) 190<strong>–</strong>194<br />

GUIDA, A., La condanna del ghiottone (Ipponatte fr. 128 West = 126 Degani). 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 23<strong>–</strong>24<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Due varianti negli Ichneutai di Sofocle (fr. 314, 143 Radt). 175 (2010) 5<strong>–</strong>8<br />

GUTZWILLER, K., Nikonoe’s Rainbow (Posidippus 6 Austin<strong>–</strong>Bastianini). 145 (2003) 44<strong>–</strong>46<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Demon Mosquito. 174 (2010) 133<strong>–</strong>138<br />

HAACK, M.-L., Une nouvelle attestation de Jupiter Hadaranès? 153 (2005) 172<strong>–</strong>174<br />

HAAKE, M., Der attische Bildhauer Demetrios, Sohn des Philon, aus Ptelea. 153 (2005) 127<strong>–</strong>130<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Der Ephebe Demetrios, Sohn des Philon, Teilnehmer an der Pythaïs des Jahres 138/7, und der Bildhauer Demetrios, Sohn des Philon, aus Ptelea <strong>–</strong> eine<br />

prosopographische Notiz. 169 (2009) 123<strong>–</strong>124<br />

HABERMANN, W., Zum Ende der Amtszeit des Präfekten L. Valerius Proculus. 117 (1997) 180<strong>–</strong>182<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zur chronologischen Verteilung der papyrologischen Zeugnisse. 122 (1998) 144<strong>–</strong>160<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Variae observationes. 126 (1999) 205<strong>–</strong>206<br />

HABICHT, Chr., Beiträge zur griechischen Prosopographie. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 219<strong>–</strong>226<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Namensgleiche Athener in verschiedenen Demen. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 117<strong>–</strong>127<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Salamis in der Zeit nach Sulla. 111 (1996) 79<strong>–</strong>87<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Neue Inschriften aus Kos. 112 (1996) 83<strong>–</strong>94<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein neues Zeugnis der athenischen Kavallerie. 115 (1997) 121<strong>–</strong>124<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zwei Familien aus Messene. 115 (1997) 125<strong>–</strong>127<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zu Kapitel 35 des Periplus des Roten Meeres. 115 (1997) 128<strong>–</strong>130<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Neues aus Messene. 130 (2000) 121<strong>–</strong>126<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Späte Wiederaufzeichnung eines athenischen Proxeniedekrets. 137 (2001) 113<strong>–</strong>116<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Pinax: An Athenian Ghost Name. 137 (2001) 117<strong>–</strong>118<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Das Ehrendekret von Serrai für Rebilus. 148 (2004) 283<strong>–</strong>288<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eurykleides III of Kephisia, Victor at the Anakaia. 158 (2006) 159<strong>–</strong>163<br />

HABICHT, Chr. <strong>–</strong> BRENNAN, T. C. <strong>–</strong> BLÜMEL, W., Ehren für Cn. Domitius Calvinus in Nysa. 169 (2009) 157<strong>–</strong>161<br />

HAENSCH, R., Eine Ehreninschrift für C. Fulvius Plautianus: MAMA X 467. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 233<strong>–</strong>238<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Statthalterinschriften. 122 (1998) 286<strong>–</strong>292<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Die älteste Datierung nach consules auf einem lateinischen Papyrus aus Ägypten. 128 (1999) 212<br />

HAENSCH, R. <strong>–</strong> EHMIG, U., Lateinische Inschriften aus Albanien: Nampame, Murcis und ihre Verwandten. 179 (2011) 279<strong>–</strong>290<br />

HAENSCH, R. <strong>–</strong> PORAT, P. <strong>–</strong> GOREN, D., Epigraphical Discoveries from Scythopolis. 140 (2002) 123<strong>–</strong>126<br />

HAGEDORN, D., Eine Neuedition von P. Heid. Inv. G 4011 (Homer, Ilias XI 819<strong>–</strong>832). 108 (1995) 189<strong>–</strong>192<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Kunhg¤dew. 109 (1995) 187<strong>–</strong>192<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bemerkungen zu P. Oxy. I 164. 109 (1995) 193<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Noch einmal: Weibliche Gymnasiarchen in Ägypten? 110 (1996) 157<strong>–</strong>160<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bemerkungen zu Urkunden. 112 (1996) <strong>181</strong><strong>–</strong>182<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Noch einmal zum Volljährigkeitsalter in Ägypten nach der Constitutio Antoniniana. 113 (1996) 224<strong>–</strong>226<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bemerkungen zu Urkunden. 115 (1997) 221<strong>–</strong>224<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Die „Kleine Genesis“ in P. Oxy. LXIII 4365. 116 (1997) 147<strong>–</strong>148<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bemerkungen zu Urkunden. 117 (1997) 183<strong>–</strong>186<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Noch einmal: Who got the Contract. 123 (1998) 177<strong>–</strong>180<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bemerkungen zu Urkunden. 125 (1999) 215<strong>–</strong>217<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Heid. inv. G 2136: Isokrates, Euagoras 80. 129 (2000) 274<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein neues Fragment zu P. Oxy. XV 1778 (Aristides, Apologie). 131 (2000) 40<strong>–</strong>44<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eine neue Bestellung eines tutor ad actum. 135 (2001) 163<strong>–</strong>164<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bemerkungen zu Urkunden. 136 (2001) 148<strong>–</strong>154 (Corrigendum dazu: 137 (2001) 196)<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Kein Petrus im Tal der Könige. 137 (2001) 197<strong>–</strong>198<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Hamb. III 227 um ein Fragmentchen vermehrt. 137 (2001) 202<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bemerkungen zu Urkunden. 138 (2002) 113<strong>–</strong>118<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein Reeder aus Ostrakine. 140 (2002) 163<br />

<strong>–</strong>, SB IV 7394 in Liverpool. 140 (2002) 210<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bemerkungen zu Urkunden. 142 (2003) 143<strong>–</strong>146<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bemerkungen zu Urkunden. 145 (2003) 224<strong>–</strong>227<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bemerkungen zu Urkunden. 149 (2004) 159<strong>–</strong>161


24 Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff.<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bemerkungen zu Urkunden. 150 (2004) 155<strong>–</strong>160<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bemerkungen zu Urkunden. 151 (2005) 127<strong>–</strong>132<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bemerkungen zu Urkunden. 152 (2005) 177<strong>–</strong>182<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Col. V 1 Verso 5 und der Procurator Aelius Socraticus. 153 (2005) 141<strong>–</strong>146<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Tebt. II 680 V = Homer, Ilias IX 501<strong>–</strong>512. 153 (2005) 147<strong>–</strong>148<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bemerkungen zu Urkunden. 154 (2005) 195<strong>–</strong>200<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bemerkungen zu Urkunden. 156 (2006) 165<strong>–</strong>168<br />

<strong>–</strong>, SB XXVI 16709 + 16710. 158 (2006) 201<strong>–</strong>202<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Entsprach der Monat Domitianos in Ägypten dem Phaophi oder dem Hathyr? 159 (2007) 261<strong>–</strong>266<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Kassen (logeutÆria) der ptolemäischen Staatsbanken mit Zuständigkeit für Merides des Arsinoites. 160 (2007) 175<strong>–</strong>180<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Datierung in den Sommer 175 oder 207 n. Chr.? 162 (2007) 215<strong>–</strong>219<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Beobachtungen zu zwei Texten christlich-literarischen Inhalts aus der Wiener Papyrussammlung. 163 (2007) 67<strong>–</strong>70<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zu den Adressen einiger spätantiker Briefe. 165 (2008) 129<strong>–</strong>132<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Die Speicherquittungen von P.Cair. Preis. 29: Eine Neuedition. 166 (2008) 171<strong>–</strong>178<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Sokrates und Asklepiades, Praktoren in Karanis. 167 (2008) 149<strong>–</strong>150<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bemerkungen zu Urkunden. 168 (2009) 239<strong>–</strong>242<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Amphilochios von Ikonion in P.Rainer Cent. 32. 169 (2009) 209<strong>–</strong>212<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zur Datierung von P.Kramer 15. 170 (2009) 156<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein Kyrill-Zitat in P.Naqlun II 19. 173 (2010) 131<strong>–</strong>132<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bemerkungen zu Urkunden. 177 (2011) 229<strong>–</strong>233<br />

HAGEDORN, D. <strong>–</strong> ARMONI, Ch., Ein Ostrakon aus Elephantine in Witzenhausen. 145 (2003) 219<strong>–</strong> 223<br />

HAGEDORN, D. <strong>–</strong> COWEY, J. M. S., VBP IV 71. 118 (1997) 237<strong>–</strong>238<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes on Texts in P. Bingen. 134 (2001) 179<strong>–</strong><strong>181</strong><br />

HAGEDORN, D. <strong>–</strong> HAGEDORN, U., Per¤autow: Ein addendum lexicis und Didymos, Hiobkommentar, p. 250,18f. 112 (1996) 179<strong>–</strong>180<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Monotheletisch interpretierte Väterzitate und eine Anleihe bei Johannes Chrysostomus in dem Kölner Osterfestbrief (P. Köln V 215). 178 (2011) 143<strong>–</strong><br />

157<br />

HAGEDORN, D. <strong>–</strong> JÖRDENS, A., Ein unbekannter Proculus und das Verbot der paenula: Eine Neuedition von BGU XVI 2558. 156 (2006) 169<strong>–</strong>178<br />

HAGEDORN, D. <strong>–</strong> KRAMER, B., Fragment eines grammatischen Traktats per‹ stoixe¤ou (P. Lit. Palau Rib. 35). 105 (1995) 155<strong>–</strong>159<br />

HAGEDORN, D. <strong>–</strong> MITTHOF, F., Ein Kourepistoulariow (cura epistularum) im Büro des praeses provinciae Arcadiae. Eine Bemerkung zu P. Mich.<br />

XVIII 794. 117 (1997) 187<strong>–</strong>189<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Paramone 18: Ein neu plaziertes Fragment, oder: Cave restauratorem chartarum. 149 (2004) 157<strong>–</strong>158 (Nachtrag dazu: 151 (2005) 132)<br />

HAGEDORN, D. <strong>–</strong> REITER, F., P. Giss. Univ. I 13. 137 (2001) 199<strong>–</strong>201<br />

HAGEDORN, D. <strong>–</strong> TORALLAS TOVAR, S. <strong>–</strong> WORP, K. A., P. Monts. Roca inv. 65 verso Again. 160 (2007) <strong>181</strong><strong>–</strong>182<br />

HAGEDORN, D. <strong>–</strong> WORP, K. A., Das Wandeljahr im römischen Ägypten. 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 243<strong>–</strong>255<br />

<strong>–</strong>, VBP VI 170: Eine Neuedition. 118 (1997) 239<strong>–</strong>242<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Cair. inv. 10560: Monatsabrechnung einer Steuerbehörde (Rekto) und Aufstellung (Verso). 121 (1998) 185<strong>–</strong>191<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Neues zu der Papyrussammlung Gradenwitz. 128 (1999) 153<strong>–</strong>160<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Papyri aus der Sammlung Gradenwitz im Kloster Beuron. 134 (2001) 163<strong>–</strong>178<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Cair. inv. 10515: Pachtvertrag zum Zwecke des Anbaus von Weizen und Grünfutter. 135 (2001) 157<strong>–</strong>162<br />

<strong>–</strong>, SB X 10215 revidiert. 136 (2001) 145<strong>–</strong>147<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eine Neuedition von SB XVIII 13287. 139 (2002) 155<strong>–</strong>157<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Greek Tax Receipts from Late-Byzantine Akoris. 140 (2002) 159<strong>–</strong>162<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ostraka der Sammlung Kaufmann in Beuron. 146 (2004) 159<strong>–</strong>164<br />

HAGEDORN, U. <strong>–</strong> HAGEDORN, D., Per¤autow: Ein addendum lexicis und Didymos, Hiobkommentar, p. 250,18f. 112 (1996) 179<strong>–</strong>180<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Monotheletisch interpretierte Väterzitate und eine Anleihe bei Johannes Chrysostomus in dem Kölner Osterfestbrief (P. Köln V 215). 178 (2011) 143<strong>–</strong><br />

157<br />

HAHNEMANN, C., Mount Oita Revisited: Sophokles’ Trachiniai in Light of the Evidence of Aischylos’ Herakleidai. 126 (1999) 67<strong>–</strong>73<br />

HALEY, E. W., A Palace of Maximianus Herculius at Corduba? <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 208<strong>–</strong>214<br />

HALLOF, K. <strong>–</strong> PRIGNITZ, S., IG XII 1, 824. 170 (2009) 81<strong>–</strong>86<br />

HAMDOUNE, Chr., Relecture de la dédicace impériale IAM 2 98 de Banasa. 127 (1999) 301<strong>–</strong>306<br />

HAMMERSTAEDT, J., Die Markusanaphora auf Wiener Papyrusfragmenten. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 67<strong>–</strong>70<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Papierfragmente der Markusliturgie aus byzantinischer Zeit in Quaṣr Ibrim. 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 287<strong>–</strong>291<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Präzisierungen zu PVindob. G 26134 (Markusliturgie). 110 (1996) 165<strong>–</strong>167<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Photios über einen verlorenen Codex mit Autoren des vierten Jahrhunderts n. Chr. aus Mittel- bzw. Oberägypten. 115 (1997) 105<strong>–</strong>116<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nochmals zu Demokrit (VS 68 B 144). 121 (1998) 25<strong>–</strong>27<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Die Homerallegorese des älteren Metrodor von Lampsakos. 121 (1998) 28<strong>–</strong>32<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Gryllos. Die antike Bedeutung eines modernen archäologischen Begriffs. 129 (2000) 29<strong>–</strong>46<br />

HANDLEY, E. W., Dialogue with the Night (PAnt 1.15 = PCG VIII 1084). 155 (2006) 23<strong>–</strong>25<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Date of Menander’s Epitrepontes. 178 (2011) 51<strong>–</strong>53<br />

HANDLEY, E. W. <strong>–</strong> TCHERNETSKA, N. <strong>–</strong> AUSTIN, C. <strong>–</strong> HORVÁTH, L., New Readings in the Fragment of Hyperides’ Against Timandros from the<br />

Archimedes Palimpsest. 162 (2007) 1<strong>–</strong>4<br />

HANEL, N., Ein Ziegelstempel der cohors XV voluntariorum c. R. aus der tegularia transrhenana im Flottenlager Köln-Marienburg (Alteburg). 139<br />

(2002) 293<strong>–</strong>296<br />

HANSON, A. E., A Petition and Court Proceedings: P. Michigan inv. 6060. 111 (1996) 175<strong>–</strong>182<br />

HANSON, A. E. <strong>–</strong> SIJPESTEIJN, P. J., Three Papyri from the Princeton University Collection. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 41<strong>–</strong>51<br />

HARDIE, A., Philitas and the Plane Tree. 119 (1997) 21<strong>–</strong>36<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Statue(s) of Philitas (P. Mil. Vogl. VIII 309 Col. X 16<strong>–</strong>25 and Hermesianax fr. 7.75<strong>–</strong>78 P.). 143 (2003) 27<strong>–</strong>36<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Sappho, the Muses, and Life after Death. 154 (2005) 13<strong>–</strong>32<br />

HARRIMAN, M. <strong>–</strong> MAYER, K. <strong>–</strong> MURPHY, S. <strong>–</strong> PIANKA, R., A New Inscription from Ilium. 113 (1996) 255<strong>–</strong>256<br />

HARRIS, E. M., A Note on the Constitution of the Five Thousand. 116 (1997) 300<br />

<strong>–</strong>, IG I 3 227 and the So-Called Peace of Epilykos. 126 (1999) 123<strong>–</strong>128<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes on the New Grain-Tax Law. 128 (1999) 269<strong>–</strong>272


Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff. 25<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Pheidippides the Legislator. A Note on Aristophanes’ Clouds. 140 (2002) 3<strong>–</strong>5<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Two Notes on Legal Inscriptions. 167 (2008) 81<strong>–</strong>84<br />

HARRIS, E. M. <strong>–</strong> TUITE, K., Notes on a Horos from the Athenian Agora. 131 (2000) <strong>101</strong><strong>–</strong>105<br />

HARRIS, W. V., A Julio-Claudian Business Family? 130 (2000) 263<strong>–</strong>264<br />

HARTER-UIBOPUU, K., Tå nenomism°na dikastÆria per‹ t«n zhmi«n. Zur gerichtlichen Kontrolle von Strafen nach den Anweisungen Hadrians an<br />

die dionysischen Künstler. 171 (2009) 109<strong>–</strong>112<br />

HARTMANN, A., Ein Berber im römischen Bayern? Eine Neulesung zu CIL III 5905 = 11906 (IBR 255/CSIR I 1,504). 174 (2010) 267<strong>–</strong>271<br />

HARTMANN, B., Inschriften auf römischen Holzfässern aus dem vicus Tasgetium (Eschenz, CH). <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>) 269<strong>–</strong>288<br />

HARTWIG, A., The Date of the Rhabdouchoi and the Early Career of Plato Comicus. 174 (2010) 19<strong>–</strong>31<br />

HARTWIG, A. <strong>–</strong> WILSON, P., IG I 3 102 and the Tradition of Proclaiming Honours at the Tragic Agon of the Athenian City Dionysia. 169 (2009) 17<strong>–</strong>27<br />

HARVEY, D., Farewell, Thodis: One Less Beautiful Athenian. 175 (2010) 164<br />

HARVEY, F. D., ‘Help! I’m Dying Here’: A Letter from a Slave. 163 (2007) 49<strong>–</strong>50<br />

HASITZKA, M. <strong>–</strong> DIETHART, J. M., Eine ungewöhnliche koptische Schreibhelferformel in P.Gen. IV 189 und Korrekturen zum griechischen und<br />

koptischen Teil der Urkunde. <strong>ZPE</strong> 177 (2011) 237<strong>–</strong>239<br />

HASLAM, M., On P. Oxy. LXI 4096, Mythographus Homericus. 110 (1996) 115<strong>–</strong>117<br />

HATZOPOULOS, M., Alexandre en Perse: la revanche et l’empire. 116 (1997) 41<strong>–</strong>52<br />

HAUBEN, H., On the Invocation of the “Holy and Consubstantial Trinity” in Byzantine Oath and Dating Formulas. 139 (2002) 158<strong>–</strong>160<br />

HAUG, B., Military Pork: Two Receipts for Rations. 160 (2007) 215<strong>–</strong>219<br />

HAWKINS, Sh., IvE 106: Ùreioguãdvn ka‹ §n°draw. 162 (2007) 117<strong>–</strong>124<br />

HEALEY, J. F., A Nabataean Papyrus Fragment (Bodleian MS Heb. d. 89). 146 (2004) 183<strong>–</strong>188<br />

HEATH, M., The Family of Minucianus? 113 (1996) 66<strong>–</strong>70<br />

HEFTNER, H., Der kerameÁw LukoËrgow von Hesych k 2265 Latte (= fr. com. adesp. 362 K.<strong>–</strong>A.): Ein Komödienwitz über den Ostrakismos? 119 (1997)<br />

13<strong>–</strong>19<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Die tr¤a kakã des Theramenes. Überlegungen zu Polyzelos fr. 3 und Aristophanes fr. 563 Kassel<strong>–</strong>Austin. 128 (1999) 33<strong>–</strong>43<br />

HEIJMANS, M. <strong>–</strong> RÉMY, B., Une «nouvelle» inscription commémorant la chute de la foudre à Arles (Bouches-du-Rhône). 128 (1999) 235<strong>–</strong>236<br />

HEIL, M., Zwei spätantike Statthalter aus Epirus und Achaia. 108 (1995) 159<strong>–</strong>165<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zu einigen Personen auf stadtrömischem instrumentum domesticum. 119 (1997) 292<strong>–</strong>296<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Severus Alexander und Orbiana. Eine Kaiserehe. 135 (2001) 233<strong>–</strong>248<br />

<strong>–</strong>, M. Ulpius Iulianus, praeses Macedoniae. 147 (2004) 243<strong>–</strong>245<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Kein Senator aus Augusta Praetoria. 153 (2005) 285<strong>–</strong>286<br />

HEIL, M. <strong>–</strong> DOHNICHT, M., Ein Legat Sullas in Messenien. 147 (2004) 235<strong>–</strong>242<br />

HEILEN, St., Astrological Remarks on the New Horoscopes from Kellis. 146 (2004) 131<strong>–</strong>136<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Oxy. astron. 4245: Wiederherstellung des Mondnotats. 152 (2005) 173<strong>–</strong>176<br />

HEILPORN, P., Encore Ailios Didumos. 174 (2010) 167<strong>–</strong>168<br />

HEINEN, H., Zwei Briefe des bosporanischen Königs Aspurgos (AE <strong>1994</strong>, 1538). Übersehene Berichtigungsvorschläge Günther Klaffenbachs und<br />

weitere Beobachtungen. 124 (1998) 133<strong>–</strong>142<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Reichstreue nobiles im zerstörten Trier. Überlegungen zu Salvian, gub. VI 72<strong>–</strong>89. 131 (2000) 271<strong>–</strong>278<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zum Verständnis des Textes auf der neuen Decennalien-Platte des Constans aus Kaiseraugst. 132 (2000) 291<strong>–</strong>294<br />

HEINRICHS, J., Zur Verwicklung ubischer Gruppen in den Ambiorix-Aufstand d. J. 54 v. Chr. Eburonische und ubische Münzen im Hortfund Fraire-2.<br />

127 (1999) 275<strong>–</strong>293<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Consistentes Bonna et canabis. Zum nun erstmals bezeugten Namen des Bonner vicus und zur Rechtsform einer dortigen Dedikantengruppe. 158<br />

(2006) 259<strong>–</strong>270<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Die Eburonen, oder: Die Kunst des Überlebens. 164 (2008) 203<strong>–</strong>230<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zwischen falsum und (laesa) maiestas: Münzdelikte im römischen Recht. 166 (2008) 247<strong>–</strong>260<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Währungstechnische Regelungen im Amtsjahr des Prätors M. Marius Gratidianus (85/4 v. Chr.). 166 (2008) 261<strong>–</strong>267<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Kimbern im östlichen Vorfeld der Belger. 171 (2009) 277<strong>–</strong>299<br />

<strong>–</strong>, THARSYMACHO ARCHONTOS. Eine bronzene Stierplastik des frühen 5. Jh. v. Chr., phokische Triobole und die delphische Felsinschrift der<br />

Labyaden. 175 (2010) 99<strong>–</strong>112<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Athen und Argos in der Mitte des 5. Jh. <strong>–</strong> Ein Reflex des argivischen Münzbilds bei Aischylos. 177 (2011) 23<strong>–</strong>25<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Münzen als Krisensymptome? Zur makedonischen Silberprägung unter Amyntas III. und Perdikkas III. (ca. 393<strong>–</strong>359). <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>) 117<strong>–</strong>139<br />

HEINRICHS, J. <strong>–</strong> MÜLLER, S., Ein persisches Statussymbol auf Münzen Alexanders I. von Makedonien. 167 (2008) 283<strong>–</strong>309<br />

HEINTZ, F., A Greek Silver Phylactery in the MacDaniel Collection. 112 (1996) 295<strong>–</strong>300 (Corrigenda dazu: 114 (1996) 96)<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Domitianic Fleet Diploma. 120 (1998) 250<strong>–</strong>252<br />

HELLMANN, M.-Chr., Les signatures d’architectes en langue grecque: essai de mise au point. 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 151<strong>–</strong>178<br />

HELLY, B., Épigramme funéraire pour Théotimos, fils de Ményllos, d’Atrax (457 av. J.-C.). 148 (2004) 15<strong>–</strong>28<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Un concurrent originaire d’Antioche de Pisidie dans un catalogue de vainqueurs aux concours des Éleuthéria de Larisa (entre 80 et 70 av. J.-C.). 172<br />

(2010) 93<strong>–</strong>99<br />

HENNER, J., Die Markusanaphora auf Wiener Papyrusfragmenten? 105 (1995) 166<strong>–</strong>170<br />

HENNING, D., Messius Phoebus Severus und die Chronologie der praefecti Urbi unter Kaiser Anthemius (467<strong>–</strong>472). 108 (1995) 145<strong>–</strong>158<br />

<strong>–</strong>, CIL VI 32005 und die „rostra Vandalica“. 110 (1996) 259<strong>–</strong>264<br />

HENRICHS, A., Reinhold Merkelbach über antike Religion, Literatur und Mysterien. 163 (2007) 17<strong>–</strong>24<br />

HENRY, A. S., Miscellanea epigraphica. 108 (1995) 72<strong>–</strong>76 [korrigierter Neudruck in 110 (1996) 301<strong>–</strong>305]<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Hortatory Intention in Athenian State Decrees. 112 (1996) 105<strong>–</strong>119<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Sigma Enigma. 120 (1998) 45<strong>–</strong>48<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Sigma Stigma. 137 (2001) 93<strong>–</strong>105<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Adolf Wilhelm and IG II 2 401. 137 (2001) 106<strong>–</strong>108<br />

HENRY, W. B., An Archilochus Papyrus? 121 (1998) 94<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Simonides, PMG 541. 121 (1998) 303<strong>–</strong>304<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Stesichorus, P. Oxy. 3876 (PMGF I App.) fr. 67(b). 126 (1999) 66<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Pindar, Fragments 128c (Thren. 3) and 260. 128 (1999) 14<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Aeschylus, Isthmiastae 77<strong>–</strong>89 Snell. 134 (2001) 12<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Supposed Metrical Peculiarity in Pindar. 135 (2001) 32


26 Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff.<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Contracted Biceps in Pindar. 143 (2003) 11<strong>–</strong>16<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Pindar, Dithyramb 2.28. 143 (2003) 17<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes on New Verse Texts (P. Oxy. 4352, SEG 47.737, IG IX.1 2 .4.901). 143 (2003) 18<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes on Pindar’s Paeans (P. Oxy. 841). 145 (2003) 7<strong>–</strong>10<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Two Verse Inscriptions (I. Oropos 675, SEG 49.1976). 145 (2003) 10<strong>–</strong>12<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Archilochus, P. Oxy. 4708 fr. 1.18<strong>–</strong>21. 157 (2006) 14<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Two Supplements in Philodemus, On Gods 3. 175 (2010) 41<strong>–</strong>42<br />

<strong>–</strong>, New Readings in Philodemus, On Music 4. 175 (2010) 43<strong>–</strong>44<br />

HENRY, W. B. <strong>–</strong> NÜNLIST, R., Aeschylus, Dictyulci (fr. 47a Radt) and Isthmiastae (fr. 78a<strong>–</strong>d). 129 (2000) 13<strong>–</strong>16<br />

HERNÁNDEZ GUERRA, L. <strong>–</strong> SOLANA SAINZ, J. M., Inscripciones votivas inéditas de la provincia de Salamanca. 128 (1999) 267<strong>–</strong>268<br />

HERNÁNDEZ MUÑOZ, F. G., Los papiros y las arengas demosténicas (Or. I<strong>–</strong>XVII). 162 (2007) 43<strong>–</strong>50<br />

HERRMANN, S., Orient trifft Okzident. Zur Entwicklung des literarischen Motivs des „Eidbruchs“ in altorientalischen, ägyptischen und griechischen<br />

Fabeln. 172 (2010) 43<strong>–</strong>49<br />

HERZ, P., Kampf den Piraten? Zur Deutung zweier kaiserzeitlicher Inschriften. 107 (1995) 195<strong>–</strong>200<br />

von HESBERG, H., Zwei Fragmente mit Buchstaben im Hochrelief vom Areal der Domitiansvilla in Castel Gandolfo. 152 (2005) 299<strong>–</strong>304<br />

HESSINGER, M., Datus <strong>–</strong> ein Ituräer in Mainz. 173 (2010) 294<strong>–</strong>296<br />

HICKEY, T. M., A Fragment of a Letter from a Bishop to a Scholastikos. 110 (1996) 127<strong>–</strong>131<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Oxy. X 1323 descr.: A Receipt for the Rent of an Orbiopôleion. 113 (1996) 227<strong>–</strong>229<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes on Some Cairo Papyri from Byzantine Oxyrhynchus. 123 (1998) 161<strong>–</strong>164<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A New Fragment from the Apion Dossier in New Haven (P. CtYBR inv. 4357). 146 (2004) 165<strong>–</strong>166<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Penthēmeros Certificate from the Reign of Caracalla (P.Lund inv. 12). 178 (2011) 240<strong>–</strong>242<br />

HIGGINBOTHAM, J. <strong>–</strong> MUCCIGROSSO, J. D., A New Archaic Dipinto from Poseidonia. 178 (2011) 191<strong>–</strong>194<br />

HILHORST, A., Erwähnt P. Oxy. LXIII 4365 das Jubiläenbuch? 130 (2000) 192<br />

HILLARD, T. <strong>–</strong> BENESS, J. L., The First Romans at Philae (CIL I 2 .2.2937a). 144 (2003) 203<strong>–</strong>207<br />

HILLGRUBER, M., Homer im Dienste des Mimus. Zur künstlerischen Eigenart der Homeristen. 132 (2000) 63<strong>–</strong>72 (Corrigendum und Addendum dazu:<br />

134 (2001) 42)<br />

HINZ, V., Vorbemerkungen zur Neuedition der Phalarisbriefe: Die Epistula ad Athenienses in einer unbeachteten Übersetzung L. Biragos für Alphons I.<br />

von Neapel. 108 (1995) 59<strong>–</strong>68<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Noch einmal Biragos Widmung des 122. Phalarisbriefes im Biscionianus 31. 112 (1996) 81<strong>–</strong>82<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nomadumque tyranni bei Vergil (Aen. 4,320). 165 (2008) 59<strong>–</strong>64<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Das Schneiden des Lorbeers in Kallimachos’ viertem Iambus. 171 (2009) 25<strong>–</strong>26<br />

HIRSCHMANN, V., Untersuchungen zur Grabschrift des Aberkios. 129 (2000) 109<strong>–</strong>116<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ungelöste Rätsel? Nochmals zur Grabschrift des Aberkios. 145 (2003) 133<strong>–</strong>139<br />

HIRT, M. <strong>–</strong> GIOVANNINI, A., L’inscription de Nazareth: nouvelle interprétation. 124 (1998) 107<strong>–</strong>132<br />

HITCHMAN, R. <strong>–</strong> MARCHAND, F., Two Ephebic Inscriptions: IG II 2 1973 A and 1973 B. 148 (2004) 165<strong>–</strong>176<br />

HOËT-VAN CAUWENBERGHE, Chr., Notes sur le culte impérial dans le Péloponnèse. 125 (1999) 177<strong>–</strong><strong>181</strong><br />

HOFF, M., Some Inscribed Graffiti in the Roman Market in Athens. 155 (2006) 176<strong>–</strong>182<br />

HOFFMAN, J., A Letter to Andromachos Concerning Marsisouchos the Prophet. 172 (2010) 195<strong>–</strong>196<br />

HØJTE, J. M., The Epigraphic Evidence Concerning Portrait Statues of Hadrian’s Heir L. Aelius Caesar. 127 (1999) 217<strong>–</strong>238<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Imperial Visits as Occasion for the Erection of Portrait Statues? 133 (2000) 221<strong>–</strong>235<br />

HOLDER, P., Auxiliary Units Entitled Aelia. 122 (1998) 253<strong>–</strong>262<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Exercitus Pius Fidelis: The Army of Germania Inferior in AD 89. 128 (1999) 237<strong>–</strong>250<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Auxiliaria. 131 (2000) 213<strong>–</strong>218<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Two Commanders of ala Phrygum. 140 (2002) 287<strong>–</strong>295<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Diploma for Mauretania Tingitana of 22 December 144. 149 (2004) 275<strong>–</strong>281<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Two Military Diplomas from the Reign of Antoninus Pius. 156 (2006) 255<strong>–</strong>264<br />

HOLDER, P. <strong>–</strong> ECK, W. <strong>–</strong> PANGERL, A., A Diploma for the Army of Britain in 132 and Hadrian’s Return to Rome from the East. 174 (2010) 169<strong>–</strong>180<br />

HOLDER, P. <strong>–</strong> ROXAN, M. M.†, A Diploma of the Ravenna Fleet: 1 August 142. 149 (2004) 267<strong>–</strong>274<br />

HÖLKESKAMP, K.-J., (In-)Schrift und Monument. Zum Begriff des Gesetzes im archaischen und klassischen Griechenland. 132 (2000) 73<strong>–</strong>96<br />

HOLLAND, L., A Bronze Five-Pound Roman Weight. 167 (2008) 225<strong>–</strong>226<br />

HOLLIS, A. S., [Oppian], Cyn. 2,100<strong>–</strong>158 and the Mythical Past of Apamea-on-the-Orontes. 102 (<strong>1994</strong>) 153<strong>–</strong>166<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Heroic Honours for Philetas? 110 (1996) 56<strong>–</strong>62<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Laodice Mother of Eucratides of Bactria. 110 (1996) 161<strong>–</strong>164<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ovid, Metamorphoses 1,445ff.: Apollo, Daphne, and the Pythian Crown. 112 (1996) 69<strong>–</strong>73<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Beginning of Callimachus’ Hecale. 115 (1997) 55<strong>–</strong>56<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Three Possible Fragments of Callimachus’ Hecale in Hesychius. 117 (1997) 47<strong>–</strong>49<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Some Neglected Verse Citations in Hesychius. 123 (1998) 61<strong>–</strong>71<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Darkness on the Mountains: A Fragment of Callimachus’ Hecale. 123 (1998) 72<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Callimachus, Epigram 9 G.<strong>–</strong>P. = 44 Pf. = Anth. Pal. 12,139. 123 (1998) 73<strong>–</strong>74<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Reputation and Influence of Choerilus of Samos. 130 (2000) 13<strong>–</strong>15<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Another Rare Epithet in Callimachus’ Hecale? 130 (2000) 16<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Hecale’s Babies. 148 (2004) 115<strong>–</strong>116<br />

HOLLIS, A. S. <strong>–</strong> REA, J. R. <strong>–</strong> SENIOR, R. C., A Tax Receipt from Hellenistic Bactria. 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 261<strong>–</strong>280<br />

HOLLMANN, A., A Curse Tablet from the Circus at Antioch. 145 (2003) 67<strong>–</strong>82<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Curse Tablet from Antioch against Babylas the Greengrocer . 177 (2011) 157<strong>–</strong>165<br />

HOLT, F. L., Bayer’s Coin of Eucratides: A Miscalculation Corrected. 174 (2010) 289<strong>–</strong>290<br />

HOLUM, K. G. <strong>–</strong> di SEGNI, L. <strong>–</strong> PATRICH, J., A Schedule of Fees (sportulae) for Official Services from Caesarea Maritima, Israel. 145 (2003) 273<strong>–</strong><br />

300<br />

HONIGMAN, S., Abraham in Egypt: Hebrew and Jewish-Aramaic Names in Egypt and Judaea in Hellenistic and Early Roman Times. 146 (2004) 279<strong>–</strong><br />

297<br />

HOOGENDIJK, F. A. J., Eine byzantinische Dialysis-Urkunde. 107 (1995) 105<strong>–</strong>112<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Brief des praefectus annonae Alexandriae mit amtlicher Meldung der Ablieferung und Registration von Weizen. 112 (1996) 165<strong>–</strong>177


Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff. 27<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Note on P. Kellis I 82. 113 (1996) 216<strong>–</strong>218<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Vindob. G 31933: Griechische Übersetzung einer demotisch-griechischen Hauskaufurkunde. 156 (2006) 199<strong>–</strong>216<br />

HOOVER, O. D., A Dedication to Aphrodite Epekoos for Demetrius I Soter and his Family. 131 (2000) 106<strong>–</strong>110<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Dethroning Seleucus VII Philometor (Cybiosactes): Epigraphical Arguments Against a Late Seleucid Monarch. 151 (2005) 95<strong>–</strong>99<br />

HOPE, C. A., The Archaeological Context of the Discovery of Leaves from a Manichaean Codex. 117 (1997) 156<strong>–</strong>161<br />

HORDERN, J., An Erotic Inscription from Marisa, Judaea (I. U. Powell, Collectanea Alexandrina 184). 126 (1999) 81<strong>–</strong>82 (Corrigendum dazu: 133<br />

(2000) 202)<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes on the Orphic Papyrus from Gurôb (P. Gurôb 1; Pack 2 2464). 129 (2000) 131<strong>–</strong>140<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Machon and Philoxenus. 133 (2000) 42<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Fragment of Choral Lyric (P. Oxy. 674). 134 (2001) 13<strong>–</strong>14<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Philodemus and the Poems of Diagoras. 136 (2001) 33<strong>–</strong>38<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Sumerian Asses and Iambic Poetry. 136 (2001) 39<strong>–</strong>40<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Sophron, fr. 171, and Theocritus 15. 140 (2002) 1<strong>–</strong>2<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Word-order and §klogÆ in Sophron and Demetrius, On Poems 2, cols. 55<strong>–</strong>60. 141 (2002) 75<strong>–</strong>82<br />

HORSLEY, G. H. R. <strong>–</strong> KEARSLEY, R. A., Another Boundary Stone between Tymbrianassos and Sagalassos in Pisidia. 121 (1998) 123<strong>–</strong>129<br />

van der HORST, P. W., Papyrus Egerton 5: Christian or Jewish? 121 (1998) 173<strong>–</strong>182<br />

van der HORST, P. W. <strong>–</strong> MUSSIES, G., A Greek Christian Epitaph in Utrecht. 110 (1996) 285<strong>–</strong>289<br />

HORSTER, M., Statthalter von Thrakien unter Commodus. 147 (2004) 247<strong>–</strong>258<br />

HORSTKOTTE, H., Systematische Aspekte der munera publica in der römischen Kaiserzeit. 111 (1996) 233<strong>–</strong>255<br />

<strong>–</strong>, SB 7523 und der Veteranenstatus Mitte des 2. Jh.s n. Chr. 111 (1996) 256<strong>–</strong>258<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Xenokritai beim Praefectus Aegypti (P. Oxy. 3016). 112 (1996) 192<strong>–</strong>196<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Die 1804 Konventseingaben in P. Yale 61. 114 (1996) 189<strong>–</strong>193<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Vom Honoratiorenzirkel zur Strafanstalt? Rekrutierungsvorschriften für die spätrömische Kurie. 125 (1999) 243<strong>–</strong>248<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Die principales des spätrömischen Dekurionenrates. 130 (2000) 272<strong>–</strong>278<br />

HORSTKOTTE, H. <strong>–</strong> YAKOBSON, A., “Yes, quaestor.” A Republican Politician Versus the Power of the Clerks. 116 (1997) 247<strong>–</strong>248<br />

HORVÁTH, L., Die Leidensgeschichte des Heiligen Pamun. Bemerkungen zu P.Oxy. 4759. 165 (2008) 209<strong>–</strong>211<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Dating Hyperides’ Against Diondas. 166 (2008) 27<strong>–</strong>34<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Hyperides’ Against Diondas (Addenda). 166 (2008) 35<strong>–</strong>36<br />

HORVÁTH, L. <strong>–</strong> TCHERNETSKA, N. <strong>–</strong> HANDLEY, E. W. <strong>–</strong> AUSTIN, C., New Readings in the Fragment of Hyperides’ Against Timandros from the<br />

Archimedes Palimpsest. 162 (2007) 1<strong>–</strong>4<br />

HÖSCHELE, R. <strong>–</strong> KONSTAN, D., Posidippus col. IV 30<strong>–</strong>35 = 25 Austin<strong>–</strong>Bastianini. 156 (2006) 99<strong>–</strong>102<br />

HOUSTON, G. W., Onesimus the Librarian. 114 (1996) 205<strong>–</strong>208<br />

del HOYO, J., Duratón, municipio romano. A propósito de un fragmento inédito de ley municipal. 108 (1995) 140<strong>–</strong>144<br />

HOYOS, D., Polybius and the Papyrus: the Persuasiveness of P. Rylands III 491. 134 (2001) 71<strong>–</strong>79<br />

de HOZ, Mª P., Henoteísmo y magia en una inscripción de Hispania. 118 (1997) 227<strong>–</strong>230<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Literacy in Rural Anatolia: the Testimony of the Confession Inscriptions. 155 (2006) 139<strong>–</strong>144<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Inscripciones griegas de oriente introducidas en España por el comercio de antigüedades. 155 (2006) 145<strong>–</strong>149<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A New Set of simulacra gentium Identified by Greek Inscriptions in the so-called “House of Terpsichore” in Valentia (Spain). 163 (2007) 131<strong>–</strong>146<br />

HUANG, R. <strong>–</strong> POWERS, J. <strong>–</strong> DIMITROVA, N. <strong>–</strong> SMILGIES, D.-M. <strong>–</strong> BILDERBACK, D. H. <strong>–</strong> CLINTON, K. <strong>–</strong> THORNE, R. E., X-ray Fluorescence<br />

Recovers Writing from Ancient Inscriptions. 152 (2005) 221<strong>–</strong>227<br />

HÜBNER, U. <strong>–</strong> WEISS, P., Eine neu entdeckte griechische Grabinschrift aus aṭ-Ṭurra in Nordjordanien. 161 (2007) 177<strong>–</strong>180<br />

HUGHES, D. D., A ‘Heroizing’ Gravestone from Thera. 133 (2000) 122<br />

HUMPHREYS, S. C., Notes on Attic Prosopography. 160 (2007) 65<strong>–</strong>75<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Some Problematical Attic ‘Lists’ with Tribe and Deme Headings. 172 (2010) 75<strong>–</strong>84<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Paranoiac Sycophant? The Curse Tablet NM 14470 (D. R. Jordan and J. Curbera, <strong>ZPE</strong> 166, 2008, 135<strong>–</strong>150). 172 (2010) 85<strong>–</strong>86<br />

HURLET, Fr., La désignation de L. Egnatius Victor Lollianus au proconsulat d’Asie. A Propos de CIL, VI, 41223. 153 (2005) 271<strong>–</strong>279<br />

HURST, A. <strong>–</strong> RUDHARDT, J., Stellungnahme. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 154<br />

AL-HUSAN, A. G. <strong>–</strong> KENNEDY, D., New Milestones from Northern Jordan: 1992<strong>–</strong>1995. 113 (1996) 257<strong>–</strong>262<br />

HUSS, W., Ptolemaios der Sohn. 121 (1998) 229<strong>–</strong>250<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Noch ein Mord im Haus des Ptolemaios? 140 (2002) 40<strong>–</strong>42<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Noch einmal: Ptolemaios der Sohn. 149 (2004) 232<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zur Invasion Ptolemaios’ VIII. Soters II. in Ägypten (103 v. Chr.). 157 (2006) 168<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zu Finanzjahr-Daten des 39. Jahres Ptolemaios’ II. 159 (2007) 280<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Die Tochter Berenike oder die Schwiegertochter Berenike? Bemerkungen zu einigen Epigrammen des Poseidippos von Pella. 165 (2008) 55<strong>–</strong>57<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zur Gründung von „Arsinoë bei Kyrene“. 165 (2008) 58<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zur Datierung von O. dem. Stras. 283. 178 (2011) 236<br />

HUSSEIN, A. <strong>–</strong> WAGNER, G., Une dédicace grecque du grand Temple d’Esment-el Kharab. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 109<strong>–</strong>112<br />

HUSSON, G. <strong>–</strong> CAPRON, L. <strong>–</strong> DUMOULIN, C. <strong>–</strong> FOURNET, J.-L., Corrigenda aux P. Reinach II. 150 (2004) 207<strong>–</strong>213<br />

HUSSON, G. <strong>–</strong> DUMOULIN, C., Quelques lettres privées de la collection Théodore Reinach. 129 (2000) 215<strong>–</strong>222<br />

HUTCHINSON, G. O., The New Posidippus and Latin Poetry. 138 (2002) 1<strong>–</strong>10<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Aetia: Callimachus’ Poem of Knowledge. 145 (2003) 47<strong>–</strong>59<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Euripides’ Other Hippolytus. 149 (2004) 15<strong>–</strong>28<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Metamorphosis of Metamorphosis: P. Oxy. 4711 and Ovid. 155 (2006) 71<strong>–</strong>84<br />

HUTTNER, U., Der Kaiser als Garant sakraler Kontinuität. Überlegungen zu CIL III 709. 146 (2004) 193<strong>–</strong>201<br />

HUYS, M., P. Oxy. 61.4099: A Combination of Mythographic Lists with Sentences of the Seven Wise Men. 113 (1996) 205<strong>–</strong>212<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Some Notes on a Kellis Ostracon with the Legend of Tennes and Hemithea (= LDAB 10306). 152 (2005) 203<strong>–</strong>208<br />

HUYS, M. <strong>–</strong> BAPLU, N., P.Bouriant 1, fol. I<strong>–</strong>V: Re-edition and Commentary of the Syllabic Word-lists. 169 (2009) 29<strong>–</strong>57<br />

HUYS, M. <strong>–</strong> CLARYSSE, W., A Verse Inscription from the Temple of Ain Labakha. 113 (1996) 213<strong>–</strong>215<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Soldier’s Epitaph Rescued from the Sea. 143 (2003) 147<strong>–</strong>148<br />

HUYS, M. <strong>–</strong> SCHMIDT, Th., The Syllabic Name-Lists on O. Crum 525 (UC inv. 32222). Re-edition and Commentary. 134 (2001) 145<strong>–</strong>162<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Toronto Ostracon with a List of Monosyllables (2718 Pack 2 ): Re-Edition with Commentary. 152 (2005) 209<strong>–</strong>217<br />

IASIELLO, I. <strong>–</strong> SOLIN, H., Due iscrizioni dal territorio di Morcone. 178 (2011) 279<strong>–</strong>284


28 Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff.<br />

IÇTEN, Ç. <strong>–</strong> ENGELMANN, H., Inschriften aus Ephesos und Metropolis. 108 (1995) 88<strong>–</strong>94<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Inschriften aus Ephesos und Kolophon. 120 (1998) 83<strong>–</strong>91<br />

IDIRÈNE, H., Nouvelles inscriptions de l’antique TVBVSVPTV (Tiklat ou El-Kseur). 140 (2002) 239<strong>–</strong>244<br />

IMMERWAHR, H. R., Measuring the Wine. 151 (2005) 100<strong>–</strong>104<br />

IÑESTA MENA, J. <strong>–</strong> SAQUETE CHAMIZO, J. C., Un fragmento de ley municipal hallado en la Baeturia Turdulorum (conventus Cordubensis, provincia<br />

Baetica). 168 (2009) 293<strong>–</strong>297<br />

INGROSSO, P., Menandro, Aspis 140<strong>–</strong>148 J. e PSI 126 I r . <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>) 23<strong>–</strong>26<br />

IOANNIDOU, G., A Note on sunaktikÒw. 118 (1997) 162<br />

IRBY-MASSIE, G. L., The Roman Army and the Cult of the Campestres. 113 (1996) 293<strong>–</strong>300<br />

IRVINE, J. A. D., Keres in Stesichorus’ Geryoneis: P. Oxy. 2617 fr. 1 (a)<strong>–</strong>(b) = SLG 21 Reconsidered. 115 (1997) 37<strong>–</strong>46<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Euripides’ Ion l. 1 and Pap. Herc. 1088 2 a Reconsidered. 117 (1997) 1<strong>–</strong>8<br />

ISAAC, B., Dedications to Zeus Olybris. 117 (1997) 126<strong>–</strong>128<br />

ISAAC, B. <strong>–</strong> COTTON, H. M. <strong>–</strong> di SEGNI, L. <strong>–</strong> ECK, W., Corpus Inscriptionum Judaeae/Palaestinae. 127 (1999) 307<strong>–</strong>308<br />

ISAGER, S., The Pride of Halikarnassos. Editio princeps of an inscription from Salmakis. 123 (1998) 1<strong>–</strong>23<br />

ISAGER, S. <strong>–</strong> PEDERSEN, P., Hadrian, Sabina and Halikarnassos <strong>–</strong> Some Epigraphic Evidence. <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>) 95<strong>–</strong><strong>101</strong><br />

d’ISANTO, G., Rilettura di un’iscrizione cristiana di Capua del 360 d.C. (AE 1901, 168). <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 183<strong>–</strong>186<br />

İŞKAN-IŞIK, H. <strong>–</strong> ECK, W. <strong>–</strong> ENGELMANN, H., Der Leuchtturm von Patara und Sex. Marcius Priscus als Statthalter der Provinz Lycia von Nero bis<br />

Vespasian. 164 (2008) 91<strong>–</strong>121<br />

ISLER, H. P., GERRAI <strong>–</strong> ein neuer inschriftlicher Beleg aus Sizilien. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 104<strong>–</strong>106<br />

ISTASSE, N., Les fonctions exercées par les affranchis en Égypte romaine d’après les papyrus et ostraca grecs et latins. 132 (2000) 197<strong>–</strong>210<br />

ITGENSHORST, T., Das mythologische Fragment P. Vindob. Gr. 26727: Eine neue Lesung. 119 (1997) 189<strong>–</strong>192<br />

IVANOV, R. <strong>–</strong> DANA, D., Deux épitaphes latines inédites d’Abritus (Mésie Inférieure). Considérations sur le peuplement d’Abritus. <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>) 235<strong>–</strong><br />

244<br />

IVANOV, R. <strong>–</strong> ECK, W., C. Iulius Victor, senatorischer Legat von Moesia inferior unter Valerianus und Gallienus und das Kastell Sostra-Siosta. 170<br />

(2009) 191<strong>–</strong>200<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zwei Votivinschriften aus Ratiaria in der Provinz Moesia superior. 174 (2010) 201<strong>–</strong>205<br />

IVANTCHIK, A. <strong>–</strong> POGORELETS, O. <strong>–</strong> SAVVOV, R., A New Roman Military Diploma from the Territory of the Ukraine. 163 (2007) 255<strong>–</strong>262<br />

IVERSEN, P. A., A Rediscovered Fragment of GIBM 343 (Cos). 125 (1999) 182<strong>–</strong>184<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Thasian Amphora Stamp from Olbia on Display at the Cleveland Public Library. 145 (2003) 140<br />

JACKSON, A. H., An Oracle for Raiders? 108 (1995) 95<strong>–</strong>99<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Argos’ Victory over Corinth. 132 (2000) 295<strong>–</strong>311<br />

JACKSON, H. M., A New Proposal for the Origin of the Hermetic God Poimandres. 128 (1999) 95<strong>–</strong>106<br />

JACKSON, S., Callimachus, Istrus and the Statue of Delian Apollo. 110 (1996) 43<strong>–</strong>48<br />

JACOBS, J., Fragment of a Petition (?) to the Strategos Sarapion alias Apollonianos (II). 148 (2004) 243<strong>–</strong>244<br />

JACOVIDES, M. L. <strong>–</strong> McNAMEE, K., Annotations to the Speech of the Muses (Plato Republic 546B<strong>–</strong>C). 144 (2003) 31<strong>–</strong>50<br />

JAILLARD, D., À propos du fragment 35 de Callimaque. 132 (2000) 143<strong>–</strong>144<br />

JAKOBI, R., Zum neuen Tiberius Claudius Donatus. 116 (1997) 28<strong>–</strong>30<br />

JAKOBI, R. <strong>–</strong> LUPPE, W., P. Oxy. 4458 col. I: Aristoteles redivivus. 131 (2000) 15<strong>–</strong>18<br />

JANKO, R., The Physicist as Hierophant: Aristophanes, Socrates and the Authorship of the Derveni Papyrus. 118 (1997) 61<strong>–</strong>94<br />

<strong>–</strong>, More of Euripides’ Hercules bis in P. Hibeh 179. 136 (2001) 1<strong>–</strong>6<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Derveni Papyrus: an Interim Text. 141 (2002) 1<strong>–</strong>62<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Empedocles, On Nature I 233<strong>–</strong>364: a New Reconstruction of P. Strasb. gr. Inv. 1665<strong>–</strong>6. 150 (2004) 1<strong>–</strong>26<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Reconstructing (again) the Opening of the Derveni Papyrus. 166 (2008) 37<strong>–</strong>51<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Some Notes on the New Hyperides (Against Diondas). 170 (2009) 16<br />

JANON, M. <strong>–</strong> CHRISTOL, M., Albarinus, dieu indigène dans la cité de Carpentras (Gaule Narbonnaise). 146 (2004) 272<strong>–</strong>278<br />

JIMÉNEZ SAN CRISTÓBAL, A. I., Un iniziato sotto un tumulo a Cuma? 161 (2007) 105<strong>–</strong>114<br />

JOHANSSON, M., The Inscription from Troizen: A Decree of Themistokles? 137 (2001) 69<strong>–</strong>92<br />

JOHNSON, P. B. <strong>–</strong> OATES, J. F. <strong>–</strong> WEINBERG, R. J. <strong>–</strong> SOSIN, J. D., Reading Invisible Ink: Digital Imaging of P. Duk. inv. 716. 127 (1999) 127<strong>–</strong>130<br />

JOHNSON, W. A., P. Hibeh II 193 (Iliad VI 4<strong>–</strong>7). 139 (2002) 1<strong>–</strong>2<br />

JOHNSTON, A. W., On Some Graffiti from Aiani. 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 81<strong>–</strong>82 (Corrigendum dazu: 106 (1995) 96)<br />

<strong>–</strong>, PET; Food for Thought. 133 (2000) 236<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes on Two Inscriptions on Cypriot Statuettes. 144 (2003) 164<strong>–</strong>166<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Pots and Tetrobols. 152 (2005) 115<strong>–</strong>120<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Panathenaic Amphorae, Again. 161 (2007) <strong>101</strong><strong>–</strong>104<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Leontini <strong>–</strong> Some Remarks on Epichoric Texts. 175 (2010) 150<strong>–</strong>152<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Wool or Pots at Aiani? 175 (2010) 153<strong>–</strong>154<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Megarian Mystery. 176 (2011) 177<strong>–</strong>178<br />

JOHNSTON, D., Municipal Funds in the Light of Chapter 69 of the lex Irnitana. 111 (1996) 199<strong>–</strong>207<br />

JONES, A., On the Planetary Table, Dublin TCD Pap. F. 7. 107 (1995) 255<strong>–</strong>258<br />

<strong>–</strong>, On the Reconstructed Macedonian and Egyptian Lunar Calendars. 119 (1997) 157<strong>–</strong>166<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Greek Papyrus Containing Babylonian Lunar Theory. 119 (1997) 167<strong>–</strong>172<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes on Astronomical Papyri. 121 (1998) 203<strong>–</strong>210<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Three Astronomical Tables from Tebtunis. 121 (1998) 211<strong>–</strong>219<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Two Astronomical Tables: P. Berol. 21240 and 21359. 125 (1999) 201<strong>–</strong>205<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Calendrica I: New Callippic Dates. 129 (2000) 141<strong>–</strong>158<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Calendrica II: Date Equations from the Reign of Augustus. 129 (2000) 159<strong>–</strong>166<br />

<strong>–</strong>, More Astronomical Tables from Tebtunis. 134 (2001) 211<strong>–</strong>220<br />

<strong>–</strong>, IG XII,1 913: An Astronomical Inscription from Hellenistic Rhodes. 158 (2006) 104<strong>–</strong>110<br />

JONES, A. <strong>–</strong> BRASHEAR, W., An Astronomical Table Containing Jupiter’s Synodic Phenomena. 125 (1999) 206<strong>–</strong>210<br />

JONES, C. P., Atticus in Ephesus. 124 (1998) 89<strong>–</strong>94<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Claudian Monument at Patara. 137 (2001) 161<strong>–</strong>168<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Epigraphica. 139 (2002) 108<strong>–</strong>116


Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff. 29<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Epigraphica IV<strong>–</strong>V. 142 (2003) 127<strong>–</strong>133<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Epigraphica VI<strong>–</strong>VII. 144 (2003) 157<strong>–</strong>163<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Epigraphica VIII<strong>–</strong>IX. 146 (2004) 93<strong>–</strong>98<br />

<strong>–</strong>, An Athenian Document Mentioning Julius Nicanor. 154 (2005) 161<strong>–</strong>172<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Three New Letters of the Emperor Hadrian. 161 (2007) 145<strong>–</strong>156<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Gladiator Epigrams from Beroea and Stratonikeia (Caria). 163 (2007) 45<strong>–</strong>48<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Hyperides and the Sale of Slave-Families. 164 (2008) 19<strong>–</strong>20<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Neronian Inscription on the Lighthouse of Patara. 166 (2008) 153<strong>–</strong>154<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Inscription from Tel Maresha for Olympiodoros. 171 (2009) 100<strong>–</strong>104<br />

<strong>–</strong>, An Apamean at Philippopolis. 176 (2011) 96<strong>–</strong>98<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Julius Nicanor Again. 178 (2011) 79<strong>–</strong>83<br />

<strong>–</strong>, An Inscription seen by Agathias. 179 (2011) 107<strong>–</strong>115<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Correction to “An Inscription seen by Agathias” (<strong>ZPE</strong> 179 [2011] 107<strong>–</strong>115). 180 (<strong>2012</strong>) 126<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zeus Anabatênos and Zeus Kersoullos. 180 (<strong>2012</strong>) 233<strong>–</strong>236<br />

JONES, C. P. <strong>–</strong> AVRAM, A., An Actor from Byzantium in a New Epigram from Tomis. 178 (2011) 126<strong>–</strong>134<br />

JONES, C. P. <strong>–</strong> BOWERSOCK, G. W., A New Inscription from Panticapaeum. 156 (2006) 117<strong>–</strong>128<br />

JONES, N. F., The Organization of Corinth Again. 120 (1998) 49<strong>–</strong>56<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Epigraphic Evidence for Farmstead Residence in Attica. 133 (2000) 75<strong>–</strong>90<br />

de JONG, T. <strong>–</strong> WORP, K. A., A Greek Horoscope From 373 A.D. 106 (1995) 235<strong>–</strong>240<br />

<strong>–</strong>, More Greek Horoscopes from Kellis (Dakleh Oasis). 137 (2001) 203<strong>–</strong>214<br />

JORBA, N. <strong>–</strong> BENZINA BEN ABDALLAH, Z. <strong>–</strong> CARANDE, R. <strong>–</strong> FERNÁNDEZ, C. <strong>–</strong> GÓMEZ PALLARÈS, J., Carmina Latina Epigraphica Inedita<br />

Ammaedarae. 152 (2005) 89<strong>–</strong>113<br />

JORDAN, D. R., Notes from Carthage. 111 (1996) 115<strong>–</strong>123<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Greek Verses from Stabiae. 111 (1996) 124<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Scribal Error at PGM II 37. 123 (1998) 24<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Three Texts from Lokroi Epizephyrioi. 130 (2000) 95<strong>–</strong>103<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ephesia Grammata at Himera. 130 (2000) 104<strong>–</strong>107<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Cloud-drivers and Damage from Hail. 133 (2000) 147<strong>–</strong>148<br />

<strong>–</strong>, “Written” Instructions for the Dead. An Example from Mordovia. 134 (2001) 80 (Corrigendum dazu: 137 (2001) 34)<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes on Two Michigan Magical Papyri. 136 (2001) 183<strong>–</strong>193<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Intrusions into the Text of the Amulet P. Kellis G. I 87? 137 (2001) 34<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Phallus or Fleas at PBerol inv. 17202.31? 141 (2002) 139<strong>–</strong>141<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Curse on Charioteers and Horses at Rome. 141 (2002) 141<strong>–</strong>147 (Corrigendum dazu: 144 (2003) 30)<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Rivers, Seas, and Rocks at PGM IV 360 and SupplMag 47.14. 147 (2004) 145<br />

<strong>–</strong>, ÉApÒflegma, addendum lexicis, at PGM LXI 8. 147 (2004) 146<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Three Notes. 152 (2005) 155<strong>–</strong>156<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes on Verses in Cyranides, Book I. 154 (2005) 117<strong>–</strong>124<br />

JORDAN, D. R. <strong>–</strong> CURBERA, J., A Lead Curse Tablet in the National Archaeological Museum, Athens. 166 (2008) 135<strong>–</strong>150<br />

JORDAN, D. R. <strong>–</strong> KOTANSKY, R. D., Ritual Hexameters in the Getty Museum: Preliminary Edition. 178 (2011) 54<strong>–</strong>62<br />

JORDÁN CÓLERA, C., [K.14.1]: una nota de epigrafía paleohispánica. 172 (2010) 155<strong>–</strong>158<br />

JÖRDENS, A., Traianus Dacicus und die Datierung von SB XVI 12611. 102 (<strong>1994</strong>) 214<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Bodl. I 82: Ein proxre¤a-Vertrag. 116 (1997) 81<strong>–</strong>84<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Noch einmal: Norbanus praefectus Aegypti? 163 (2007) 195<strong>–</strong>199<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eine Notiz zu BGU I 159. 168 (2009) 257<strong>–</strong>258<br />

JÖRDENS, A. <strong>–</strong> HAGEDORN, D., Ein unbekannter Proculus und das Verbot der paenula: Eine Neuedition von BGU XVI 2558. 156 (2006) 169<strong>–</strong>178<br />

JOSPIN, J.-P. <strong>–</strong> RÉMY, B., Trois graffites sur céramique du Musée d’Aoste (Isère). 122 (1998) 263<strong>–</strong>264<br />

JOYAL, M., The Theages Papyri. 139 (2002) 43<strong>–</strong>45<br />

JUHEL, P. <strong>–</strong> NOGUERA BOREL, A. <strong>–</strong> RZEPKA, J. <strong>–</strong> SEK<strong>UND</strong>A, N. V., A New Greek Inscription from the Area of Tremnik (Republic of<br />

Macedonia/Skopje). 161 (2007) 170<strong>–</strong>172<br />

JUHEL, P. <strong>–</strong> SEK<strong>UND</strong>A, N. V., The agema and ‘the other Peltasts’ in the late Antigonid Army, and in the Drama/Cassandreia Conscription diagramma.<br />

170 (2009) 104<strong>–</strong>108<br />

JUHEL, P. <strong>–</strong> TEMELKOSKI, D., Fragments de «boucliers macédoniens» au nom du roi Démétrios trouvés à Staro Bonče (République de Macédoine).<br />

Rapport préliminaire et présentation épigraphique. 162 (2007) 165<strong>–</strong>180<br />

KAESSER, Ch., Callimachus, Fr. 1 Pf. on the Meaning of Song. 150 (2004) 39<strong>–</strong>42<br />

KAH, D. <strong>–</strong> COWEY, J. M. S., Bemerkungen zu Texten aus BGU I<strong>–</strong>IV. Teil I: Zensusdeklarationen. 163 (2007) 147<strong>–</strong>182<br />

KAJAVA, M., The Name of a Clarissima Restored (CIL VI 1629). 125 (1999) 277<strong>–</strong>278<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Postifanius? 130 (2000) 261<strong>–</strong>262<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Some L. Silii. 136 (2001) 277<strong>–</strong>278<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eresian Memories. 139 (2002) 89<strong>–</strong>107<br />

KALDELLIS, A. <strong>–</strong> LÓPEZ-RUIZ, C., A New Reading of the Stele of Andron (IG II/III 2 10665): Only One Son Died, Not Two. 176 (2011) 57<strong>–</strong>59<br />

KALTSAS, D., Ein Streit zwischen Epergoi in P. Hels. 1. 142 (2003) 214<strong>–</strong>220<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Kritisches zu Urkunden I: Zu P. Heid. VI 363. 151 (2005) 133<strong>–</strong>140<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Kritische und exegetische Beiträge zu den Papyri des tachygraphischen Lehrbuchs. 161 (2007) 215<strong>–</strong>251<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Dioryvtikã. 171 (2009) 186<strong>–</strong>192<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Epigone-Angehörige in numerierten Hipparchien? 177 (2011) 220<strong>–</strong>221<br />

KALTSAS, D. <strong>–</strong> COWEY, J. M. S., P. Eleph. DAIK 1. 123 (1998) 149<strong>–</strong>150<br />

KALVESMAKI, J., Isopsephic Inscriptions from Iasos (Inschriften von Iasos 419) and Shnān (IGLS 1403). 161 (2007) 261<strong>–</strong>268<br />

KANAVOU, N. <strong>–</strong> CATLING, R. W. V., The Gravestone of Meniketes Son of Menestheus: IPrusa 1028 and 1054. 163 (2007) 103<strong>–</strong>117<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Dionysikles Son of Posideos from Teos. 163 (2007) 118<strong>–</strong>120<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Hikesios Son of Lykinos of Kolophon, Victor in the Boys Wrestling at Olympia, and Pausanias VI 17.4. 165 (2008) 109<strong>–</strong>110<br />

KANNICHT, R., Die Versinschrift Nr. 2 von Armavir und trag. adesp. F 279g. 120 (1998) 13<strong>–</strong>14<br />

KANTIRÉA, M., Le culte impérial à Chypre: relecture des documents épigraphiques. 167 (2008) 91<strong>–</strong>112


30 Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff.<br />

KANTOR, G., Procuratorial Jurisdiction in the lex portorii Asiae. 179 (2011) 155<strong>–</strong>158<br />

KAPRANOS, N. <strong>–</strong> MARTÍNEZ FERNÁNDEZ, Á. <strong>–</strong> TSATSAKI, N., Una inscripción inédita de Chamalevri, Creta. 157 (2006) 87<strong>–</strong>94<br />

KARADIMA-MATSA, Ch. <strong>–</strong> CLINTON, K., Korrane, a Sacred Woman in Samothrace. 138 (2002) 87<strong>–</strong>92<br />

KARAMANOU, I., The Hektor<strong>–</strong>Deiphobos Agon in Euripides’ Alexandros (frr. 62a<strong>–</strong>b K.: P.Stras. 2342, 2 and 2343). 178 (2011) 35<strong>–</strong>47<br />

KARWIESE, St. <strong>–</strong> ENGELMANN, H., Zwei ephesische Münzmeister. 130 (2000) 155<strong>–</strong>157<br />

KASSEL, R., Aus der Arbeit an den Poetae Comici Graeci. 114 (1996) 57<strong>–</strong>59<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Babingtons Hypereidesfragmente (Bb. I<strong>–</strong>VI). 125 (1999) 75<strong>–</strong>76<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Aus der Arbeit an den Poetae Comici Graeci. 128 (1999) 29<strong>–</strong>32<br />

<strong>–</strong>, IG XII 6,1. 132 (2000) 132<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Gesandtschaft in Ithaka. 144 (2003) 77<strong>–</strong>78<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Aus der Arbeit an den Poetae Comici Graeci. 145 (2003) 23<strong>–</strong>29 (Corrigendum dazu: 147 (2004) 44)<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Aus der Arbeit an den Poetae Comici Graeci. 154 (2005) 59<strong>–</strong>68 (Nachtrag dazu: 155 (2006) 22; Corrigendum dazu: 158 (2006) 88)<br />

<strong>–</strong>, CEG 84. 158 (2006) 28<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Das Opfer des Stratonikos. 163 (2007) 44<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Servilius Damokrates in Pap. Ant. III 139 und 186. 174 (2010) 49<strong>–</strong>50<br />

KATZOFF, R., Polygamy in P. Yadin? 109 (1995) 128<strong>–</strong>132<br />

KAVANAGH, B. J., The Forum Augusti of CIL XIII, 6958. 112 (1996) 243<strong>–</strong>244<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Lollia Saturnina. 136 (2001) 229<strong>–</strong>232<br />

KAYACHEV, B., Eine Bemerkung zu CEG 556. 159 (2007) 189<strong>–</strong>190<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The So-Called Orphic Gold Tablets in Ancient Poetry and Poetics. 180 (<strong>2012</strong>) 17<strong>–</strong>37<br />

KAYSER, F., La carrière d’un procurateur du royaume du Norique. 122 (1998) 229<strong>–</strong>232<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Une dédicace aux Dioscures. 122 (1998) 233<strong>–</strong>234<br />

KAYSER, F. <strong>–</strong> BERTRANDY, F., Une inscription de Vienne reconstituée: l’épitaphe de T. Vireius Masuetus. 114 (1996) 209<strong>–</strong>212<br />

KAYSER, F. <strong>–</strong> RÉMY, B., Un doublet dans les inscriptions de Germanie supérieure du CIL XIII? (CIL XIII 6909 et 6918). 140 (2002) 237<strong>–</strong>238<br />

KEARSLEY, R. A., A Bilingual (Latin-Greek) Honour for Trajan from Syria. 144 (2003) 242<strong>–</strong>244 (Addendum dazu: 148 (2004) 196<strong>–</strong>197)<br />

KEARSLEY, R. A. <strong>–</strong> HORSLEY, G. H. R., Another Boundary Stone between Tymbrianassos and Sagalassos in Pisidia. 121 (1998) 123<strong>–</strong>129<br />

KEESLING, C. M., The Hermolykos/Kresilas Base and the Date of Kresilas of Kydonia. 147 (2004) 79<strong>–</strong>91<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Marathon Casualty List from Eua-Loukou and the Plinthedon Style in Attic Inscriptions. 180 (<strong>2012</strong>) 139<strong>–</strong>148<br />

KEESLING, C. <strong>–</strong> SENS, A., Posidippus on Rhodian Statue-Making (68.6 Austin<strong>–</strong>Bastianini; P. Mil. Vogl. VIII 309 XI 11). 148 (2004) 75<strong>–</strong>76<br />

KELLY, B., A Late-Antique Contract in the Collection of the Australian National University Classics Museum. 161 (2007) 207<strong>–</strong>214<br />

KENNEDY, D., Ala Phrygum and Ala VII Phrygum. 118 (1997) 300<strong>–</strong>304<br />

KENNEDY, D. <strong>–</strong> AL-HUSAN, A. G., New Milestones from Northern Jordan: 1992<strong>–</strong>1995. 113 (1996) 257<strong>–</strong>262<br />

KENZELMANN PFYFFER, A. <strong>–</strong> THEURILLAT, Th. <strong>–</strong> VERDAN, S., Graffiti d’époque géométrique provenant du sanctuaire d’Apollon Daphnéphoros à<br />

Erétrie. 151 (2005) 51<strong>–</strong>83<br />

KERKHECKER, A., Minima Callimachea. <strong>–</strong> Archilochus fr. 139 West: Another =¤caspiw-Poem? 111 (1996) 26<br />

KIEL-FREYTAG, A., Betrachtungen zur Usurpation des Illus und des Leontius (484<strong>–</strong>488 n. Chr.). 174 (2010) 291<strong>–</strong>301<br />

KIENAST, D., Zu den Homonoia-Vereinbarungen in der römischen Kaiserzeit. 109 (1995) 267<strong>–</strong>282<br />

KIRBIHLER, F., P. Vedius Rufus, père de P. Vedius Pollio. 160 (2007) 261<strong>–</strong>271<br />

KIROV, S., Gaius Iulius Rhascos. 178 (2011) 215<strong>–</strong>220<br />

KLINGENBERG, A., Caracalla, der Lebensretter: Bemerkungen zu CIL XIV 2596. 180 (<strong>2012</strong>) 302<strong>–</strong>306<br />

KLOSS, G., Die dritte Kolumne des Carmen de Bello Actiaco (P. Herc. 817). 116 (1997) 21<strong>–</strong>27<br />

KLOTZ, D., Loge¤a-Receipts and the Construction of Deir Shelwit. 168 (2009) 252<strong>–</strong>256<br />

KNUTZEN, G. H., Matensa ‚Suchende‘ der mykenische Name der späteren Demeter 120 (1998) 39<strong>–</strong>44<br />

KOBES, J., Anmerkungen zu einem hellenistischen Dekret aus Telmessos. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 299<strong>–</strong>300<br />

KOENEN, L., Papyrologie als Spezialdisziplin der Altertumskunde in Reinhold Merkelbachs Forschung und Lehre. 163 (2007) 3<strong>–</strong>12<br />

KOKKINIA, Chr., Zur Abkürzung der Homonymität in griechischen Inschriften. 111 (1996) 133<strong>–</strong>134<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Homer in der Latrine. 136 (2001) 179<strong>–</strong><strong>181</strong><br />

<strong>–</strong>, Letters of Roman Authorities on Local Dignitaries: The Case of Vedius Antoninus. 142 (2003) 197<strong>–</strong>213<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Making Sense of an Odd Inscription: MAMA VIII, 430 and the ‘Nail Tax’. 151 (2005) 259<strong>–</strong>262<br />

KOKKINOS, N., The Honorand of the Titulus Tiburtinus: C. Sentius Saturninus? 105 (1995) 21<strong>–</strong>36<br />

KOLB, A., Vereine „kleiner Leute“ und die kaiserliche Verwaltung. 107 (1995) 201<strong>–</strong>212<br />

KONRAD, C. F., ‘Domitius Calvisius’ in Plutarch. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 139<strong>–</strong>146<br />

KONSTAN, D. <strong>–</strong> HÖSCHELE, R., Posidippus col. IV 30<strong>–</strong>35 = 25 Austin<strong>–</strong>Bastianini. 156 (2006) 99<strong>–</strong>102<br />

KOOIKER, C. J., Deux milliaires retrouvés entre Aix-en-Provence et Tarascon. 124 (1998) 276<strong>–</strong>278<br />

<strong>–</strong>, An Unedited Milestone Inscription of Antoninus Pius from Southern France. 136 (2001) 286<strong>–</strong>288<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Epigraphy and Photography. 139 (2002) 303<strong>–</strong>304<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Not Unedited, but Unwanted. 140 (2002) 296<br />

KORHONEN, K., Erudite Forgeries or Families Seeking Distinction? Cesare Gaetani’s Inscriptions from Syracuse. 161 (2007) 291<strong>–</strong>298<br />

KORKUT, T. <strong>–</strong> TEKOĞLU, R., Grabinschriften aus Pamphylien und Lykien. 143 (2003) 105<strong>–</strong>116<br />

KORTEKAAS, G., Historia Apollonii regis Tyri. Eine Kurznotiz. 122 (1998) 60<br />

KOSMETATOU, E., Poseidippos, Epigr. 8 AB and Early Ptolemaic Cameos. 142 (2003) 35<strong>–</strong>42<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Rhoxane’s Dedications to Athena Polias. 146 (2004) 75<strong>–</strong>80<br />

<strong>–</strong>, On Large Gemstones. 146 (2004) 81<strong>–</strong>84<br />

KOSMETATOU, E. <strong>–</strong> PAPALEXANDROU, N., Size Matters: Poseidippos and the Colossi. 143 (2003) 53<strong>–</strong>58<br />

KOTANSKY, R. D. <strong>–</strong> JORDAN, D. R., Ritual Hexameters in the Getty Museum: Preliminary Edition. 178 (2011) 54<strong>–</strong>62<br />

KOUNOUCLAS, P. <strong>–</strong> SUMMA, D., A New Dedication from Eastern Lokris. 178 (2011) 203<strong>–</strong>206<br />

KOVÁCS, P., A numerus III Thracum in Pannonia Inferior? 121 (1998) 287<strong>–</strong>290<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Register zu Tituli Romani in Hungaria reperti. Supplementum. 154 (2005) 275<strong>–</strong>285<br />

KOVÁCS, P. <strong>–</strong> LŐRINCZ, B., Neue lateinische Inschriften aus Komitat Komárom-Esztergom I. 174 (2010) 277<strong>–</strong>287<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Altäre aus dem Auxiliarlager Solva. Neue römische Inschriften aus Komitat Komárom-Esztergom II. 179 (2011) 247<strong>–</strong>270<br />

KOVÁCS, P. <strong>–</strong> NÉMETH, M., Eine neue Bauinschrift aus Aquincum. 169 (2009) 249<strong>–</strong>254<br />

KOVÁCS, P. <strong>–</strong> PROHÁSZKA, P., Zwei verlorene griechische christliche Inschriften aus Sirmium. 164 (2008) 139<strong>–</strong>144


Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff. 31<br />

KOZIRAKIS, V. <strong>–</strong> FRANGOULAKI, P., Two Notes on Texts in BKT IX. 172 (2010) 199<strong>–</strong>200<br />

KRAMER, B. <strong>–</strong> HAGEDORN, D., Fragment eines grammatischen Traktats per‹ stoixe¤ou (P. Lit. Palau Rib. 35). 105 (1995) 155<strong>–</strong>159<br />

KRAMER, J., Der lateinisch-griechische Vergilpalimpsest aus Mailand. 111 (1996) 1<strong>–</strong>20<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zwischen Latein und Moselromanisch: Die Gondorfer Grabinschrift für Mauricius. 118 (1997) 281<strong>–</strong>286<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Von der „lex Wackernagel“ zur „lex Clarysse“: Zur Akzentuierung der Latinismen im Griechischen. 123 (1998) 129<strong>–</strong>134<br />

KRÄNZLEIN, A., Zu P. Oxy. LXI 4121. 113 (1996) 230<strong>–</strong>232<br />

KRASILNIKOFF, J. A., Attic felleÊw. Some Observations on Marginal Land and Rural Strategies in the Classical Period. 167 (2008) 37<strong>–</strong>49<br />

KRAUS, Th. J., P. Vindob. G 35835 (vormals 26132a) <strong>–</strong> Notizen über das Endgericht? 141 (2002) 149<strong>–</strong>154<br />

KREILER, B., Die Straßenbauinschrift des Prokonsuls L. Cassius Longinus im Tempetal. <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>) 230<strong>–</strong>234<br />

KREILER, B. M., Zur Datierung eines Volksbeschlusses von Thasos und zum makedonischen Statthaltersitz im 2. Jh. v. Chr. 174 (2010) 109<strong>–</strong>112<br />

KREMMYDAS, Chr., P. CtYBR inv. 200: A Private Letter about Preparations for a Journey. 142 (2003) 185<strong>–</strong>187<br />

KREUZSALER, C., Ein herakleopolitanischer Pachtvertrag mit „unmöglicher“ Konsuldatierung. 141 (2002) 191<strong>–</strong>198<br />

KRIECKHAUS, A., Vater und Sohn. Bemerkungen zu den severischen consules ordinarii M. Munatius Sulla Cerialis und M. Munatius Sulla Urbanus.<br />

153 (2005) 283<strong>–</strong>284<br />

KRISTENSEN, K. R., Gortynian Debt Bondage. Some New Considerations on IC IV 41 IV<strong>–</strong>VII,47 and 72 I.56<strong>–</strong>II.2, X.25<strong>–</strong>32. 149 (2004) 73<strong>–</strong>79<br />

KRITZAS, CH. B., A Greek Inscription from Tarraco (CIL II 2 /14,2 G16). <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>) 88<strong>–</strong>90<br />

KRON, G., The Distribution of Wealth at Athens in Comparative Perspective. 179 (2011) 129<strong>–</strong>138<br />

KROPP, A. <strong>–</strong> BLÄNSDORF, J. <strong>–</strong> SCHOLZ, M., „Perverse agas, comodo hoc perverse scriptu(m) est“ <strong>–</strong> ein Fluchtäfelchen aus Köln. 174 (2010) 272<strong>–</strong><br />

276<br />

KRUIT, N., The Date of P. Kellis I 45. 140 (2002) 151<strong>–</strong>153<br />

KRUIT, N. <strong>–</strong> WORP, K. A., P. Bad. IV 55: Ein neuer Text. 137 (2001) 215<strong>–</strong>219<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Remarks on Some Texts from Akoris. 140 (2002) 155<strong>–</strong>158<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Giss. I 106 Revisited. 145 (2003) 229<strong>–</strong>230<br />

KRUSCHWITZ, P., Die Datierung der Scipionenelogien CLE 6 und 7. 122 (1998) 273<strong>–</strong>285<br />

<strong>–</strong>, CLE 8, Zeile 1 <strong>–</strong> ein späterer Zusatz? 124 (1998) 261<strong>–</strong>262<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zu „Laudatio Turiae“ 2, 6a. 126 (1999) 88<strong>–</strong>90<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Die sprachlichen Anomalien der Werbeinschrift CIL X 7296. 130 (2000) 239<strong>–</strong>240<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notizen zu CIL I 2 1219. 133 (2000) 243<strong>–</strong>247<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zu republikanischen Carmina Latina Epigraphica. 136 (2001) 51<strong>–</strong>61<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Der Gebrauch von Y in republikanischen Grabinschriften. 138 (2002) 109<strong>–</strong>112<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zu republikanischen Carmina Latina Epigraphica (II). 140 (2002) 43<strong>–</strong>50<br />

<strong>–</strong>, H(ic) i(- - -) s(itus) e(st): Bedeutung und Verbreitung einer regional gebräuchlichen Sepulkralformel. 144 (2003) 213<strong>–</strong>216<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Writing On Trees: Restoring a Lost Facet of the Graeco-Roman Epigraphic Habit. 173 (2010) 45<strong>–</strong>62<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Attitudes Towards Wall Inscriptions in the Roman Empire. 174 (2010) 207<strong>–</strong>218<br />

KRUSE, Th., BGU III 981 und der Monat Ner≈neiow. 107 (1995) 85<strong>–</strong>94<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bemerkungen zu P. Oxy. XLIX 3474. 110 (1996) 121<strong>–</strong>123<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eine Neuedition von SB XII 10946. 111 (1996) 149<strong>–</strong>158<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Hamb. I 34, die probatokthnotrÒfoi von Euhemereia und die Schafe und Ziegen der MaikhnatianØ oÈs¤a. 120 (1998) 145<strong>–</strong>156<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Katãkrima <strong>–</strong> Strafzahlung oder Steuer? Überlegungen zur Steuererhebung im römischen Ägypten in iulisch-claudischer Zeit anhand von P. Oxy. XLI<br />

2971, SB XIV 11381, SPP IV p. 70<strong>–</strong>71, BGU VII 1613 und OGIS II 669. 124 (1998) 157<strong>–</strong>190<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Berl. Leihg. II 27 <strong>–</strong> Eine Richtigstellung. 126 (1999) 225<strong>–</strong>227<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Heid. Inv. G 2169: Plato, Res publica III. 130 (2000) 42<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zwei Pachtzinsquittungen aus dem Fayum (P. Heid. Inv. G 1729). 130 (2000) 201<strong>–</strong>206<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nachtrag zu Th. Kruse, <strong>ZPE</strong> 130 (2000) 42. 132 (2000) 222<br />

KRUSE, Th. <strong>–</strong> ARMONI, Ch., Papyri editae in memoriam Wm. Brashear II. 140 (2002) 165<strong>–</strong>176<br />

KUBINSKA, J., Tiberius Claudius Lycus de Thessalonique et son thiase. 137 (2001) 153<strong>–</strong>160<br />

KULIKOWSKI, M., The Epistula Honorii, Again. 122 (1998) 247<strong>–</strong>252<br />

KUSHNIR-STEIN, A., An Inscribed Lead Weight from Ashdod: A Reconsideration. 105 (1995) 81<strong>–</strong>84<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Two Inscribed Lead Weights of Agrippa II. 141 (2002) 295<strong>–</strong>297<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Palestinian Lead Weight Mentioning the Emperor Hadrian. 159 (2007) 291<strong>–</strong>292<br />

KUTZKO, D., Koritto in Herodas 6. 133 (2000) 35<strong>–</strong>41<br />

KWAPISZ, J., Muse vs. Muses in the P. Berol. inv. 13270. 164 (2008) 45<strong>–</strong>46<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Posidippus 118.15 A.<strong>–</strong>B. (SH 705.14): The Nile, not the Isles. 172 (2010) 27<strong>–</strong>28<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Posidippus at Sea. 176 (2011) 63<strong>–</strong>68<br />

LA’DA, C. <strong>–</strong> RUBINSTEIN, L., Greek Ostraca from Pselkis. 110 (1996) 135<strong>–</strong>155<br />

LAES, Chr., Pedagogues in Greek Inscriptions in Hellenistic and Roman Antiquity. 171 (2009) 113<strong>–</strong>122<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Midwives in Greek Inscriptions in Hellenistic and Roman Antiquity. 176 (2011) 154<strong>–</strong>162<br />

LAFFI, U., Osservazioni sul testo dell’inizio del capitolo della lex Irnitana, alla luce di un nuovo frammento della lex Villonensis. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>)<br />

147<strong>–</strong>153<br />

LAHI, B., Die Transportamphoren in der Sammlung des Archäologischen Instituts der Universität zu Köln. 129 (2000) 117<strong>–</strong>128<br />

LAHUSEN, G., Zu römischen Statuen und Bildnissen aus Gold und Silber. 128 (1999) 251<strong>–</strong>266<br />

LALLEMAN, P. J., Classical Echoes (Callimachus, Chariton) in the Acta Iohannis? 116 (1997) 66<br />

LAMBERT, S. D., Notes on Two Attic Horoi and some Corrigenda to The Phratries of Attica. 110 (1996) 77<strong>–</strong>83<br />

<strong>–</strong>, IG II 2 1471A and the Value of Gold in Athens in the 320s B.C. 110 (1996) 84<strong>–</strong>86<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Attic Genos Salaminioi and the Island of Salamis. 119 (1997) 85<strong>–</strong>106<br />

<strong>–</strong>, IG II 2 2345, Thiasoi of Herakles and the Salaminioi Again. 125 (1999) 93<strong>–</strong>130<br />

<strong>–</strong>, IG II 2 450, Athens and Asandros: A Note. 126 (1999) 129<strong>–</strong>130<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Sacrificial Calendar of the Marathonian Tetrapolis: A Revised Text. 130 (2000) 43<strong>–</strong>70<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Two Notes on Attic Leges Sacrae. 130 (2000) 71<strong>–</strong>80<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Erechtheum Workers of IG ii 2 1654. 132 (2000) 157<strong>–</strong>160<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ten Notes on Attic Inscriptions. 135 (2001) 51<strong>–</strong>62<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Fragmente athenischer Ehrendekrete aus der Zeit des Lamischen Krieges (zu Ag. XVI 94 und IG II 2 292). 136 (2001) 65<strong>–</strong>70


32 Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff.<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Only Extant Decree of Demosthenes. 137 (2001) 55<strong>–</strong>68<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Parerga I: IG I 3 240K, a Fragment of IG I 3 1185? 139 (2002) 69<strong>–</strong>71<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Parerga II: The Date of the Nemean Games. 139 (2002) 72<strong>–</strong>74<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Parerga III: The Genesia, Basile and Epops Again. 139 (2002) 75<strong>–</strong>82<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Fish, Low Fares and IG II 2 283. 140 (2002) 73<strong>–</strong>79<br />

<strong>–</strong>, On IG II 2 546. 141 (2002) 117<strong>–</strong>122<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Afterwords. 141 (2002) 122<strong>–</strong>124<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A House of the Piraeans? 146 (2004) 91<strong>–</strong>92<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Greek Inscriptions in the University Museum, Oxford, Mississippi. 148 (2004) <strong>181</strong><strong>–</strong>186<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Athenian State Laws and Decrees 352/1<strong>–</strong>322/1: I. Decrees Honouring Athenians. 150 (2004) 85<strong>–</strong>120<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Athenian State Laws and Decrees 352/1<strong>–</strong>322/1: II. Religious Regulations. 154 (2005) 125<strong>–</strong>159<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Athenian State Laws and Decrees 352/1<strong>–</strong>322/1: III. Decrees Honouring Foreigners. A. Citizenship, Proxeny and Euergesy. 158 (2006) 115<strong>–</strong>158<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Athenian State Laws and Decrees, 352/1<strong>–</strong>322/1: III. Decrees Honouring Foreigners. B. Other Awards. 159 (2007) <strong>101</strong><strong>–</strong>154<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Athenian State Laws and Decrees, 352/1<strong>–</strong>322/1: IV. Treaties and Other Texts. 161 (2007) 67<strong>–</strong>100<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Aglauros, the Euenoridai and the Autochthon of Atlantis. 167 (2008) 22<strong>–</strong>26<br />

LAMBERT, S. D. <strong>–</strong> ALESHIRE†, S. B., Making the Peplos for Athena: a New Edition of IG II 2 1060 + IG II 2 1036. 142 (2003) 65<strong>–</strong>86<br />

LAMBERT, S. D. <strong>–</strong> BLOK, J. H., The Appointment of Priests in Attic gene. 169 (2009) 95<strong>–</strong>121<br />

LAMBERT, S. D. <strong>–</strong> ELLIS JONES, J., Two Security Horoi from an Ore-washery at Agrileza, Southern Attica. 125 (1999) 131<strong>–</strong>136<br />

LANCELLOTTI, M. G., %eme!(e)ilam: Una messa a punto. 132 (2000) 248<strong>–</strong>254<br />

LANE, E. N., Chrysippus, Philodemus, and the God Men. 117 (1997) 65<strong>–</strong>66<br />

LANGDON, M. K., Hymettiana V: A Willing KatapÊgon. 148 (2004) 201<strong>–</strong>206<br />

LAPINI, W., I libri dell’Ephemeris di Ditti-Settimio. 117 (1997) 85<strong>–</strong>89<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Una variante-fantasma in Herod. 1.196.1. 121 (1998) 52<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Talete e l’eclissi del 585 (11 A 5 DK). 126 (1999) 115<strong>–</strong>116<br />

<strong>–</strong>, PGen. Inv. 271, col. XI, 40<strong>–</strong>41. 138 (2002) 14<strong>–</strong>16<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Sul nuovo Posidippo (P. Mil. Vogl. VIII 309, col. IV.30<strong>–</strong>35). 140 (2002) 13<strong>–</strong>14<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Il prodigio di Atena (Posidippo, P. Mil. Vogl. VIII 309, col. V.20<strong>–</strong>25). 141 (2002) 109<strong>–</strong>110<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Posidippo, epigr. 27 Austin<strong>–</strong>Bastianini. 142 (2003) 43<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Note posidippee. 143 (2003) 39<strong>–</strong>52<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Posidippo, Ep. 110 Austin<strong>–</strong>Bastianini. 149 (2004) 45<strong>–</strong>48<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Due note su POxy. 4030, col. V,21<strong>–</strong>31 (Eschine, Contro Timarco 51<strong>–</strong>52) e alcuni appunti su ka¤ ge ed ±d° ge nei testi greci. 152 (2005) 31<strong>–</strong>41<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Un’edizione posidippea dimenticata. 162 (2007) 61<strong>–</strong>62<br />

<strong>–</strong>, POxy. 22.2331, III 4 élÒgvw e una nota su Et. Gud. 562.24<strong>–</strong>25 St. 164 (2008) 47<strong>–</strong>52<br />

<strong>–</strong>, POxy. 70.4762, r. 8: la donna e l’asino. 174 (2010) 45<strong>–</strong>46<br />

LAPP, E. C., Kan¤skion als Glaslampentypus in einem Papyrus des frühen 2. Jh.s n. Chr. 127 (1999) 84<br />

LARRAIN, C. J., Miszellen zum scor. graec. 230 (F-III-11), 2. Teil. 106 (1995) 131<strong>–</strong>161<br />

LARSON, S., Reassessing an Archaic Boiotian Dedication (Delphi Museum Inv. No. 3078). 162 (2007) 99<strong>–</strong>106<br />

LAST, R., Five Unpublished tituli sepulcrales. 125 (1999) 249<strong>–</strong>252<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Inscribed Astragalus from Sha’ar Ha-‘Amaqim. 130 (2000) 248<br />

LAST, R. <strong>–</strong> ANGERT, A., Inscribed Slab from Caesarea Maritima. 114 (1996) 288<br />

LAST, R. <strong>–</strong> GERMAN, E., Roman Funeral Stele of a Boy Chrysanthus. 130 (2000) 249<strong>–</strong>252<br />

LAUDENBACH, B., Deux remontages de papyrus strasbourgeois (P. Stras. II 88 et P. Stras. IX 883) et les versos bilingues des archives de<br />

Pétéarsemtheus. 150 (2004) 215<strong>–</strong>219<br />

LAVECCHIA, S., P. Oxy. 2622 e il ‘Secondo Ditirambo’ di Pindaro. 110 (1996) 1<strong>–</strong>26<br />

LAVECCHIA, S. <strong>–</strong> MARTINELLI, M. C., P. Oxy. XXXV 2736. Quattro fragmenta dubia di Pindaro. 125 (1999) 1<strong>–</strong>24<br />

LAVIGNE, D. E. <strong>–</strong> ROMANO, A. J., Reading the Signs: The Arrangement of the New Posidippus Roll (P. Mil. Vogl. VIII 309, IV.7<strong>–</strong>VI.8). 146 (2004)<br />

13<strong>–</strong>24<br />

LÁZARO, R., Una nueva inscripción dedicada a Adriano. 153 (2005) 261<strong>–</strong>263<br />

LAZZARINI, M. L., Su un’iscrizione vascolare di Imera. 148 (2004) 85<strong>–</strong>86<br />

LE GUEN, B., Le palmarès de l’acteur-athlète: retour sur Syll. 3 1080 (Tégée). 160 (2007) 97<strong>–</strong>107<br />

LEBEDEV, A., A New Epigram for Harmodios and Aristogeiton. 112 (1996) 263<strong>–</strong>268<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Pharnabazos, the Diviner of Hermes. Two Ostraka with Curse Letters from Olbia. 112 (1996) 268<strong>–</strong>278<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Devotio of Xanthippos. Magic and Mystery Cults in Olbia. 112 (1996) 279<strong>–</strong>283<br />

LEBEK, W. D., Domitians Lex Lati und die Duumvirn, Aedilen und Quaestoren in Tab. Irn. Paragraph 18<strong>–</strong>20. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 253<strong>–</strong>292<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Die municipalen Curien oder Domitian als Republikaner: Lex Lati (Tab. Irn.) Paragraph 50(?) und 51. 107 (1995) 135<strong>–</strong>194<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Das Senatus Consultum de Cn. Pisone Patre und Tacitus. 128 (1999) 183<strong>–</strong>211<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Res gestae divi Augusti 34,1: Rudolf Kassels potens rerum omnium und ein neues Fragment des Monumentum Antiochenum. 146 (2004) 60<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Das neue lateinische Ianus-Gedicht aus Colle Maiorana in Latium. 150 (2004) 69<strong>–</strong>83<br />

LEE, M. M., Problems in Greek Dress Terminology: Kolpos and Apoptygma. 150 (2004) 221<strong>–</strong>224<br />

de LEEUW, M., Der Coislinianus 345 im Kloster Megisti Lavra (Athos). 131 (2000) 58<strong>–</strong>64<br />

LEHMANN, G. A., Elateia, Aitolien und Rom nach der Entscheidung des 2. Makedonischen Krieges. 127 (1999) 69<strong>–</strong>83<br />

<strong>–</strong>, ÉAndrolÆcion <strong>–</strong> Rom und der „Menschenfang“-Streit zwischen Kolophon und Metropolis. 144 (2003) 79<strong>–</strong>86 (Corrigendum dazu: 145 (2003) 30)<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Der Beginn der res gestae des Augustus und das politische exemplum des Cn. Pompeius Magnus. 148 (2004) 151<strong>–</strong>162<br />

LEHNUS, L., Riflessioni cronologiche sull’ultimo Callimaco. 105 (1995) 6<strong>–</strong>12<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Una testimonianza sull’Ipsipile euripidea. 112 (1996) 18<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ipotesi sul finale dell’Ecale. 117 (1997) 45<strong>–</strong>46<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Maas and the Crux in Callimachus’ Hymn to Delos 41. 131 (2000) 25<strong>–</strong>26<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Posidippean and Callimachean Queries. 138 (2002) 11<strong>–</strong>13<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Two Notes on Callimachean Fragments. 142 (2003) 31<strong>–</strong>33<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Callimachean Medley. 147 (2004) 27<strong>–</strong>32<br />

LEHNUS, L. <strong>–</strong> GALLAZZI, C., Due nuovi frammenti delle Diegeseis. Approssimazioni al III libro degli Aitia di Callimaco. 137 (2001) 7<strong>–</strong>18<br />

LEHOUX, D., The Parapegma Fragments from Miletus. 152 (2005) 125<strong>–</strong>140


Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff. 33<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Rethinking Parapegmata: The Puteoli Fragment. 157 (2006) 95<strong>–</strong>104<br />

LEIDIG, T., C. Carrinas C. f.: Überlegungen zu zwei Bronzemünzen der Treverer. 122 (1998) 211<strong>–</strong>218<br />

LEITH, D., The Antinoopolis Illustrated Herbal (PJohnson + PAntin. 3.214 = MP3 2095). 156 (2006) 141<strong>–</strong>156<br />

LELLI, E. <strong>–</strong> PARLATO, G., Le vittorie di Sosibio. 166 (2008) 59<strong>–</strong>65<br />

LELLI, I., Paroemiographicum Menandreum (Mis. 303). 159 (2007) 28<br />

LENDON, J. E., Contubernalis, Commanipularis, and Commilito in Roman Soldiers’ Epigraphy: Drawing the Distinction. 157 (2006) 270<strong>–</strong>276<br />

LENFANT, D., Ambassadeurs d’Athènes ou ambassadeurs du Roi? Note sur le décret honorant Héracleidès de Clazomènes (IG I 3 227). 173 (2010) 91<strong>–</strong><br />

96<br />

LENTINI, G., Note ad Alc. 7 V. e 306d V. 113 (1996) 5<strong>–</strong>6<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Due frammenti di Alceo e la descrizione di un simposio inusuale. 127 (1999) 47<strong>–</strong>51<br />

<strong>–</strong>, I simposi del tiranno: sui frr. 70<strong>–</strong>72 V. di Alceo. 139 (2002) 3<strong>–</strong>18<br />

LEPELLEY, Cl., Une inscription d’Heraclea Sintica (Macédoine) récemment découverte, révélant un rescrit de l’empereur Galère restituant ses droits à la<br />

cité. 146 (2004) 221<strong>–</strong>231<br />

LERNER, J. D., The Aï Khanoum Philosophical Papyrus. 142 (2003) 45<strong>–</strong>51<br />

LE ROUX, P., Armées, rhétorique et politique dans l’Empire gallo-romain. À propos de l’inscription d’Augsbourg. 115 (1997) 281<strong>–</strong>290<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Peregrini incolae. 154 (2005) 261<strong>–</strong>266<br />

LEROUXEL, F., Des prêts sans intérêt? Le taux d’intérêt dans le nome oxyrhynchite avant 79 après J.C. <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>) 161<strong>–</strong>172<br />

LETTA, C., Il “naufragio” di Caracalla in Cassio Dione, nell’Historia Augusta e nei commentari degli arvali. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 188<strong>–</strong>190<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nolet della lex Irnitana e [- - -]nset della lex Villonensis: una proposta di soluzione. 128 (1999) 306<strong>–</strong>308<br />

LEWIS, J. P., Hapax Legomenon? A New Reading of Inscriptiones Latinae Jugoslaviae 3, 2119. 179 (2011) 244<strong>–</strong>246<br />

LEWIS, N., Three Textual Notes on the New Monumentum Ephesenum. 107 (1995) 248<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Judah’s Bigamy. 116 (1997) 152<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The New Evidence on the Privileges of the Gerousiasts of Ephesos. 131 (2000) 99<strong>–</strong>100<br />

LIAPIS, V., Epicharmus, Asclepiades of Tragilus, and the Rhesus: Lessons from a Lexicographical Entry. 143 (2003) 19<strong>–</strong>22<br />

LIBERMAN, G., À propos du fragment 58 Lobel<strong>–</strong>Page, Voigt de Sappho. 108 (1995) 45<strong>–</strong>46<br />

LIDDEL, P., The Places of Publication of Athenian State Decrees from the 5th Century BC to the 3rd Century AD. 143 (2003) 79<strong>–</strong>93<br />

LIEB, H. <strong>–</strong> FREI-STOLBA, R., Un diplôme civil: le fragment de Carnuntum (AE, 1999, 1250). 143 (2003) 243<strong>–</strong>254<br />

LIESKER, W. H. M. <strong>–</strong> SIJPESTEIJN, P. J., Bruchstücke antiker Geometrie. 113 (1996) 183<strong>–</strong>186<br />

LINDERSKI, J., Caelum arsit and obsidione liberare: Latin Idiom and the Exploits of the Eighth Augustan Legion at the Time of Commodus. 142<br />

(2003) 241<strong>–</strong>255<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Paintress Calypso and Other Painters in Pliny. 145 (2003) 83<strong>–</strong>96 (Addenda und Corrigenda dazu: 148 (2004) 126)<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Menander Inscription from Pompei and the Expression primus scripsit. 159 (2007) 45<strong>–</strong>55<br />

LIPKA, M., Anmerkungen zur Hekatompedon-Inschrift: Eine Revision. 122 (1998) 79<strong>–</strong>80<br />

LITINAS, N., Corrigenda Varia. 117 (1997) 210<strong>–</strong>212<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Lond. inv. 1270: A Petition to an Official and a Private Letter. 119 (1997) 173<strong>–</strong>176<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Lond. III 1274c: Sale of a Calf. 120 (1998) 157<strong>–</strong>158<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Lond. III 1128: Sale of a Donkey. 124 (1998) 195<strong>–</strong>204 (Corrigendum dazu: 128 (1999) 164)<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Corrigendum to P. Lond. inv. 1228. 136 (2001) 182<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Aristophanes on a Bank Receipt (?). 141 (2002) 103<strong>–</strong>105<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Sitologi Documents Concerning Private Transactions in the Oxyrhynchite Nome. 160 (2007) 183<strong>–</strong>202<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Mich. inv. 1971: A Sale of an Animal. 160 (2007) 202<strong>–</strong>204<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Mich. inv. 1622 (= SB XVI 12589) + inv. 1580. 163 (2007) 191<strong>–</strong>194<br />

<strong>–</strong>, MP 3 2195.01: A Chreia of Olympias? 172 (2010) 197<strong>–</strong>198<br />

LIU, J., The Era of Patavium Again. 162 (2007) 281<strong>–</strong>289<br />

LIVREA, E., Callimaco e gli anelli dei Cabiri. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 33<strong>–</strong>37<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Stellungnahme. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 154<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Un frammento di Dionisio e Nonno. 106 (1995) 56<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Parerga Cercidea I. P. Oxy. 1082 ed il ‘frammento della tartaruga’. 108 (1995) 47<strong>–</strong>54<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Sul Dioniso di Euforione, Nonno e Dionisio. 108 (1995) 55<strong>–</strong>57<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Parerga Cercidea II. P. Oxy. 1082 fragmenta minora. 112 (1996) 47<strong>–</strong>55<br />

<strong>–</strong>, La slogatura di Eudocia in un’iscrizione paflagone. 113 (1996) 71<strong>–</strong>76<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A. P. 9.400: iscrizione funeraria di Ipazia? 117 (1997) 99<strong>–</strong>102<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Callimachus senex, Cercidas senex ed i loro critici. 119 (1997) 37<strong>–</strong>42<br />

<strong>–</strong>, I due Taziani in un’iscrizione di Afrodisia. 119 (1997) 43<strong>–</strong>49<br />

<strong>–</strong>, L’imperatrice Eudocia santa? 119 (1997) 50<strong>–</strong>54<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Callimaco e gli iperborei a Delo. 120 (1998) 23<strong>–</strong>27<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Callimaco: tre nuovi frammenti? 120 (1998) 28<strong>–</strong>34<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nuovi frammenti della Telegonia. 122 (1998) 1<strong>–</strong>5<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Sull’iscrizione teosofica di Enoanda. 122 (1998) 90<strong>–</strong>96<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Un nuovo frammento di Filita di Cos. 125 (1999) 67<strong>–</strong>68<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Chi e’ l’autore di P. Oxy. 4352? 125 (1999) 69<strong>–</strong>73<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Una reminiscenza eschilea in Sinesio di Cirene. 126 (1999) 93<strong>–</strong>94<br />

<strong>–</strong>, I cavalli di S. Marco ed i Lithica orphici. 126 (1999) 95<strong>–</strong>97<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Due aporie callimachee. 137 (2001) 19<strong>–</strong>21<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Una crux dioscorea. 137 (2001) 22<strong>–</strong>23<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Poema epico-storico attribuito a Soterico di Oasi. 138 (2002) 17<strong>–</strong>30<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Il Philoctetes di Euforione. 139 (2002) 35<strong>–</strong>39<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Callimachi Iambus V. 144 (2003) 51<strong>–</strong>58<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Un epigramma di Posidippo e il Cyclops di Filosseno di Citera. 146 (2004) 41<strong>–</strong>46<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Callimachi Iambus III. 146 (2004) 47<strong>–</strong>52<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Posidippo, Ep. 57 e 15 A.<strong>–</strong>B. 147 (2004) 35<strong>–</strong>38<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Dorothei Laudes] Domini Jesu (P. Bodmer XXXII). 147 (2004) 39<strong>–</strong>43


34 Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff.<br />

<strong>–</strong>, La tomba di Simonide da Callimaco a S. Saba. 156 (2006) 53<strong>–</strong>57<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Un’eco callimachea in Giovenale. 156 (2006) 58<strong>–</strong>59<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Simonides, fr. 22 West 2 = 9 Gentili<strong>–</strong>Prato 2 . 158 (2006) 13<strong>–</strong>14<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Sapphica. 164 (2008) 1<strong>–</strong>7<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eraclito nel papiro di Derveni. 164 (2008) 8<strong>–</strong>9<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Il sudore di Saffo. 179 (2011) 39<strong>–</strong>40<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Elementi orfici in un threnos pindarico. 179 (2011) 51<strong>–</strong>53<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Il Giambo IX di Callimaco. 179 (2011) 84<strong>–</strong>88<br />

LLEWELYN, S. R., The efiw (tØn) ofik¤an Formula and the Delivery of Letters to Third Persons or to Their Property. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 71<strong>–</strong>78<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Function of the shmas¤a-Texts, P. Oxy. XXXIV 2719 and SB XVI 12550. 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 230<strong>–</strong>232<br />

<strong>–</strong>, SD, a Christian Isopsephism? 109 (1995) 125<strong>–</strong>127<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Harris I 62 and the Pursuit of Fugitive Slaves. 118 (1997) 245<strong>–</strong>250<br />

LLOYD-JONES, H., Notes on the New Simonides. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 1<strong>–</strong>3<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Again the Tattoo Elegy. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 4<strong>–</strong>7<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Alcaeus fr. 130 b, 1<strong>–</strong>2 Voigt. 108 (1995) 35<strong>–</strong>37<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Lykaon and Kyknos. 108 (1995) 38<strong>–</strong>44<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Pride of Halicarnassus. 124 (1998) 1<strong>–</strong>14 (Corrigenda and Addenda: 127 (1999) 63<strong>–</strong>65)<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Lykaon and Kyknos (<strong>ZPE</strong> 108, 1995, 38<strong>–</strong>44). 134 (2001) 22<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes on P. Mil. Vogl. VIII 309. 137 (2001) 6<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Two More Notes on P. Mil. Vogl. VIII 309 (Poseidippos). 139 (2002) 33<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Posidippus fr. 31 Austin<strong>–</strong>Bastianini (P. Mil. Vogl. 309, col. V 20<strong>–</strong>5). 144 (2003) 62<br />

LOBÜSCHER, Th. <strong>–</strong> ECK, W., Ein neuer Stadtplan der Colonia Ulpia Traiana Dacica Sarmizegetusa. 137 (2001) 263<strong>–</strong>269<br />

LOFTUS, A., A New Fragment of the Theramenes Papyrus (P. Mich. 5796b). 133 (2000) 11<strong>–</strong>20<br />

LOHMANN, H. <strong>–</strong> SCHAEFER, H., Wo lag das Herakleion der Salaminioi §p‹ Porym“? 133 (2000) 91<strong>–</strong>102<br />

LOMIENTO, L., Ancora su Cercida: frr. 2, 7, 10 Lom. e i Fragmenta minora. 117 (1997) 57<strong>–</strong>64<br />

LOOMIS, W. T., Pay Differentials and Class Warfare in Lysias’ Against Theozotides: Two Obols or Two Drachmas. 107 (1995) 230<strong>–</strong>236<br />

LÓPEZ BARJA DE QUIROGA, P. <strong>–</strong> AYÁN VILA, X., Una estela funeraria inédita de Taragoña (Rianxo, A Coruña). 161 (2007) 283<strong>–</strong>287<br />

LÓPEZ CRUCES, J. L., Cercidas, P. Oxy. 1082, col. xi. 140 (2002) 30<strong>–</strong>32<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Heracles on Oeta (TrGF Adesp. 653 Kn.<strong>–</strong>Sn.): Two Supplements. 166 (2008) 23<strong>–</strong>26<br />

LÓPEZ CRUCES, J. L. <strong>–</strong> CAMPOS DAROCA, J., The Metre of Cercidas. 102 (<strong>1994</strong>) 81<strong>–</strong>94 (Corrigendum dazu: 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 22)<br />

LÓPEZ GARCÍA, A., Esiodo, Fr. 193. Riesame di PSI II 131 e nuovi acquisti testuali (PLit.Palau Rib. 21). 107 (1995) 53<strong>–</strong>56<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Tucidide I <strong>101</strong>,1<strong>–</strong>2; 102,3. Un frammento di P. Oxy. XLIX 3450 a Barcellona. 109 (1995) 110<strong>–</strong>112<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Papyri Matritenses: note di lettura. 110 (1996) 133<strong>–</strong>134<br />

<strong>–</strong>, PLit.Palau Rib. 18: Martyrium Pauli, I 18<strong>–</strong>22. 110 (1996) 132 (Corrigenda dazu: 112 (1996) 202)<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Un frammento di Callimaco, Inno IV (In Delum), 199<strong>–</strong>206. 134 (2001) 53<strong>–</strong>54<br />

LÓPEZ GARCÍA, A. <strong>–</strong> PINTAUDI, R., Menander, Epitrepontes 662<strong>–</strong>666; 688<strong>–</strong>691 (S) in un papiro Laurenziano (PL III/310 A). 124 (1998) 15<strong>–</strong>16<br />

LÓPEZ-MELERO, R., Restituere y contribuere (?) en las disposiciones de la tábula de El Bierzo. 138 (2002) 185<strong>–</strong>223<br />

LÓPEZ-RUIZ, C. <strong>–</strong> KALDELLIS, A., A New Reading of the Stele of Andron (IG II/III 2 10665): Only One Son Died, Not Two. 176 (2011) 57<strong>–</strong>59<br />

LŐRINCZ, B., Neue Militärdiplome aus Pannonien. 111 (1996) 259<strong>–</strong>268<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Register zu Lieferung 6 der Römischen Inschriften Ungarns (= RIU). 148 (2004) 291<strong>–</strong>312<br />

LŐRINCZ, B. <strong>–</strong> ALFÖLDY, G., Ein neues Militärdiplomfragment und ein neuer Statthalter der Provinz Pannonia superior. 139 (2002) 211<strong>–</strong>218<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Die cohors I Batavorum miliaria civium Romanorum pia fidelis im pannonischen Solva (Esztergom). 145 (2003) 259<strong>–</strong>262<br />

LŐRINCZ, B. <strong>–</strong> KOVÁCS, P., Neue lateinische Inschriften aus Komitat Komárom-Esztergom I. 174 (2010) 277<strong>–</strong>287<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Altäre aus dem Auxiliarlager Solva. Neue römische Inschriften aus Komitat Komárom-Esztergom II. 179 (2011) 247<strong>–</strong>270<br />

LŐRINCZ, B. <strong>–</strong> PETÉNYI, S., Zwei neue Militärdiplome aus Pannonien. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 197<strong>–</strong>204<br />

LŐRINCZ, B. <strong>–</strong> SZÁMADÓ, E., Ein Meilenstein der Senatskaiser Pupienus und Balbinus aus Pannonien. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 205<strong>–</strong>207<br />

LORIOT, X. <strong>–</strong> DEMOUGIN, S., D’une Chersonèse à l’autre. 151 (2005) 225<strong>–</strong>234<br />

LORUSSO, V., Nuovi frammenti di Galeno (IN HP. EPID. VI COMM. VII; IN PLAT. TIM. COMM.). 152 (2005) 43<strong>–</strong>56<br />

LOTT, J. B., An Augustan Sculpture of August Justice. 113 (1996) 263<strong>–</strong>270<br />

LOUGOVAYA, J., A Note on IG I 3 1260. 144 (2003) 109<strong>–</strong>110<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Isocrates, ad Demonicum 13<strong>–</strong>15. 164 (2008) 29<strong>–</strong>31<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Age of the Trierarchs in the Decree of Themistokles. 166 (2008) 113<strong>–</strong>114<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Isopsephisms in P.Jena II 15a<strong>–</strong>b. 176 (2011) 200<strong>–</strong>204<br />

LOVENJAK, M., Die neuen Meilensteine von Celje (Celeia, Noricum) aus den Jahren 161, 214 und 218 n. Chr. 146 (2004) 205<strong>–</strong>210<br />

LOZANO, F., Thea Livia in Athens: Redating IG II 2 3242. 148 (2004) 177<strong>–</strong>180<br />

LUCAS, G., À propos d’Éreiknion, cité Perrhèbe. 105 (1995) 105<strong>–</strong>130<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notule à propos de “ÉAde›a Stad[m]e¤[ou]”. 128 (1999) 94<br />

LUCIANI, F., CIL V 2041: un’iscrizione di Bellunum riveduta e corretta. <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>) 218<strong>–</strong>220<br />

LUISELLI, R., Papiri greci riutilizzati per la manifattura di un cartonnage di legatura. 142 (2003) 147<strong>–</strong>162<br />

LUISELLI, R. <strong>–</strong> ANDORLINI, I., Una ripresa di Diotogene Pitagorico, Sulla regalità, in PBingen 3 (encomio per Augusto?). 136 (2001) 155<strong>–</strong>166<br />

LUISIER, Ph., Les années de l’indiction dans les inscriptions des Kellia. 159 (2007) 217<strong>–</strong>222<br />

LUJAN, E. R. <strong>–</strong> BERENGUER-SANCHEZ, J. A., La nueva inscripción falisca de Cavios Frenaios. 149 (2004) 213<strong>–</strong>222<br />

L<strong>UND</strong>ON, J., Lexeis from the Scholia Minora in Homerum. 124 (1998) 25<strong>–</strong>52<br />

<strong>–</strong>, PDuk inv. 971 verso + PKöln I 22: Homer, Iliad 1.528<strong>–</strong>559. 141 (2002) 63<strong>–</strong>70<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Homer, Iliad 1.127<strong>–</strong>138 from the Duke Papyrus Collection. 141 (2002) 71<strong>–</strong>73<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Il “sogno funesto” di Agamennone in un frammento papiraceo della Duke University? 143 (2003) 6<strong>–</strong>10<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A New Fragment of Euripides’ Helen (1429<strong>–</strong>33). 145 (2003) 19<strong>–</strong>21<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A New Fragment of Plutarch (De cohibenda ira 452F). 147 (2004) 45<strong>–</strong>50<br />

<strong>–</strong>, PSI inv. 320 verso: Fragment einer Rede? 159 (2007) 56<strong>–</strong>60<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Die fehlende Silbe im neuen Kölner Sappho-Papyrus. 160 (2007) 1<strong>–</strong>3<br />

<strong>–</strong>, PSI XV 1464 e P.Oxy. LXXI 4821. Due frammenti di uno stesso commentario omerico da Ossirinco. 178 (2011) 1<strong>–</strong>20<br />

L<strong>UND</strong>ON, J. <strong>–</strong> ANDORLINI, I., Frammenti di Omero, Odissea XI 210<strong>–</strong>29 (PDuk inv. 60 + PPisaLit 23). 133 (2000) 1<strong>–</strong>6


Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff. 35<br />

L<strong>UND</strong>ON, J. <strong>–</strong> GONIS, N., Scholia Minora to Iliad I 595<strong>–</strong>604, II 4<strong>–</strong>10. 136 (2001) 111<strong>–</strong>115<br />

L<strong>UND</strong>ON, J. <strong>–</strong> MATTHAIOS, S., Nominal Accidents by Question and Answer: Two Fragments of a T°xnh GrammatikÆ, One New. 154 (2005) 97<strong>–</strong>116<br />

L<strong>UND</strong>ON, J. <strong>–</strong> MESSERI, G., A Passage of Isocrates on the Back of a Protocol (PVindob G 39977). 132 (2000) 125<strong>–</strong>131<br />

LUPPE, W., Die Hypothesis zum ersten ‚Hippolytus‘ (P. Mich. inv. 6222a). 102 (<strong>1994</strong>) 23<strong>–</strong>39<br />

<strong>–</strong>, sunyane›n pr°pei. Zu P. Oxy. 3317. 102 (<strong>1994</strong>) 40<strong>–</strong>42<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eine verderbte Stelle im ‚Telephos‘-Prolog. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 10<br />

<strong>–</strong>, kat°pine klvgmÒn. Kratinos, ‚Plutoi‘ Fr. 171 K./A. 106 (1995) 3<strong>–</strong>4<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Gorgonen in der Unterwelt? Philodem Per‹ eÈsebe¤aw N 242 I. 109 (1995) 31<strong>–</strong>34<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Erschließung eines Sophokles-Zitats in Philodems Per‹ eÈsebe¤aw. 112 (1996) 19<strong>–</strong>24<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Mythographus Homericus P. Oxy. 4096 fr. 10. 112 (1996) 25<strong>–</strong>28<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Die Ikarios-Sage im Mythographus Homericus. 112 (1996) 29<strong>–</strong>33<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nochmals zum Handlungsort der ‚Kreterinnen‘ des Euripides. 115 (1997) 47<strong>–</strong>49<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Kallimachos, Aitien-Prolog V. 7<strong>–</strong>12. 115 (1997) 50<strong>–</strong>54<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nachlese und Überlegungen zum Mythographus-Homericus-Codex P. S. I. 1173. 116 (1997) 13<strong>–</strong>18<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Das Demeter- und Kore-Heiligtum in den Hellenica Oxyrhynchia. 119 (1997) 20<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nochmals zum Anfangsvers des ‚Ion‘ bei Philodem. 120 (1998) 17<strong>–</strong>18<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zum Philainis-Papyrus (P. Oxy. 2891). 123 (1998) 87<strong>–</strong>88<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Abermals zum Sesongosis-Roman-Papyrus P. Oxy. 3319. 125 (1999) 85<strong>–</strong>86<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Euripides, Medeia V. 1262<strong>–</strong>1266 in einem Straßburger Papyrus. 129 (2000) 17<strong>–</strong>18<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein weiteres Zeugnis für fünf Konkurrenten an den Komödien-Agonen während des Peloponnesischen Krieges. 129 (2000) 19<strong>–</strong>20<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zum neuen ‚Schiffs-Epigramm‘ P. Oxy. 4501. 130 (2000) 29<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Negative Folgen von Weingenuß und Liebe. 130 (2000) 30<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Die Liebes-Elegie P. Oxy. 2885 fr. 1, 1<strong>–</strong>20 (SH 964). 131 (2000) 19<strong>–</strong>21<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nachtrag zum Leipziger Mythologie-Papyrus. 137 (2001) 24<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Weiteres zu den Dramen-Epigrammen P. Petrie II 49B. 137 (2001) 25<strong>–</strong>26<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zur Geographie der Irrfahrten des Odysseus. P. Mich. inv. 1591. 139 (2002) 47<strong>–</strong>53<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nochmals zur Hypothesis des ersten ‚Hippolytos‘. 143 (2003) 23<strong>–</strong>26<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein Grab-Epigramm auf ÑHged¤kh (Poseidipp Kol. VIII 7<strong>–</strong>12). 144 (2003) 76<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein Habicht verheißt glückliche Seefahrt. Poseidipp Kol. IV 8<strong>–</strong>13 / Nr. 21. 146 (2004) 39<strong>–</strong>40<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Thetis’ Klage um Achill in unbekannten Hexametern. 148 (2004) 117<strong>–</strong>118<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein Ilias-Glossar. 148 (2004) 119<strong>–</strong>120<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Überlegungen zur Gedicht-Anordnung im neuen Sappho-Papyrus. 149 (2004) 7<strong>–</strong>9<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein neuer Herstellungsversuch in der Hypothesis zu einem Temeniden-Drama des Euripides. 149 (2004) 10<strong>–</strong>14<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Korrekturvorschläge zu P. Köln 409. 150 (2004) 67<strong>–</strong>68<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zu Daten und Reihenfolge der beiden Hippolytos-Dramen des Euripides. 151 (2005) 11<strong>–</strong>14 (Nachtrag dazu: 156 (2006) 38)<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zum neuen Archilochos (P. Oxy. 4708). 155 (2006) 1<strong>–</strong>4<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Sex mit einem Esel (P. Oxy. LXX 4762). 158 (2006) 93<strong>–</strong>94<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nochmals zum Einführungstermin der Komödien-Agone an den Lenäen. 159 (2007) 25<strong>–</strong>27 (Corrigendum dazu: 161 (2007) 12)<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Überlegungen zum Komiker-Fragment P. Oxy. 863. 160 (2007) 24<strong>–</strong>26<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zur Mnesiepes-Inschrift im Archilocheion. 160 (2007) 27<strong>–</strong>28<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Marikçw-Kommentar fr. 192,7<strong>–</strong>12 K.<strong>–</strong>A. 161 (2007) 11<strong>–</strong>12<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Würdigung des Polybios in P. Oxy. 4808. 163 (2007) 40<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Die Athener vor der Schlacht bei Plataiai (zu Simonides fr. 11 W. 2 ). 167 (2008) 4<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zwei Textvorschläge zu Hypereides’ Rede prÚw T¤mandron im neu entzifferten Palimpsest-Codex. 167 (2008) 5<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Der Anfang der Hypothesis zu Euripides’ ÉAl°jandrow. 169 (2009) 15<strong>–</strong>16<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Mutmaßungen über die Ursache der Pest bei Dictys Cretensis (zu P.Oxy. LXXIII 4943). 172 (2010) 50<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein weiteres Zeugnis für zwei MÆdeia-Dramen des Euripides. 173 (2010) 15<strong>–</strong>16<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Dictys Cretensis. P.Oxy. LXXIII 4944. 173 (2010) 17<strong>–</strong>23<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nochmals zum Michigan-Papyrus mit Hexametern P. Mich. Inv. Nr. 4926a. 174 (2010) 47<strong>–</strong>48<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Der Dictys-Cretensis-Papyrus P.Pxy. 2539. 175 (2010) 29<strong>–</strong>32<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Die ‚Palamedes‘- und die ‚Polyidos‘-Hypothesis: P.Mich. Inv. 3020(a). 176 (2011) 52<strong>–</strong>55<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nochmals zu µονόστυλος. 176 (2011) 56<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Weswegen die Plutoi nach Athen kamen. 177 (2011) 26<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nochmals zu Β̅ Mήδεια = Μήδεια δευτέρα. 178 (2011) 48<strong>–</strong>50<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zum Grab-Epigramm GV 2093. 178 (2011) 135<strong>–</strong>136<br />

LUPPE, W. <strong>–</strong> ANGELOV, A. <strong>–</strong> CONRAD, S., Eine Grabinschrift aus Marcianopolis (Moesia inferior). 112 (1996) 102<strong>–</strong>104 (Corrigendum dazu: 113<br />

(1996) 248)<br />

LUPPE, W. <strong>–</strong> JAKOBI, R., P. Oxy. 4458 col. I: Aristoteles redivivus. 131 (2000) 15<strong>–</strong>18<br />

LUPU, E., The Sacred Law from the Cave of Pan at Marathon (SEG XXXVI 267). 137 (2001) 119<strong>–</strong> 124<br />

LUTHER, A., Zwei Bemerkungen zu Isidor von Charax. 119 (1997) 237<strong>–</strong>242<br />

LUZZATTO, M. J., P. Vat. gr. 52: trasporto di vino dall’Egitto a Costantinopoli nel VII sec. d.C. 114 (1996) 153<strong>–</strong>156<br />

ŁAJTAR, A., Ein bestempeltes Keramikfragment aus Beth-Shean (zu <strong>ZPE</strong> 95, 1993, S. 52, Taf. I a). 102 (<strong>1994</strong>) 269<strong>–</strong>270<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Varia Nubica (I<strong>–</strong>II). 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 201<strong>–</strong>204<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bemerkungen zu einigen griechischen Inschriften im Nationalmuseum zu Warschau. 112 (1996) 137<strong>–</strong>139<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Varia Nubica III. Ein liturgisches Gebet aus Qasr Ibrim. 112 (1996) 140<strong>–</strong>142<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Varia Nubica IV: Das älteste nubische Epitaph mit dem Gebet vom sogenannten Typus Euchologion Mega? 113 (1996) <strong>101</strong><strong>–</strong>108<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bemerkungen zu drei kürzlich veröffentlichten griechischen Inschriften aus der Spätantike. 114 (1996) 141<strong>–</strong>146<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Greek Inscriptions in Polish Collections. A Checklist. 125 (1999) 147<strong>–</strong>172<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Varia Nubica V. 136 (2001) 62<strong>–</strong>64<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Varia Nubica VI<strong>–</strong>VII. 137 (2001) 183<strong>–</strong>186<br />

<strong>–</strong>, I. Scythia Minor III 187 (Kallatis): ein Lesungsvorschlag. 137 (2001) 187<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein übersehener inschriftlicher Beleg für den Praefectus Praetorio Orientis Hephaistos (Mitte des VI. Jh.s). 137 (2001) 188


36 Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff.<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bemerkungen zu griechischen Inschriften aus Ägypten. 140 (2002) 99<strong>–</strong><strong>101</strong><br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eine jüdische Inschrift aus Antiochia in Syrien. 140 (2002) <strong>101</strong><strong>–</strong>102<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Greek Epitaph from Hûrbat Summaqa (Northern Golan). 167 (2008) 88<strong>–</strong>90<br />

<strong>–</strong>, An Adaptation of a Sentence of Menander in a Nubian Monastery. 171 (2009) 19<strong>–</strong>24<br />

ŁAJTAR, A. <strong>–</strong> van der VLIET, J., Rome <strong>–</strong> Meroe <strong>–</strong> Berlin. The Southernmost Latin Inscription Rediscovered (CIL III 83). 157 (2006) 193<strong>–</strong>198<br />

MA, J., Autour du décret d’Ilion en honneur d’un roi Antiochos (OGI 219 / I. Ilion 32). 124 (1998) 81<strong>–</strong>88<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Gilt Statue for Konon at Erythrai? 157 (2006) 124<strong>–</strong>126<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Observations on Honorific Statues at Oropos (and elsewhere). 160 (2007) 89<strong>–</strong>96<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Travelling Statues, Travelling Bases? Ancient Statues in Constantinople. 180 (<strong>2012</strong>) 243<strong>–</strong>249<br />

MA, J. <strong>–</strong> DEROW, P. S. <strong>–</strong> MEADOWS, A. R., RC 38 (Amyzon) Reconsidered. 109 (1995) 71<strong>–</strong>80<br />

MA, J. <strong>–</strong> TRACY, S. V., Notes on Attic Statue Bases. 150 (2004) 121<strong>–</strong>126<br />

MACCOULL, L. S. B., Further Notes on Cairo Coptic Inscriptions. 112 (1996) 284<strong>–</strong>285<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Madrid 189 Revisited. 112 (1996) 285<strong>–</strong>286<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Further Notes on P. Vindob. K8355v: A Coptic Lament. 112 (1996) 287<strong>–</strong>288<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Lesefrüchte. 123 (1998) 204<strong>–</strong>206<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Mich. Inv. 6898 Revisited: A Sixth-Century Coptic Contract from Aphrodito. 141 (2002) 199<strong>–</strong>203<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Kellia Inscription Q. Ereima 142 Revisited. 163 (2007) 215<strong>–</strong>216<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Monastic and Church Landholding in the Aphrodito Cadaster. 178 (2011) 243<strong>–</strong>246<br />

MACDONALD, D., A New Egyptian Diploma Fragment. 133 (2000) 271<strong>–</strong>274<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Soldier’s Votive to Diana. 162 (2007) 279<strong>–</strong>280<br />

MACDONALD, D. <strong>–</strong> ECK, W. <strong>–</strong> PANGERL, A., Neue Militärdiplome für Truppen in Italien: Legio II Adiutrix, Flotten und Prätorianer. 139 (2002)<br />

195<strong>–</strong>207<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein weiteres Diplom aus der Konstitution des Antoninus Pius für die Truppen von Moesia superior vom 23. April 157. 165 (2008) 237<strong>–</strong>239<br />

MACDONALD, D. <strong>–</strong> MIHAYLOVICH, A., A New Moesia inferior Diploma of 97. 138 (2002) 225<strong>–</strong>228<br />

MACDOWELL, D. M., Epikerdes of Kyrene and the Athenian Privilege of Ateleia. 150 (2004) 127<strong>–</strong>133<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Hereditary Sitesis in Fourth-Century Athens. 162 (2007) 111<strong>–</strong>113<br />

MACE, S., Utopian and Erotic Fusion in a New Elegy by Simonides (22 West 2 ). 113 (1996) 233<strong>–</strong>247<br />

MACFARLANE, R. <strong>–</strong> BAY, S. <strong>–</strong> BEARMAN, G. <strong>–</strong> WAYMENT, T., Multi-Spectral Imaging vs. Monospectral Infrared Imaging. 173 (2010) 211<strong>–</strong>217<br />

MACK, W., The Eresian Catalogue of Proxenoi (IG XII suppl. 127)<br />

MACKAY, Chr. S., Expressions to Indicate Goal of Motion in the Colloquial Latin of the Empire. 126 (1999) 229<strong>–</strong>239<br />

MAEHLER, H., Bakchylides and the Polyzalos Inscription. 139 (2002) 19<strong>–</strong>21<br />

MAEHLER, H. <strong>–</strong> ELMAYER, A. F., A Boundary Inscription from Roman Cyrenaica. 164 (2008) 136<strong>–</strong>138<br />

MAFFRE, F., IG I 3 281, le district de l’Hellespont et les cités de Chersonèse de Thrace. 142 (2003) 119<strong>–</strong>126<br />

MAGNANI, M., Callim. Ia. 5.13 (= fr. 195.13 Pf.). 147 (2004) 33<strong>–</strong>34<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Callim. Aet. III fr. 64,9s. Pf. e la Sylloge Simonidea. 159 (2007) 13<strong>–</strong>22 (Corrigendum dazu: 164 (2008) 32)<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Le Baccanti di Teocrito e Cos. 164 (2008) 33<strong>–</strong>44<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Oxy. LIX 3965 fr. 1 r. 6 + XXII 2327 fr. 6 r. 10 (Sim. fr. 11,14 W. 2 [= 3b,10 G.-P. 2 ]). 168 (2009) 19<strong>–</strong>26<br />

MAGNELLI, E., Note al POxy. 4352 (esametri su Antinoo). 122 (1998) 61<strong>–</strong>66<br />

<strong>–</strong>, POxy. 3723.1<strong>–</strong>2: il mito di Arginno? 125 (1999) 87<strong>–</strong>90<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Quelle bestie dei Telchini (sul v. 2 del prologo degli Aitia). 127 (1999) 52<strong>–</strong>58<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Noterelle sul POxy. 3724 (Filodemo?). 128 (1999) 63<strong>–</strong>64<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Sui nuovi poemetti del ‘Codice delle Visioni’ (PBodmer 31.43, 62; 32.15; 35.64<strong>–</strong>65). 132 (2000) 153<strong>–</strong>156<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ancora sul nuovo Posidippo e la poesia latina: il ‘freddo letto’. 140 (2002) 15<strong>–</strong>16<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Callimaco, SH 260A.10: un Eracle (quasi) euripideo? 143 (2003) 37<strong>–</strong>38<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Sei note testuali al nuovo Posidippo. 146 (2004) 25<strong>–</strong>30<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Memoria letteraria in carmi epigrafici greci del Vicino Oriente. 147 (2004) 51<strong>–</strong>55<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Su un epigramma greco tardoantico da Scitopoli. 152 (2005) 57<strong>–</strong>60<br />

<strong>–</strong>, On the New Fragments of Greek Poetry from Oxyrhynchus. 158 (2006) 9<strong>–</strong>12<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes on Four Greek Verse Inscriptions. 160 (2007) 37<strong>–</strong>40<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Schema Ionicum in Dionisio di Magnesia (GVI 1871)? 163 (2007) 41<strong>–</strong>43<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Minutaglie posidippee. 165 (2008) 49<strong>–</strong>54<br />

MAINARDIS, F., Un ciclo imperiale da (ri)considerare? Onori alla casa imperiale e a un cavaliere illustre di Iulium Carnicum (Italia, Regio X). 156<br />

(2006) 267<strong>–</strong>283<br />

MAIRS, R., An Early Roman Application for Lease of a Date Crop (P. Duk. inv. 85 and the ‘Six-Choinix Measure of the Hermeneus’. 172 (2010) 183<strong>–</strong><br />

191<br />

MAKAROV, I., L’épitaphe d’un commandant des archers de Chersonèse Taurique. 155 (2006) 150<strong>–</strong>160<br />

MALNATI, A., Due papiri omerici conservati al Museo Egizio del Cairo. 121 (1998) 183<strong>–</strong>184<br />

MALNATI, A. <strong>–</strong> MORETTI, A. F., P. Stras. inv. gr. 1550: un contrat de proxre¤a. 113 (1996) 219<strong>–</strong>220<br />

MALTOMINI, Francesca, Nove epigrammi ellenistici rivisitati (PPetrie II 49b). 134 (2001) 55<strong>–</strong>66<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Considerazioni su P. Oxy. LIV 3724: struttura e finalità di una lista di incipit epigrammatici. 144 (2003) 67<strong>–</strong>75<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nuovi epigrammi in un papiro da Al Hibah. 172 (2010) 29<strong>–</strong>37<br />

MALTOMINI, Francesca <strong>–</strong> PERNIGOTTI, C., PSorb inv. 2245: confluenza di testimoni omerici. 128 (1999) 301<strong>–</strong>305<br />

MALTOMINI, Franco, P. Lond. 121 (= PGM VII), 1<strong>–</strong>221: Homeromanteion. 106 (1995) 107<strong>–</strong>122<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nota alla defixio di Carmona. 107 (1995) 297<strong>–</strong>298<br />

<strong>–</strong>, PGM XII 50<strong>–</strong>51: ı despÒthw t«n morf«n. 111 (1996) 140<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Il rotolo di Amore (con doppio umbilicus e cornua pomiformi). 123 (1998) 297<strong>–</strong>300<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Libanio, il camaleonte, un papiro e altri testi. 147 (2004) 147<strong>–</strong>153<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Una lamella d’oro del Museo Archeologico Nazionale di Cividale del Friuli. 156 (2006) 103<strong>–</strong>108<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Un ‘utero errante’ di troppo? PGM 12 riconsiderato. 160 (2007) 167<strong>–</strong>174<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Due nuovi testi di magia rurale. 164 (2008) 159<strong>–</strong>183<br />

MALTOMINI, Franco <strong>–</strong> FANTUZZI, M., Ancora magia in Teocrito (VII 103<strong>–</strong>114). 114 (1996) 27<strong>–</strong>29<br />

MANCUSO, G., Eracle, gli Arcadi e Platone comico (ancora su P.Oxy. 2737). 180 (<strong>2012</strong>) 53<strong>–</strong>66


Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff. 37<br />

MANGANARO, G., Una dedica di Samo rivolta non a Leukaspis, ma a Hera Thespis (?). <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 120<strong>–</strong>126 (Corrigendum dazu: 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 22)<br />

<strong>–</strong>. L’elaphos di oro dedicato dai Selinuntini nell’Apollonion (IG XIV, nr. 268). 106 (1995) 162<strong>–</strong>164<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Fallocrazia nella Sicilia greca e romana. 111 (1996) 135<strong>–</strong>139<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Figurazioni e dediche religiose della Sicilia greca e romana. 113 (1996) 77<strong>–</strong>81<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Asklepios e Hygieia “divinità salvatrici e protettrici della città” a Messina. 113 (1996) 82<strong>–</strong>84<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Filologia classica e realtà ambientali antiche. 117 (1997) 103<strong>–</strong>106<br />

<strong>–</strong>, La Syrakosion dekate, Camarina e Morgantina nel 424 a. C. 128 (1999) 115<strong>–</strong>123<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Onomastica greca su anelli, pesi da telaio e glandes in Sicilia. 133 (2000) 123<strong>–</strong>134<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Tre principii della epigrafia greca: l’autopsia, la “serie”, il contesto. 135 (2001) 63<strong>–</strong>72<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Tra archeologia ed epigrafia: due note. 137 (2001) 189<strong>–</strong>195<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Delfi, Brindisi e Ancona. 142 (2003) 134<strong>–</strong>138<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Iscrizioni greche del V sec. a.C. della Sicilia. 144 (2003) 147<strong>–</strong>156<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Affitto di spazi pubblici per le panegyreis ad Akrai. 147 (2004) 115<strong>–</strong>122<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Anagrafe di Leontinoi nel V secolo (a proposito di una tavoletta bronzea dedicatoria di V sec. a.C.). 149 (2004) 55<strong>–</strong>68<br />

<strong>–</strong>, La stele in pietra scura (IG XIV 7) con l’epistola di Gerone II ai Siracusani. 152 (2005) 141<strong>–</strong>151<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Divagazioni onomastiche e toponomastiche. 156 (2006) 131<strong>–</strong>134<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Epigrafe in greco di IV sec. d.C. di Alesa (Sicilia) in versi e prosa, per la morte di Eirena philandros, “carissima a Botis boio-celtico”. 158 (2006) 89<strong>–</strong><br />

92<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Un frammento inscritto erratico dall’area di Caronia (Kaleakté). 170 (2009) 87<strong>–</strong>98<br />

MANN, J. C., Roman Legionary Centurial Symbols. 115 (1997) 295<strong>–</strong>298<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Division of Britain in AD 197. 119 (1997) 251<strong>–</strong>254<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Note on the Legion IV Italica. 126 (1999) 228<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Name Forms of Recipients of Diplomas. 139 (2002) 227<strong>–</strong>234<br />

MANNING, J. G., Rhodon Son of Lysimachos in Edfu (Apollonopolis Magna). 138 (2002) 146<strong>–</strong>148<br />

MANOLEDAKIS, M., A Proposal Relating to a Votive Inscription to Zeus Helios from Pontus. 173 (2010) 116<strong>–</strong>118<br />

MANTZOULINOU-RICHARDS, E., From Syros (III): Forged Kabeirian ex-votos. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 136<strong>–</strong>138<br />

MARANGIO, C., Brundisina Epigraphica. 152 (2005) 263<strong>–</strong>268<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nuovo patronus municipalis di Brindisi. 167 (2008) 201<strong>–</strong>203<br />

MARAVELA-SOLBAKK, A., Two Documents about Donkeys from the Collection of the Oslo University Library. 149 (2004) 177<strong>–</strong>185<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Reading the Handwriting: The Letter of an Apprentice Scribe? 149 (2004) 186<strong>–</strong>188<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Byzantine Inventory Lists of Food Provisions and Utensils on an Ashmolean Papyrus. 170 (2009) 127<strong>–</strong>146<br />

MARCHAND, F., A New Profession in a Funerary Inscription from Tanagra. 178 (2011) 207<strong>–</strong>209<br />

MARCHAND, F. <strong>–</strong> HITCHMAN, R., Two Ephebic Inscriptions: IG II 2 1973 A and 1973 B. 148 (2004) 165<strong>–</strong>176<br />

de MARCELLUS, H., IG XIV 1184 and the Ephebic Service of Menander. 110 (1996) 69<strong>–</strong>76<br />

MARCHESINI, S., La tegola iscritta da Monte San Martino. 173 (2010) 297<strong>–</strong>304<br />

MARCHIONNI, R., Eine neue Inschrift des D. Fonteius Frontinianus aus Diana Veteranorum. 162 (2007) 290<strong>–</strong>292<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Tricosus <strong>–</strong> Pertricosus. Ein epigraphischer Beitrag zu Lucilius und Martial. 179 (2011) 92<strong>–</strong>96<br />

di MARCO, M., Pirria farmakÒw (Men. Dysc. 103<strong>–</strong>117). 117 (1997) 35<strong>–</strong>41<br />

MARGINESU, G., Due frammenti di iscrizioni vascolari dal santuario sull’Acropoli di Gortina. 140 (2002) 67<strong>–</strong>70<br />

<strong>–</strong>, χρῆσθαι λίθοις καὶ γῆι in un decreto del demo del Pireo (SEG 33.143.1<strong>–</strong>7). 180 (<strong>2012</strong>) 153<strong>–</strong>157<br />

MARINA SÁEZ, R., Notas lingüísticas a una tabella defixionis hallada en Carmona (Sevilla). 128 (1999) 293<strong>–</strong>300<br />

MARINČIČ, M., Der ‚orphische‘ Bologna-Papyrus (Pap. Bon. 4), die Unterweltsbeschreibung im Culex und die lukrezische Allegorie des Hades. 122<br />

(1998) 55<strong>–</strong>59<br />

MARIOTTI, V., Nuove epigrafi da Cividate Camuno (BS). 138 (2002) 229<strong>–</strong>234<br />

MARKOULAKI, St. <strong>–</strong> MARTÍNEZ FERNÁNDEZ, A., Decreto inédito de proxenía de Kísamos, Creta. 133 (2000) 103<strong>–</strong>108<br />

MARKOVSKA, D. <strong>–</strong> AMBÜHL, A. <strong>–</strong> MILNOR, K., P. Mich. Inv. 29: Two Astrological Treatises. 105 (1995) 229<strong>–</strong>236<br />

MARKUS, D., Seneca, Medea 680: an Addendum to <strong>ZPE</strong> 117 (1997) 73<strong>–</strong>80. 132 (2000) 149<strong>–</strong>150<br />

MARKUS, D. <strong>–</strong> SCHWENDNER, G. W., Seneca’s Medea in Egypt (663<strong>–</strong>704). 117 (1997) 73<strong>–</strong>80<br />

MARQUIS, T. L., Letter from a Connoisseur of Ponies: P. CtYBR inv. 601. 154 (2005) 201<strong>–</strong>202<br />

MARTIN, A., Pack 2 1796: delendum. 114 (1996) 188<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Heurs et malheurs d’un manuscrit. Deux notes à propos du papyrus d’Hérondas. 139 (2002) 22<strong>–</strong>26<br />

<strong>–</strong>, «Souviens-toi de moi dans tes saintes prières». Témoins tardifs de la vitalité du datif grec. 144 (2003) 177<strong>–</strong>180<br />

MARTÍN HERNÁNDEZ, R., A Magical Amulet at the Abbey of Montserrat. 172 (2010) 220<strong>–</strong>222<br />

MARTINELLI, M. C. <strong>–</strong> FUNGHI, M. S., Ostraca letterari inediti della collezione Petrie. 145 (2003) 141<strong>–</strong>182<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ostraca letterari della collezione Flinders Petrie: un addendum. 164 (2008) 63<strong>–</strong>73<br />

MARTINELLI, M. C. <strong>–</strong> LAVECCHIA, S., P. Oxy. XXXV 2736. Quattro fragmenta dubia di Pindaro. 125 (1999) 1<strong>–</strong>24<br />

MARTINEZ, D., P. Erasm. I 10: An Order for Payment from a Cult Association. 118 (1997) 264<strong>–</strong>266<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Two Documentary Second-Century BC Papyri 177. (2011) 207<strong>–</strong>216<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Texas Inv. 2 Reconsidered. 177 (2011) 217<strong>–</strong>219<br />

MARTINEZ, D. <strong>–</strong> WILLIAMS, M., Records of Loan Receipts from a Guild Association. 118 (1997) 259<strong>–</strong>263<br />

MARTÍNEZ FERNÁNDEZ, Á., Una nueva inscripción votiva de Lisos, Creta. 145 (2003) 131<strong>–</strong>132<br />

MARTÍNEZ FERNÁNDEZ, Á. <strong>–</strong> APOSTOLAKOU, S., Dos nuevos epigramas funerarios de Lat∆ prÚw Kãmara, Creta. 150 (2004) 43<strong>–</strong>47<br />

MARTÍNEZ FERNÁNDEZ, Á. <strong>–</strong> MARKOULAKI, St., Decreto inédito de proxenía de Kísamos, Creta. 133 (2000) 103<strong>–</strong>108<br />

MARTÍNEZ FERNÁNDEZ, Á. <strong>–</strong> NINIOÚ-KINDELÍ, V., Inscripciones del heroon de Aptera (Creta). 138 (2002) 270<strong>–</strong>272<br />

MARTÍNEZ FERNÁNDEZ, Á. <strong>–</strong> TSATSAKI, N. <strong>–</strong> KAPRANOS, N., Una inscripción inédita de Chamalevri, Creta. 157 (2006) 87<strong>–</strong>94<br />

MARTÍNEZ FERNÁNDEZ, Á. <strong>–</strong> ZOGRAPHAKI, V., Una inscripción funeraria de Camara (Creta). 139 (2002) 117<strong>–</strong>118<br />

MARTÍNEZ-PINNA, J., La inscripción itálica de Rapino: propuesta de interpretación. 120 (1998) 203<strong>–</strong>214<br />

MARTOS, F. <strong>–</strong> GASCOU, J., Deux inscriptions de Forum Voconi. Contribution à l’étude des sources de Pline, N. H., 3, 31<strong>–</strong>37. 130 (2000) 232<strong>–</strong>237<br />

MASSÓ, J. <strong>–</strong> DURAN, M., Ein neuer griechischer Grabstein im spätrömischen Tarraco. 140 (2002) 64<strong>–</strong>66<br />

MASSON, O., Nouvelles notes d’anthroponymie grecque. IV. Le nom NeomÆniow, NoumÆniow „enfant de la nouvelle lune“ et ses variantes. V. Baucis et<br />

Philémon. VI. Les noms grecs à suffixe -ul¤w. VII. Essai d’histoire d’un nom: D¤hw. 102 (<strong>1994</strong>) 167<strong>–</strong>184<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Pape<strong>–</strong>Benseleriana X <strong>–</strong> Les références à des papyrus grecs chez Pape<strong>–</strong>Benseler. 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 205<strong>–</strong>210


38 Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff.<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nouvelles notes d’anthroponymie grecque. VIII. Noms en Fao- et -fahw. IX. Noms en -faow et -foow. X. Noms en Fausi-. XI. Un nom grec rare,<br />

MÒlukow ou MÒlukkow. 110 (1996) 87<strong>–</strong>99<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nouvelles notes d’anthroponymie grecque. XII. La liste de Léontopolis SEG 40, 1568 et son onomastique. XIII. Les noms SkÊbalow et *Skubãlh,<br />

Scybale. XIV. De KopreÊw à Kopr¤a et Saint Coprès: noms copronymes. 112 (1996) 143<strong>–</strong>150<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nouvelles notes d’anthroponymie grecque. XV. Les quatre hétaïres d’Euphronios. XVI. Madame Gorgonis et les inscriptions de bon augure. XVII.<br />

Femmes et hommes portant des noms de forme neutre. XVIII. Anhtroponymes grecs tirés de noms de nombre. XIX. Deux monstres onomastiques<br />

Akanthropos et Arbloson. XX. Battarus et Battara(s). XXI. ÑArmãtion et Sunvr¤w. XXII. Noms de femme grecs connus par la tradition latine. XXIII.<br />

Femmes d’un thiase athénien. XXIV. Trois femmes en Attique. 119 (1997) 57<strong>–</strong>75<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Quelques noms macédoniens dans le traité IG I 2 , 71 = IG I 3 , 89. 123 (1998) 117<strong>–</strong>120<br />

MASTROCINQUE, A., La dea Semaia in un’iscrizione greca di Roma. 120 (1998) 109<strong>–</strong>110<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Studi sulle gemme gnostiche. 120 (1998) 111<strong>–</strong>122<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Studi sulle gemme gnostiche. 122 (1998) 105<strong>–</strong>118<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Studi sulle gemme gnostiche. 130 (2000) 131<strong>–</strong>138<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Amuleto per l’utero dal territorio di Gela. 152 (2005) 168<strong>–</strong>170<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Le apparizioni del dio Bes nella tarda antichità. A proposito dell’iscrizione di Gornea. 153 (2005) 243<strong>–</strong>248<br />

<strong>–</strong>, La Preghiera di Manasse in un’iscrizione di Hierapolis di Frigia. 164 (2008) 256<strong>–</strong>258<br />

MASTRONARDE, D., A Ptolemaic Scrap of Euripides’ Phoenissae: P. Tebt. Suppl. 1245. 160 (2007) 29<strong>–</strong>31<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Tebt. Suppl. <strong>101</strong>8 (Hes. Catal. fr. 33(a), 16<strong>–</strong>20). 172 (2010) 192<strong>–</strong>194<br />

MATEI, I. <strong>–</strong> CHIRIAC, C. <strong>–</strong> MIHAILESCU-BÎRLIBA, L., Ein neues Militärdiplom aus Moesien. 150 (2004) 265<strong>–</strong>269<br />

MATHIEU, N. <strong>–</strong> RÉMY, B. <strong>–</strong> BRISSAUD, L. <strong>–</strong> PRISSET, J.-L., Un service officiel des eaux (cura aquarum) à Vienne? Le témoignage d’un tuyau de<br />

plomb découvert à Saint-Romain-en-Gal (Rhône). 179 (2011) 239<strong>–</strong>243<br />

MATIJEVIĆ, K., Ein Altar für Apollo und Aesculapius aus Dormagen/Durnomagus, Kreis Neuss. Zur Ergänzung von AE 1977, 564. 159 (2007) 301<strong>–</strong><br />

302<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Neue Inschriften aus Tholey/Gallia Belgica und Umgebung. 175 (2010) 258<strong>–</strong>264<br />

MATSAS, D. <strong>–</strong> DIMITROVA, N., New Samothracian Inscriptions Found Outside the Sanctuary of the Great Gods. 155 (2006) 127<strong>–</strong>136<br />

MATTHAIOS, S., „Der eifrig gehende Hephaistos“. Zu einer Worterklärung des Bodl. MS. Gr. class. f. 41 (P) zu Ilias A 600. 148 (2004) 121<strong>–</strong>125<br />

MATTHAIOS, S. <strong>–</strong> L<strong>UND</strong>ON, J., Nominal Accidents by Question and Answer: Two Fragments of a T°xnh GrammatikÆ, One New. 154 (2005) 97<strong>–</strong>116<br />

MATTHAIOU, A. P., Inschriften von Milet VI 3, 1020. A Note. 165 (2008) 84<strong>–</strong>86<br />

MATTINGLY, H., What Are the Right Dating Criteria for Fifth-Century Attic Texts? 126 (1999) 117<strong>–</strong>122<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Two Fifth-Century Attic Epigraphic Texts Revisited. 162 (2007) 107<strong>–</strong>110<br />

MAURIN, L. <strong>–</strong> AOUNALLAH, S., Pagus et civitas Siviritani. Une nouvelle “commune double” dans la pertica de Carthage. 167 (2008) 227<strong>–</strong>250<br />

MAURIN, L. <strong>–</strong> FRANCE, J., Une liste comptable sur plomb découverte à Bordeaux. 170 (2009) 247<strong>–</strong>264<br />

MAURIZI, L., Autorappresentazione senatoria nell’Agora di Atene e un nuovo proconsul Achaiae. 173 (2010) 253<strong>–</strong>265<br />

MAYER, K., Alcibiades the Deserter: P. Oxy. III 411 Col. IV. 98. 123 (1998) 232<strong>–</strong>234<br />

MAYER, K. <strong>–</strong> HARRIMAN, M. <strong>–</strong> MURPHY, S. <strong>–</strong> PIANKA, R., A New Inscription from Ilium. 113 (1996) 255<strong>–</strong>256<br />

MAYER, P., Krieg aus Versehen? Zur Funktion und Aussage der Telephos-Geschichte im neuen Archilochos (P. Oxy. 4708, fr. 1). 157 (2006) 15<strong>–</strong>18<br />

MAYERSON, Ph., A Note on Roga in <strong>ZPE</strong> 94 (1992) and <strong>ZPE</strong> 100 (<strong>1994</strong>). 105 (1995) 260<br />

<strong>–</strong>, An Additional Note on ÑRouzikÒn (Ar. rizq). 107 (1995) 279<strong>–</strong>281<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Word linokalãmh (Flax) vis à vis émorg¤w. 121 (1998) 223<strong>–</strong>225<br />

<strong>–</strong>, spãtion/spãyion <strong>–</strong> a Wineskin. 121 (1998) 226<strong>–</strong>228<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Sack (Sãkkow) is the Artaba Writ Large. 122 (1998) 189<strong>–</strong>194<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Measures (metrhta¤) and Donkeyloads of Oil in P. Wisc. II.80. 127 (1999) 189<strong>–</strong>192<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Meaning and Function of lhnÒw and Related Features in the Production of Wine. 131 (2000) 161<strong>–</strong>165<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Knidion Jar in Egypt: Popular, Made in Egypt, and of Unknown Capacity. 131 (2000) 165<strong>–</strong>167<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Value of the Maximian Cotyla in P. Oxy. L 3595 and PSI XII 1252. 131 (2000) 167<strong>–</strong>169<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Monochoron and Dichoron: Standard Measures for Wine Based on the Oxyrhynchition. 131 (2000) 169<strong>–</strong>172<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Note on P. Col. X 280.14: ken≈mata m°trƒ ofinik“ kotul«n dekaenn°a. 132 (2000) 255<strong>–</strong>256<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Relationship of P. Oxy. XVII 2153 to P. Oxy. L 3595<strong>–</strong>3597. 132 (2000) 257<strong>–</strong>258<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Jar Stoppers and the Sealing of Winejars. 136 (2001) 217<strong>–</strong>220<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Brief Life of an Innovation: the Tri-Keramia System Based Upon the Maximian Cotyla. 136 (2001) 221<strong>–</strong>224<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Pliny’s pateta (fo›nij pathtÒw) in Egypt, Palestine, and Arabia. 136 (2001) 225<strong>–</strong>228<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Enigmatic Knidion: A Wine Measure in Late Roman/Byzantine Egypt ? 141 (2002) 205<strong>–</strong>209<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Three Pharaonic Crops in Ptolemaic Egypt: ˆlura (Emmer Wheat) and Maslins of kriyÒpuron and ÙlurÒkriyon. 141 (2002) 210<strong>–</strong>213<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Mich. Inv. 1884 in a Broader Context. 141 (2002) 213<strong>–</strong>214<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Pitch (p¤ssa) for Egyptian Winejars an Imported Commodity. 147 (2004) 210<strong>–</strong>204<br />

MAZZA, R., P. Oxy. XVI 1911 e i conti annuali dei pronoetai. 122 (1998) 161<strong>–</strong>172<br />

McGING, B. C., The Ephesian Customs Law and the Third Mithradatic War. 109 (1995) 283<strong>–</strong>288<br />

McKECHNIE, P., An Errant Husband and a Rare Idiom (P. Oxy. 744). 127 (1999) 157<strong>–</strong>161<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Flavia Sophe in Context. 135 (2001) 117<strong>–</strong>124<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Syrian (?) Villager Remembered in Byzacium. 169 (2009) 177<strong>–</strong>179<br />

McNAMEE, K. <strong>–</strong> JACOVIDES, M. L., Annotations to the Speech of the Muses (Plato Republic 546B<strong>–</strong>C). 144 (2003) 31<strong>–</strong>50<br />

McLEOD, D., Contract for the Sale of a Slave. 180 (<strong>2012</strong>) 256<strong>–</strong>262<br />

MÉA, C., Le salariarius: un contractuel de l’armée romaine. <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>) 207<strong>–</strong>213<br />

MEADOWS, A., Fouilles d’Amyzon 6 Reconsidered: The Ptolemies at Amyzon. 166 (2008) 115<strong>–</strong>120<br />

MEADOWS, A. R. <strong>–</strong> MA, J. T. <strong>–</strong> DEROW, P. S., RC 38 (Amyzon) Reconsidered. 109 (1995) 71<strong>–</strong>80<br />

MECKLER, M., Two Papyri and Events in the Life of Caracalla. 105 (1995) 257<strong>–</strong>259<br />

MEDDA, E., Notes on the Text of Lysias, Against Hippotherses (P. Oxy. 1606). 129 (2000) 21<strong>–</strong>28<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Further Notes on P. Oxy. 1606 (Lysias, Against Hippotherses and other Speeches). 135 (2001) 23<strong>–</strong>31<br />

MEDNIKAROVA, I., The Use of Y in Latin Funerary Inscriptions. 136 (2001) 267<strong>–</strong>276<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Accusative of the Name of the Deceased in Latin and Greek Epitaphs. 143 (2003) 117<strong>–</strong>134<br />

MEIER, M., Die Erdbeben der Jahre 542 und 554 in der byzantinischen Überlieferung. Quellenkritische Überlegungen zur Geschichte des 6. Jahrhunderts<br />

n. Chr. 130 (2000) 286<strong>–</strong>295


Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff. 39<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Das Ende des Konsulats im Jahr 541/42 und seine Gründe. Kritische Anmerkungen zur Vorstellung eines ‚Zeitalters Justinians‘. 138 (2002) 277<strong>–</strong>299<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Die Inszenierung einer Katastrophe: Justinian und der Nika-Aufstand. 142 (2003) 273<strong>–</strong>300<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Die erste Prätorianerpräfektur des Marinos von Apameia. 162 (2007) 293<strong>–</strong>296<br />

MEIER, M. <strong>–</strong> SCHMITZ, W., Zu einigen spätantiken und frühmittelalterlichen Inschriften aus dem Rheinland. 124 (1998) 293<strong>–</strong>299<br />

MELIADÒ, Cl., PAnt III 118: un nuovo testimone esiodeo. 142 (2003) 19<strong>–</strong>20<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Un nuovo frammento esiodeo in uno scolio a Teocrito. 145 (2003) 1<strong>–</strong>5<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Scoli a Teocrito in POxy 2064+3548. 147 (2004) 15<strong>–</strong>26<br />

<strong>–</strong>, PChic 1061 = PLitGoodspeed 2. Proposte di lettura ed interpretazione. 150 (2004) 49<strong>–</strong>58<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Parhiã!, un hapax presunto. 150 (2004) 59<strong>–</strong>61<br />

<strong>–</strong>, PMich inv. 1261: Un nuovo frammento di Antimaco? 155 (2006) 41<strong>–</strong>48<br />

<strong>–</strong>, PAnt II 60: Herodiani Per‹ kayolik∞! pro!ƒd¤a! fragmentum novum? 155 (2006) 49<strong>–</strong>54<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Un nuovo ‘commentario’ teocriteo (P.Monts. Roca inv. 316). 177 (2011) 35<strong>–</strong>40<br />

<strong>–</strong>, POxy XXXIX 2886: un cavaliere in cerca d’identità. 177 (2011) 41<strong>–</strong>52<br />

MELLO, F., ÑA Wrãtra to›w Wale¤oiw. Rhetra e le wratrai olimpiche. 167 (2008) 50<strong>–</strong>66<br />

MENCI, G., Un amuleto “Bous” da Antinoe. 159 (2007) 249<strong>–</strong>252 (Corrigendum dazu: 167 (2008) 8)<br />

<strong>–</strong>, PRein II 87: sillabario tachigrafico. 159 (2007) 253<strong>–</strong>255 (Corrigendum dazu: 167 (2008) 8)<br />

<strong>–</strong>, PDura 7: Demosthenes, In Aristocratem (or. XXIII) 55. 167 (2008) 6<strong>–</strong>8<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Un epigramma del Certamen Homeri et Hesiodi (309<strong>–</strong>312 Allen) in P.Duk. inv. 665. 180 (<strong>2012</strong>) 43<strong>–</strong>47<br />

MÉNDEZ DOSUNA, J., Aristón adoptó tres hijas. 151 (2005) 87<strong>–</strong>90<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes de lecture sur les lamelles oraculaires de Dodone. 161 (2007) 137<strong>–</strong>144<br />

<strong>–</strong>, J., Le skyphos de Satyros et le kelês de Dorilaos: une consultation oraculaire de Dodone (Lhôte n° 113). 162 (2007) <strong>181</strong><strong>–</strong>187<br />

MENNELLA, G., Nota a RIB 2404,5. 112 (1996) 241<strong>–</strong>242<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Una nuova dedica a Maioriano e un probabile corrector Lucaniae et Brittii nel 459. 133 (2000) 237<strong>–</strong>242<br />

MENNELLA, G. <strong>–</strong> CHELOTTI, M., Letture e riletture epigrafiche nella Regio II. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 159<strong>–</strong>172<br />

MERKELBACH, R., Das Repertorium der Inschriften von Mylasa. Zu Th. Drew-Bears Rezension von I. K. 34 (W. Blümel), mit einer Hypothese über die<br />

Mylaseer Pachturkunden. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 301<strong>–</strong>306<br />

<strong>–</strong>, efiatÆrion. 102 (<strong>1994</strong>) 296<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zur §nkatoxÆ im Sarapeum zu Memphis. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 293<strong>–</strong>296<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Das Mainzer Mithrasgefäß. 108 (1995) 1<strong>–</strong>6<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Der Überlieferungstyp „Epitome aucta“ und die Historia Apollonii. 108 (1995) 7<strong>–</strong>14<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Entgegnung an William M. Calder III. 110 (1996) 311<strong>–</strong>312<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Quinquennalia der neuen Inscriptiones Graecae. 114 (1996) 299<strong>–</strong>300. S. dazu 116 (1997) 301<strong>–</strong>304<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Dirk Obbinks neuer Philodem. 115 (1997) 103<strong>–</strong>104<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Überlegungen zur Fortführung der Inscriptiones Graecae. 117 (1997) 297<strong>–</strong>303<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein Bilderrätsel. 117 (1997) 304<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein armenischer König spricht aus dem Felsgrab. 120 (1998) 15<strong>–</strong>16<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nochmals Inscriptiones Graecae. 122 (1998) 293<strong>–</strong>299<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Die Stunde der Wahrheit. 125 (1999) 84<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Die goldenen Totenpässe: ägyptisch, orphisch, bakchisch. 128 (1999) 1<strong>–</strong>13 (Corrigendum dazu: 133 (2000) 202)<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ehrenepigramm auf (Flavius) Nomus aus Caesarea Maritima. 136 (2001) 298<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Iuxta lacunam ne mutaveris. 142 (2003) 34<br />

MERKELBACH, R. <strong>–</strong> BLÜMEL, W., Dorisch §nti statt §sti. 112 (1996) 151<strong>–</strong>152<br />

MESSERI, G., Suggestioni da PSI IV 308. 135 (2001) 165<strong>–</strong>168<br />

MESSERI, G. <strong>–</strong> L<strong>UND</strong>ON, J., A Passage of Isocrates on the Back of a Protocol (PVindob G 39977). 132 (2000) 125<strong>–</strong>131<br />

MESSERI (SAVORELLI), G. <strong>–</strong> PINTAUDI, R., Petizione al komogrammateus Petesuchos (PL III/909). 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 233<strong>–</strong>240<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zenoniana. 107 (1995) 113<strong>–</strong>120<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Due domande oracolari in greco. 111 (1996) 183<strong>–</strong>187<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Frammenti di rotoli letterari Laurenziani. 115 (1997) 171<strong>–</strong>177<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Apion, nomarca dell’Arsinoites. 120 (1998) 131<strong>–</strong>144<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Spigolature V. 122 (1998) 123<strong>–</strong>130<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Spigolature VI. 129 (2000) 265<strong>–</strong>273<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Proprietà imperiali e tasse in un papiro della Collezione Schøyen. 130 (2000) 197<strong>–</strong>200<br />

METZGER, E., Interrupting Proceedings in iure: vadimonium and intertium. 120 (1998) 215<strong>–</strong>225<br />

MEYER, E., Two Grants of Politeia and the Molossians at Dodona. 180 (<strong>2012</strong>) 205<strong>–</strong>216<br />

MEZQUÍRIZ, M. A. <strong>–</strong> VELAZA, J., Un anillo infantil con inscripción griega procedente de Andelo (Muruzábal de Andión, Navarra). 152 (2005) 171<strong>–</strong><br />

172<br />

MICHAELIDOU-NICOLAOU, I. <strong>–</strong> PANAYOTOU-TRIANTAPHYLLOPOULOU, A., L’inscription digraphe de Salamine de Chypre (Test. Sal. 2, n˚<br />

17). 121 (1998) 95<strong>–</strong>102<br />

MIHAILESCU-BÎRLIBA, L. <strong>–</strong> CHIRIAC, C. <strong>–</strong> MATEI, I., Ein neues Militärdiplom aus Moesien. 150 (2004) 265<strong>–</strong>269<br />

MIHAYLOVICH, A. <strong>–</strong> MACDONALD, D., A New Moesia inferior Diploma of 97. 138 (2002) 225<strong>–</strong>228<br />

MILI, M., The Thessalian Ainians or the Ainians of Thessaly? Dedications and Games of Identity in Roman Thessaly. 176 (2011) 169<strong>–</strong>176<br />

MILLÁN, J. M. <strong>–</strong> ALFÖLDY, G. <strong>–</strong> ABASCAL, J. M., Otro testimonio meridional de las “organizaciones suprafamiliares” indígenas de la Hispania<br />

citerior. 168 (2009) 283<strong>–</strong>285 (Corrigendum dazu: 173 (2010) 266)<br />

MILLS, A. J. <strong>–</strong> WORP, K. A., A Poll-Tax Receipt from El-Gedida (Dakleh Oasis). 133 (2000) 187<strong>–</strong>189<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Four Greek Ostraka from Deir el-Hagar. 146 (2004) 155<strong>–</strong>158<br />

MILNOR, K. <strong>–</strong> AMBÜHL, A. <strong>–</strong> MARKOVSKA, D., P. Mich. Inv. 29: Two Astrological Treatises. 105 (1995) 229<strong>–</strong>236<br />

van MINNEN, P., Une nouvelle liste de toponymes du nome Hermopolite. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 83<strong>–</strong>86<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Note on Gordian’s Second Letter to the Citizens of Antinoopolis. 102 (<strong>1994</strong>) 213<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Late Antique Schooltablet at Duke University. 106 (1995) 175<strong>–</strong>178<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Did Ancient Women Learn a Trade Outside the Home? A Note on SB XVIII 13305. 123 (1998) 201<strong>–</strong>203<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Agriculture and the ‘Taxes-and-Trade’ Model in Roman Egypt. 133 (2000) 205<strong>–</strong>220<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Oxy. LXVI 4257 and the Antonine Plague in the Fayyum. 135 (2001) 175<strong>–</strong>177


40 Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff.<br />

MINON, S., Remarques onomastiques sur l’inscription crétoise de Chamalévri. 160 (2007) 108<strong>–</strong>112<br />

MIRKOVIĆ, M., New Fragments of Military Diplomas from Viminacium. 126 (1999) 249<strong>–</strong>254<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Euphrata et Romano consulibus auf einem neuen Militärdiplom von der unteren Sava. 133 (2000) 286<strong>–</strong>290<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Roster of the VII Claudia Legion. 146 (2004) 211<strong>–</strong>220<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein Bleigewicht im Museum von Požarevac. 152 (2005) 295<strong>–</strong>298<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein neues Diplom aus Pannonia Inferior und RMD V 401: Wo sind die übrigen fünf Kohorten geblieben? 166 (2008) 285<strong>–</strong>290<br />

MITFORD, T. B., The Inscriptions of Satala (Armenia Minor). 115 (1997) 137<strong>–</strong>167<br />

MITREV, G., Civitas Heracleotarum: Heracleia Sintica or the Ancient City at the Village of Rupite (Bulgaria). 145 (2003) 263<strong>–</strong>272<br />

MITTHOF, F., Quittung eines Soldaten an presbÊteroi k≈mhw über verschiedene Lieferungen. Eine Neuedition von P. Alex. Inv. 463. 102 (<strong>1994</strong>) 207<strong>–</strong><br />

212<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Remigius comes primi ordinis et praefectus Augustalis. 109 (1995) 113<strong>–</strong>118<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Anordnung des rationalis Vitalis betreffs der Instandsetzung von Schiffen. 129 (2000) 259<strong>–</strong>264<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bemerkungen zur Datierung von Urkunden. 132 (2000) 223<strong>–</strong>224<br />

<strong>–</strong>, ÉEn tª Soknopa¤ou NÆsƒ. Zur Bezeichnung des Errichtungs- bzw. Registrierungsortes in den Notariatsurkunden aus Soknopaiou Nesos. 133 (2000)<br />

193<strong>–</strong>196<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bemerkungen zu den Kaiserpetitionen P. Lips. I 34 und 35 (= ChLA XII 524). 139 (2002) 139<strong>–</strong>142<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Betrügerische Zollbeamte und der procurator usiacus. Bemerkungen zu P. Amh. II 77. 159 (2007) 256<strong>–</strong>260<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bemerkungen zur Datierung von Urkunden aus dem Heroninos-Archiv. 161 (2007) 191<strong>–</strong>194<br />

MITTHOF, F. <strong>–</strong> HAGEDORN, D., Ein Kourepistoulariow (cura epistularum) im Büro des praeses provinciae Arcadiae. Eine Bemerkung zu P. Mich.<br />

XVIII 794. 117 (1997) 187<strong>–</strong>189<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Paramone 18: Ein neu plaziertes Fragment, oder: Cave restauratorem chartarum. 149 (2004) 157<strong>–</strong>158<br />

MITTHOF, F. <strong>–</strong> PAPATHOMAS, A., Das Archiv des §laiourgÒw Sambas. Unterhaltszahlungen in Öl an die Bediensteten eines Gutes (Arsinoites; 6. Jh.<br />

n. Chr.). 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 53<strong>–</strong>84<br />

MOED, F., A Remarkable Roman Tile-Stamp of the Cohort XV voluntariorum from Köln (Cologne, Germany). <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>) 214<br />

MOFFITT, D. M. <strong>–</strong> BUTERA, C. J., P.Duk. inv. 727: A Dispute with “Proselytes” in Egypt. <strong>ZPE</strong> 177 (2011) 201<strong>–</strong>206<br />

MOJE, J., Zu einigen griechischen Inschriften aus Ägypten. 164 (2008) 145<strong>–</strong>152<br />

MOLLE, C., Un’iscrizione inedita dal fiume Melfa ed i Cofii di Aquinum. 146 (2004) 237<strong>–</strong>238<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Una nota a CIL X 5469. 153 (2005) 287<strong>–</strong>290<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Una stele iscritta da Interamna Lirenas. 174 (2010) 237<strong>–</strong>240<br />

MONTANA, F., Uno scolio del tipo “oÈk érg«w” ad Aristoph., Equ. 551 in P. Berol. 21105? 135 (2001) 21<strong>–</strong>22<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nuova luce su P.Amh. II 12, Col. I (hypomnema di Aristarco al libro I di Erodoto). 180 (<strong>2012</strong>) 72<strong>–</strong>76<br />

MOOG, F. P., „Schöne Grüße“ vom Gegner. Zu einer außergewöhnlichen Molybdis aus Lydien. 161 (2007) 280<strong>–</strong>282<br />

MOORE, D. W., A Note on CIL VI.1585a<strong>–</strong>b and the Role of Adrastus, procurator of the Column of Marcus Aurelius. <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>) 221<strong>–</strong>229<br />

MORALEJO, J. L., Mumio vuelva a Itálica (de nuevo sobre CIL I 2 630, II 1119). 177 (2011) 289<strong>–</strong>297<br />

MOREL, P.-M. <strong>–</strong> DELATTRE, D., Du nouveau sur le fr. B 144 D.<strong>–</strong>K. de Démocrite. 121 (1998) 21<strong>–</strong>24<br />

MORELLI, F., P. Berol. inv. 25041 e le fiaccole dell’emiro dei credenti. 115 (1997) 198<strong>–</strong>199<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Sei katabola¤ in P. Bodl. I 107. 115 (1997) 199<strong>–</strong>200<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Vindob. G 42920 e la filotim¤a di ‘Umar b. Marwân. 121 (1998) 219<strong>–</strong>221<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Michael. 62 A (= Pack 2 2308): un problema di matematica? Una storia di edizioni e di fraintendimenti. 122 (1998) 135<strong>–</strong>138<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Note a P. Bad. IV 95. 122 (1998) 139<strong>–</strong>143<br />

<strong>–</strong>, ‘Nuovi’ documenti per la storia dell’irrigazione nell’Egitto bizantino. SB XVI 12377, P. Bad. IV 93, SPP X 295<strong>–</strong>299, e altri. 126 (1999) 195<strong>–</strong>201<br />

<strong>–</strong>, CPR IX 52: riepilogo di un registro fiscale? 127 (1999) 123<strong>–</strong>126<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Agri deserti (mawât), fuggitivi, fisco: una klÆrvsiw in più in SPP VIII 1183. 129 (2000) 167<strong>–</strong>178<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Brook. 26: mogli, tasse e j°noi. Un problema di punti di vista. 130 (2000) 218<strong>–</strong>222<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Requisizioni e prezzi in SPP X 215 (Un papiro ‘ossirinchita’ dell’ VIII secolo). 138 (2002) 149<strong>–</strong>153<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Laur. III 88 e P. Laur. IV 182: due attestazioni in più per la chiesa di S. Theodoros degli égora›oi (e una in meno per il diãgrafon ‘bizantino’).<br />

138 (2002) 154<strong>–</strong>156<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Una klÆrvsiw in meno e nessun prezzo in P. Wash. Univ. I 58. 138 (2002) 156<strong>–</strong>158<br />

<strong>–</strong>, CPR XIV 55, il T¤miow StaurÒw del Fayyûm, e un papiro dimenticato: SPP X 219. 138 (2002) 159<strong>–</strong>167<br />

<strong>–</strong>, I xvr¤a in a dell’Arsinoite. 149 (2004) 125<strong>–</strong>137<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Il laxanÒspermon, il =afan°laion, e il sesamo: olii e oleaginose fantasma. 149 (2004) 138<strong>–</strong>142<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Ant. III 139 fr. 1: un frammento di Galeno, De compositione medicamentorum per genera VII 10 <strong>–</strong> e di P. Ant. III 186? 172 (2010) 203<strong>–</strong>207<br />

<strong>–</strong>, ‘Amr e Martina: la reggenza di un’imperatrice o l’amministrazione araba d’Egitto. 173 (2010) 136<strong>–</strong>157<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Consiglieri e comandanti: i titoli del governatore arabo d’Egitto symboulos e amîr. 173 (2010) 158<strong>–</strong>166<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Philo Vindobonensis restitutus. Non c’è due senza tre: P. Vindob. G 30531 + 60584 + 21649. 173 (2010) 167<strong>–</strong>174<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Morelli, F., Vino sul Nilo. T. Varie 3, un viaggio a Costantinopoli in meno e una transazione innovativa. 175 (2010) 209<strong>–</strong>223<br />

MORELLI, F. <strong>–</strong> GONIS, N., A Requisition for the ‘Commander of the Faithful’: SPP VIII 1082 Revised. 132 (2000) 193<strong>–</strong>195<br />

MORELLI, F. <strong>–</strong> SCHMELZ, G., Gli ostraca di Akoris n. 19 e 20 e la produzione di koËfa nell’area del tempio Ovest. 139 (2002) 127<strong>–</strong>137<br />

MORENO, A., Athenian Bread-Baskets: The Grain-Tax Law of 374/3 B.C. Re-interpreted. 145 (2003) 97<strong>–</strong>106<br />

MORETTI, A. F., Nota a P. Mil. Vogl. I 13 (Pack 2 296). 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 52<br />

MORETTI, A. F. <strong>–</strong> MALNATI, A., P. Stras. inv. gr. 1550: un contrat de proxre¤a. 113 (1996) 219<strong>–</strong>220<br />

MORGAN, T., Some Lost Fragments of Hyperides. 123 (1998) 75<strong>–</strong>77<br />

MORISON, W. S., An Honorary Deme Decree and the Administration of a Palaistra in Kephissia. 131 (2000) 93<strong>–</strong>98<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Property Records for Athenian Cleruchs or Colonists?: Notes on IG I 3 420. 145 (2003) 109<strong>–</strong>113<br />

MORIZOT, P., Masties a-t-il été imperator? 141 (2002) 231<strong>–</strong>240<br />

MOROO, A., Neglected Three-Bar Sigmas: The Numeral Signs for Staters. 141 (2002) 129<strong>–</strong>133<br />

MOURITSEN, H., Freedmen and Freeborn in the Necropolis of Imperial Ostia. 150 (2004) 281<strong>–</strong>304<br />

<strong>–</strong>, CIL X 1403: The album from Herculaneum and the nomenclature of Latini Iuniani. 161 (2007) 288<strong>–</strong>290<br />

MOYER, I. S., Notes on Re-Reading the Delian Aretalogy of Sarapis (IG XI.4 1299). 166 (2008) <strong>101</strong><strong>–</strong>107<br />

MRATSCHEK, S., Einblicke in einen Postsack. Zur Struktur und Edition der ‚Natalicia‘ des Paulinus von Nola. 114 (1996) 165<strong>–</strong>172 (Corrigenda dazu:<br />

117 (1997) 162)


Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff. 41<br />

MRÁV, Zs. <strong>–</strong> SZABÓ, A., Fragment einer bronzenen Urkunde neuen Typs über die Entlassung eines Legionssoldaten vom Jahre 240 n. Chr. 169 (2009)<br />

255<strong>–</strong>268<br />

MROZEWICZ, L., Aurelius Philippus: ein neuer cornicularius aus Novae (Moesia inferior). 172 (2010) 289<strong>–</strong>295<br />

MROZEWICZ, L. <strong>–</strong> BUNSCH, E., C. Sammucius Maior im titulus pictus aus Novae (ILatNovae 38 = IGrLat Novae 57). 165 (2008) 241<strong>–</strong>248<br />

MUCCIGROSSO, J. D. <strong>–</strong> HIGGINBOTHAM, J., A New Archaic Dipinto from Poseidonia. 178 (2011) 191<strong>–</strong>194<br />

MUCCIOLI, F., La titolatura di Cleopatra VII in una nuova iscrizione cipriota e la genesi dell’epiteto Thea Neotera. 146 (2004) 105<strong>–</strong>114<br />

MUELLER, I., Single Women in the Roman Funerary Inscriptions. 175 (2010) 295<strong>–</strong>303<br />

MUGNAI, N., Equites singulares Augusti: Un nuovo diploma militare del Regno di Adriano. 176 (2011) 262<strong>–</strong>266<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Un nuovo diploma militare per le truppe della Dacia inferior. 177 (2011) 277<strong>–</strong>280<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Due appliques militari iscritte, conservate in una collezione privata, e nuove osservazioni su alcuni esemplari da Thamusida (Mauretania Tingitana).<br />

179 (2011) 299<strong>–</strong>303<br />

MUHS, B. <strong>–</strong> WORP, K. A., Yet More Duplicate Mummy Labels. 162 (2007) 213<strong>–</strong>214<br />

MUJJALI, A. <strong>–</strong> AGUSTA-BOULAROT, S. <strong>–</strong> SEIGNE, J., Maximien à Gerasa (Jerash, Jordanie) et les gouverneurs de la province d’Arabie à l’époque de<br />

Dioclétien et de la Tétrarchie. 164 (2008) 263<strong>–</strong>270<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Milliaires anciens et nouveaux de Gerasa. Complément 1. 164 (2008) 271<strong>–</strong>276<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Épigramme funéraire d’une jeune fille de Phrygie à Gerasa (Jerash, Jordanie). 179 (2011) 103<strong>–</strong>106<br />

MÜLKE, Chr., Po¤vn d¢ kak«n oÈk a‡tiÒw §sti: Euripides’ Aiolos und der Geschwisterinzest im klassischen Athen. 114 (1996) 37<strong>–</strong>55<br />

MÜLLER, C. W., Wanted! Die Kallimachosforschung auf der Suche nach einem einsilbigen Substantiv. 122 (1998) 36<strong>–</strong>40<br />

MÜLLER, J. W., Synchronization of the Late Athenian with the Julian Calendar. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 128<strong>–</strong>138<br />

MÜLLER, M., A Circular Letter and a Memo (P. Mich. Inv. 6980). 105 (1995) 237<strong>–</strong>243<br />

MÜLLER, S. <strong>–</strong> HEINRICHS, J., Ein persisches Statussymbol auf Münzen Alexanders I. von Makedonien. 167 (2008) 283<strong>–</strong>309<br />

MUÑOZ FLÓREZ, J., Seis comentarios al texto del nuevo “In Diondam” de Hiperides. 180 (<strong>2012</strong>) 67<strong>–</strong>71<br />

MURCIA MUÑOZ, A. J. <strong>–</strong> RAMALLO ASENSIO, S. F., Aqua et lacus en Carthago Nova. Aportaciones al estudio del aprovisionamiento hídrico en<br />

época romana. 172 (2010) 249<strong>–</strong>258<br />

MURPHY, S. <strong>–</strong> HARRIMAN, M. <strong>–</strong> MAYER, K. <strong>–</strong> PIANKA, R., A New Inscription from Ilium. 113 (1996) 255<strong>–</strong>256<br />

MUSCOLINO, F., Gli studi epigrafici e archeologici di Anthony Askew e Thomas Blackburne a Taormina (1748<strong>–</strong>1749). 162 (2007) 132<strong>–</strong>138<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Giovanni di Giovanni, le epigrafi greche di Taormina e il carteggio con Ludovico Antonio Muratori. 167 (2008) 119<strong>–</strong>134<br />

MUSE, K., Prodigals and Avenging Spirits: A Comment on PCG Adespota 578. 161 (2007) 17<strong>–</strong>19<br />

MUSSIES, G. <strong>–</strong> van der HORST, P. W., A Greek Christian Epitaph in Utrecht. 110 (1996) 285<strong>–</strong>289<br />

MUSSO, O., La Sfinge di Mesomede alla luce di un mosaico del Monferrato. 120 (1998) 35<strong>–</strong>38<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Una nuova iscrizione a Zeus Heliopolitano. 125 (1999) 175<strong>–</strong>176<br />

NACHTERGAEL, G., Remarques sur des lampes et d’autres objets inscrits d’Égypte. 119 (1997) 185<strong>–</strong>188<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Empreintes de pieds aux abords de Qasr Ibrim. 119 (1997) 188<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Un alabastre ptolémaïque inscrit. 123 (1998) 145<strong>–</strong>148<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Un verset du Psaume 140 sur un encensoir du Musée Copte du Caire. 141 (2002) 148<br />

<strong>–</strong>, À propos d’une stèle grecque de la collection Tamerit. 141 (2002) 204<br />

NAETHER, F. <strong>–</strong> RENBERG, G. H., “I Celebrated a Fine Day”. An Overlooked Egyptian Phrase in a Bilingual Letter Preserving a Dream Narrative. 175<br />

(2010) 49<strong>–</strong>71<br />

NAPOLITANO, M., Sul graffito di Mogea (CEG I 446, Tespie): dono nuziale o Witz da simposio? 125 (1999) 25<strong>–</strong>38<br />

NASO, A., Una dedica ad Ercole dall’agro tarquiniese. 105 (1995) 57<strong>–</strong>61<br />

NASTI, F., Il prefetto del pretorio di CIL VI 1638 (= D. 1331) e la sua carriera. 117 (1997) 281<strong>–</strong>290<br />

NAUERTH, C., Zu Wirkkartons in den Papyri. 168 (2009) 278<br />

NAVARRO, F. J. <strong>–</strong> ECK, W., Das Ehrenmonument der Colonia Carthago für L. Minicius Natalis Quadronius Verus in seiner Heimatstadt Barcino. 123<br />

(1998) 237<strong>–</strong>248<br />

NAWOTKA, K., Inscr. Scyth. Min. I 207 (Istros) Reconsidered. 120 (1998) 107<strong>–</strong>108<br />

NEGRI, M., L’oschophorikon di POxy 2451 B fr. 17.6 e la sua posizione nell’edizione di Pindaro. 138 (2002) 31<strong>–</strong>39<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Gli olivi di Callimaco (fr. 384.3 e 194.56<strong>–</strong>59 Pf.). 153 (2005) 83<strong>–</strong>98<br />

NEILS, J. <strong>–</strong> ANTONACCIO, C. M., A New Graffito from Archaic Morgantina. 105 (1995) 261<strong>–</strong>277<br />

NELSON, C. A., Receipts for Trade-Tax in Elephantine/Syene. 107 (1995) 259<strong>–</strong>262<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Three Date-Palm Receipts from Elephantine/Syene. 122 (1998) 201<strong>–</strong>205<br />

NÉMETH, G., Hekatompedon-Probleme. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 215<strong>–</strong>218 (Corrigenda dazu: 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 22)<br />

<strong>–</strong>, IG II<strong>–</strong>III 2 5222; 6217 und die athenische Reiterei nach dem Sturz der Dreißig Tyrannen. 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 95<strong>–</strong>102<br />

NÉMETH, G. <strong>–</strong> CANÓS I VILLENA, I., ORVRIOUY in Vilabertran. 130 (2000) 139<strong>–</strong>142<br />

NÉMETH, M. <strong>–</strong> KOVÁCS, P., Eine neue Bauinschrift aus Aquincum. 169 (2009) 249<strong>–</strong>254<br />

NERI, C., Erinna a Ossirinco. 115 (1997) 57<strong>–</strong>72<br />

NERVEGNA, S., Staging Scenes or Plays? Theatrical Revivals of “Old” Greek Drama in Antiquity. 162 (2007) 14<strong>–</strong>42<br />

NESSELRATH, H.-G., Eine kurze Bemerkung zum neuen Donat. 121 (1998) 67<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Atlantis auf ägyptischen Stelen? Der Philosoph Krantor als Epigraphiker. 135 (2001) 33<strong>–</strong>35<br />

NIAFAS, K., A Note on Ep. Adesp. 9.X.14 Powell (PChicag. 1279 Pack). 119 (1997) 55<strong>–</strong>56 (Corrigendum dazu: 121 (1998) 300)<br />

NICHOLS, A. <strong>–</strong> WAGMAN, R., Three Perirrhanteria from the Epidaurian Asclepieum. 155 (2006) 137<strong>–</strong>138<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Minima Epidaurica. 158 (2006) 187<strong>–</strong>189<br />

NICKAU, K., Ptolemaios von Askalon im Lyrikerkommentar P. Oxy. 2637? 136 (2001) 23<strong>–</strong>24<br />

NICKBAKHT, M. A., Zur ovatio des jüngeren Drusus in den Fasti Ostienses und Fasti Amiternini. 153 (2005) 264<strong>–</strong>266<br />

NICOLOSI, A., Su uno scolio marginale ad Hippon. fr. 88,2 Dg. 171 (2009) 1<strong>–</strong>2<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Hippon. fr. º195 Dg. (= *116 W. 2 ): marginalia. 174 (2010) 15<strong>–</strong>18<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Oxy. XXXVII 2811, fr. 5a<strong>–</strong>b rr. 9s. (= Adesp. Com. fr. *1114,66s. K.<strong>–</strong>A.). 177 (2011) 27<strong>–</strong>29<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Oxy. XVIII 2176 Fr. 6,12 (= Hippon. Fr. 131 E Dg.; 118 D W. 2 ). 180 (<strong>2012</strong>) 49<strong>–</strong>50<br />

NICOSIA, S., L’epitafio per Admeto di Tera (IG XII 3, 868). 111 (1996) 31<strong>–</strong>39<br />

NIELSEN, B., Application for a Lease of Vineyard Irrigation. 106 (1995) 179<strong>–</strong>188<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Correction to P. Mich. XV 720. 108 (1995) 193<strong>–</strong>194<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Catalog of Duplicate Papyri. 129 (2000) 187<strong>–</strong>214


42 Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff.<br />

NIELSEN, B. <strong>–</strong> WORP, K. A., New Papyri from the New York University Collection: I. 133 (2000) 163<strong>–</strong>186<br />

<strong>–</strong>, New Papyri from the New York University Collection: II. 136 (2001) 125<strong>–</strong>144<br />

<strong>–</strong>, New Papyri from the New York University Collection: III. 140 (2002) 129<strong>–</strong>150<br />

<strong>–</strong>, New Papyri from the New York University Collection: IV. 149 (2004) 103<strong>–</strong>124<br />

NIELSEN, Th. H., A Note on the Bronze Bull of Aleatis from Nemea (= SEG 11 292). 167 (2008) 73<strong>–</strong>74<br />

NIETO IBÁÑEZ, J.-M., A Greek Epitaph in the Bierzo District Museum, Spain. 125 (1999) 173<strong>–</strong>174<br />

NIGDELIS, P. M., Synagoge(n) und Gemeinde der Juden in Thessaloniki: Fragen aufgrund einer neuen jüdischen Grabinschrift der Kaiserzeit. 102<br />

(<strong>1994</strong>) 297<strong>–</strong>306<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Kalendarium Caesianum; zum kaiserlichen Patrimonium in der Provinz Makedonien. 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 118<strong>–</strong>128<br />

NIGDELIS, P. M. <strong>–</strong> ANTONARAS, A., Ein neues Militärdiplom im Museum Byzantinischer Kultur von Thessaloniki. 121 (1998) 283<strong>–</strong>286<br />

NIGDELIS, P. M. <strong>–</strong> SVERKOS, E. K., Zur Neudefinition des Territoriums einer makedonischen Polis der Kaiserzeit: Der Fall von Bragylos in Krestonia.<br />

169 (2009) 163<strong>–</strong>172<br />

NIKITINSKI, O., Kallimachos und die Tragodoi. Zu Kallimachos fr. 192,12<strong>–</strong>13. 122 (1998) 41<strong>–</strong>46<br />

NINIOÚ-KINDELÍ, V. <strong>–</strong> MARTÍNEZ FERNÁNDEZ, Á., Inscripciones del heroon de Aptera (Creta). 138 (2002) 270<strong>–</strong>272<br />

NIQUET, H., Die Inschrift des Liber Pater-Tempels in Sabratha. 135 (2001) 249<strong>–</strong>263<br />

NOBBS, A. <strong>–</strong> GARDNER, I. <strong>–</strong> CHOAT, M., P. Harr. 107: Is this another Greek Manichaean Letter? 131 (2000) 118<strong>–</strong>124<br />

NOGUERA BOREL, A. <strong>–</strong> JUHEL, P. <strong>–</strong> RZEPKA, J. <strong>–</strong> SEK<strong>UND</strong>A, N. V., A New Greek Inscription from the Area of Tremnik (Republic of<br />

Macedonia/Skopje). 161 (2007) 170<strong>–</strong>172<br />

NOLLÉ, J., Militärdiplom für einen in Britannien entlassenen Daker. 117 (1997) 269<strong>–</strong>274<br />

NOLLÉ, J. <strong>–</strong> NOLLÉ, M. K., Vom feinen Spiel städtischer Diplomatie. Zu Zeremoniell und Sinn kaiserzeitlicher Homonoia-Feste. 102 (<strong>1994</strong>) 241<strong>–</strong>261<br />

NOLLÉ, M. K. <strong>–</strong> NOLLÉ, J., Vom feinen Spiel städtischer Diplomatie. Zu Zeremoniell und Sinn kaiserzeitlicher Homonoia-Feste. 102 (<strong>1994</strong>) 241<strong>–</strong>261<br />

NOUWEN, R., Atuatuca Tungrorum, the First Known Municipium of Gallia Belgica? 115 (1997) 278<strong>–</strong>280<br />

NOY, D., The Epitaph of an Askalonite from Delos. 177 (2011) 127<strong>–</strong>130<br />

NÜNLIST, R., Zu den Lukrez-Buchrollen aus Herculaneum. 116 (1997) 19<strong>–</strong>20<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zu den notae personarum in P. Oxy. 4022 (Menander). 126 (1999) 75<strong>–</strong>76<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein neu identifiziertes Buchfragment aus Menanders Epitrepontes. 128 (1999) 54<strong>–</strong>56<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes on P. Oxy. 4021 fr. 3 (Menander, Epitrepontes). 144 (2003) 59<strong>–</strong>61<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Neglected testimonium on the Homeric Book-Division. 157 (2006) 47<strong>–</strong>49<br />

NÜNLIST, R. <strong>–</strong> HENRY, W. B., Aeschylus, Dictyulci (fr. 47a Radt) and Isthmiastae (fr. 78a<strong>–</strong>d). 129 (2000) 13<strong>–</strong>16<br />

OATES, J. F., Two Notes: I. Thèbes à Syène 190 and P. Tebt. II 382. 146 (2004) 173<strong>–</strong>174<br />

OATES, J. F. <strong>–</strong> SOSIN, J. D., P. Duk. inv. 314: Agathis, Strategos and Hipparches of the Arsinoite Nome. 118 (1997) 251<strong>–</strong>258<br />

OATES, J. F. <strong>–</strong> WEINBERG, R. J. <strong>–</strong> SOSIN, J. D. <strong>–</strong> JOHNSON, P. B., Reading Invisible Ink: Digital Imaging of P. Duk. inv. 716. 127 (1999) 127<strong>–</strong>130<br />

OBBINK, D., A New Archilochus Poem. 156 (2006) 1<strong>–</strong>9<br />

OBSIEGER, H., Bemerkungen zu der Liebesprosa auf P. Erl. 4 = Nr. 7 Schubart. 162 (2007) 85<strong>–</strong>86<br />

O’CALLAGHAN, J., Nota sobre “servus Dei” en los papiros. 106 (1995) 201<strong>–</strong>202<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nota paleográfica sobre PLit. Palau Rib. 21. 110 (1996) <strong>101</strong><strong>–</strong>102<br />

OETJEN, R., War Demetrios von Phaleron, der Jüngere, Kommissar des Königs Antigonos II. Gonatas in Athen? 131 (2000) 111<strong>–</strong>117<br />

OLESON, J. P. <strong>–</strong> REEVES, M. B. <strong>–</strong> FISHER, B. J., New Dedicatory Inscriptions from Humayma (Ancient Hawara), Jordan. 140 (2002) 103<strong>–</strong>121<br />

OLIVER, G., Callimachus the Poet and Benefactor of the Athenians. 140 (2002) 6<strong>–</strong>8<br />

OLIVER, G. J. <strong>–</strong> DAVIES, J. K., The Revision of Athenian Propertied Families. 110 (1996) 306<strong>–</strong>308<br />

OLLER GUZMÁN, M., Quelques remarques à propos de deux nouvelles dédicaces à Thétis et Achille trouvées à Apollonia d’Illyrie. 167 (2008) 75<strong>–</strong>80<br />

OLLETT, A., Memorandum of Receipt of Grain by a mesites. 177 (2011) 234<strong>–</strong>236<br />

OLSON, S. D., Aristophanes, Equites 947<strong>–</strong>59 and the Athenian Public Seal. 113 (1996) 253<strong>–</strong>254<br />

van OPPEN de RUITER, B., The Death of Arsinoe II Philadelphus: The Evidence Reconsidered. 174 (2010) 139<strong>–</strong>150<br />

ORDÓÑEZ AGULLA, S. <strong>–</strong> SÁEZ FERNÁNDEZ, P. <strong>–</strong> SAQUETE CHAMIZO, J. C. <strong>–</strong> GARCÍA-DILS DE LA VEGA, S., Hispania Baetica, provincia<br />

immunis. 154 (2005) 299<strong>–</strong>311<br />

ORDÓÑEZ AGULLA, S. <strong>–</strong> SAQUETE CHAMIZO, J. C. <strong>–</strong> GARCÍA-DILS DE LA VEGA, S., Una uotorum nuncupatio en Colonia Augusta Firma<br />

(Écija<strong>–</strong>Sevilla). 176 (2011) 281<strong>–</strong>290<br />

ORLANDI, S., Statuae in publico positae: gli onori a L. Volusio Saturnino e il problema della porticus Lentulorum. 106 (1995) 259<strong>–</strong>268<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Frammento di un cursus senatorio da Artena nel Lazio. 115 (1997) 271<strong>–</strong>277<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Una nuova iscrizione senatoria dal suburbio di Roma. 161 (2007) 269<strong>–</strong>274<br />

ORTH, Chr., Zu PCG fr. adesp. 1105 (= CGFP 220 = P. Ox. 2743). 168 (2009) 55<strong>–</strong>58<br />

OSBORNE, M., The Athenian Archon Diomedon and his Successors. 143 (2003) 95<strong>–</strong>100<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Ghost Archon? 164 (2008) 81<strong>–</strong>84<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Date of the Athenian Archon Thrasyphon. 164 (2008) 85<strong>–</strong>89<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Archons of Athens 300/299<strong>–</strong>228/7. 171 (2009) 83<strong>–</strong>99<br />

O’SULLIVAN, L., Asander, Athens and IG ii 2 450: A New Interpretation. 119 (1997) 107<strong>–</strong>116<br />

OZBEK, L., L’Euripilo di Sofocle: i modelli intertestuali del fr. 210 R (P. Oxy. 1175, fr. 5) e un’ipotesi di datazione dell’opera. 158 (2006) 29<strong>–</strong>42<br />

PACI, G., Una dedica al Dio Eterno nel Museo Irpino di Avellino. 142 (2003) 267<strong>–</strong>268<br />

PAFFORD, I. A., IG I 3 6 and the Aparche of Grain? 177 (2011) 75<strong>–</strong>78<br />

PAGANINI, M. C. D., Sarap¤a and Sarape›ow: Two Greek Ghost-names. 165 (2008) 169<strong>–</strong>174<br />

PAGLIARA, A., Epigraphica Liparensia (2). Una nuova iscrizione cristiana datata. 143 (2003) 135<strong>–</strong>137<br />

PAJÓN LEYRA, I., Jif¤aw in the Artemidorus Papyrus. 170 (2009) 64<br />

PÄLL, J., CIL IV 2305: Ein Fragment römischer Musik? 148 (2004) 313<strong>–</strong>315<br />

PALME, B., Die classis Alexandrina und der kÊriow der Gellia Didyme. Zwei Bemerkungen zu BGU III 709. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 87<strong>–</strong>95<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Die Invokation von SB I 4805. 117 (1997) 171<strong>–</strong>174<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Neuedition von SB I 4671 + SB I 4718 + SB XVI 12701 (= I 4858). 117 (1997) 175<strong>–</strong>179<br />

PAŁUCHOWSKI, A., La dédicace érigée à Ephèse par Antonius Vareius en l’honneur de C. Claudius Titianus Demostratus, ancien gouverneur de la<br />

province de Crète-Cyrénaïque. 173 (2010) 107<strong>–</strong>115<br />

PANAYOTAKIS, C., Sophrone in Menand. Epitr. 1069. 113 (1996) 49<strong>–</strong>50<br />

PANAYOTOU-TRIANTAPHYLLOPOULOU, A. <strong>–</strong> MICHAELIDOU-NICOLAOU, I., L’inscription digraphe de Salamine de Chypre (Test. Sal. 2, n˚<br />

17). 121 (1998) 95<strong>–</strong>102


Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff. 43<br />

PANEV, A. <strong>–</strong> RICL, M., Nouvelles inscriptions votives de Macédoine orientale. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 139<strong>–</strong>150<br />

PANGERL, A. <strong>–</strong> ECK, W., Sex. Iulius Frontinus als Legat des niedergermanischen Heeres. Zu neuen Militärdiplomen in den germanischen Provinzen.<br />

143 (2003) 205<strong>–</strong>219<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Neue Diplome für Heere von Germania superior und Germania inferior. 148 (2004) 259<strong>–</strong>268<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eine Bürgerrechtskonstitution für zwei Veteranen des kappadokischen Heeres. Zur Häufigkeit von Bürgerrechtskonstitutionen für Auxiliarsoldaten.<br />

150 (2004) 233<strong>–</strong>241<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zwei Konstitutionen für die Truppen Niedermösiens vom 9. September 97. 151 (2005) 185<strong>–</strong>192<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Neue Konsulndaten in neuen Diplomen. 152 (2005) 229<strong>–</strong>262<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Neue Militärdiplome für die Truppen der mauretanischen Provinzen. 153 (2005) 187<strong>–</strong>206<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Die Konstitution für die classis Misenensis aus dem Jahr 160 und der Krieg gegen Bar Kochba unter Hadrian. 155 (2006) 239<strong>–</strong>252<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zur Herstellung der diplomata militaria: Tinte auf einem Diplom des Titus für Noricum. 157 (2006) <strong>181</strong><strong>–</strong>184<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eine Konstitution für die Truppen von Syria Palaestina aus dem Jahr 158. 157 (2006) 185<strong>–</strong>191<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eine Konstitution für die Hilfstruppen von Syria Palaestina vom 6. Februar 158 n. Chr. 159 (2007) 283<strong>–</strong>290<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Neue Diplome für die Hilfstruppen von Britannia. 162 (2007) 223<strong>–</strong>234<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Weitere Militärdiplome für die mauretanischen Provinzen. 162 (2007) 235<strong>–</strong>247<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Neue Diplome für Flotten in Italien. 163 (2007) 217<strong>–</strong>232<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eine Konstitution für die Truppen der Provinz Dalmatien unter Nerva. 163 (2007) 233<strong>–</strong>238<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Titus Flavius Norbanus, praefectus praetorio Domitians, als Statthalter Rätiens in einem neuen Militärdiplom. 163 (2007) 239<strong>–</strong>251<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nochmals: „Vater, Mutter, Schwestern, Brüder ...“. 165 (2008) 213<strong>–</strong>218<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eine Konstitution für die Auxiliartruppen Syriens unter dem Statthalter Cornelius Nigrinus aus dem Jahr 93. 165 (2008) 219<strong>–</strong>226<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Das erste Diplom für die Flotte von Britannien aus dem Jahr 93 n. Chr. 165 (2008) 227<strong>–</strong>231<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein Diplom für einen Soldaten der classis Moesica vom 20. August 127 n. Chr. 165 (2008) 232<strong>–</strong>236<br />

<strong>–</strong>, „Vater, Mutter, Schwestern, Brüder ...“: 3. Akt. 166 (2008) 276<strong>–</strong>284<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein Diplom für die Auxiliartruppen von Pannonia inferior vom 5. September 152 n. Chr. 171 (2009) 221<strong>–</strong>230<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eine neue Bürgerrechtskonstitution für die Truppen von Pannonia inferior aus dem Jahr 162 mit einem neuen Konsulnpaar. 173 (2010) 223<strong>–</strong>236<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein weiteres Diplom der Konstitution Vespasians für die Truppen Mösiens vom 7. Februar 78 n. Chr. 173 (2010) 237<strong>–</strong>243<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Sex. Iulius Severus, cos. suff. 126, und seine Militärdiplome (PA 456). 175 (2010) 247<strong>–</strong>257<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Diplome für das Heer in Dakien. 176 (2011) 221<strong>–</strong>233<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Diplome für Prätorianersoldaten aus der Herrschaftszeit der Philippi. 176 (2011) 243<strong>–</strong>261<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Drei Konstitutionen im Jahr 123 für Truppen von Dacia Porolissensis unter dem Präsidialprokurator Livius Gratus. 176 (2011) 234<strong>–</strong>242<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Verdienste um Kaiser und Reich? Zu einem Diplom aus der Regierungszeit Nervas mit dem Statthalter Iulius C[andidus Marius Celsus]. <strong>ZPE</strong> 177<br />

(2011) 259<strong>–</strong>262<br />

<strong>–</strong>, L. Minicius Natalis in einem weiteren Militärdiplom für Pannonia superior. 180 (<strong>2012</strong>) 287<strong>–</strong>294<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein weiteres Diplom aus einer Konstitution für die Truppen von Moesia inferior vom 14. August 99 n. Chr. 180 (<strong>2012</strong>) 295<strong>–</strong>301<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eine Konstitution für die Truppen von Dacia superior aus dem Jahr 142 mit der Sonderformel für Kinder von Auxiliaren. <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>) 173<strong>–</strong>182<br />

<strong>–</strong>. Ein M. Ulpius Marcellus als praefectus classis Ravennatis in einem Diplom des Jahres 119 n. Chr. <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>) 202<strong>–</strong>206<br />

PANGERL, A. <strong>–</strong> ECK, W. <strong>–</strong> HOLDER, P., A Diploma for the Army of Britain in 132 and Hadrian’s Return to Rome from the East. 174 (2010) 169<strong>–</strong>180<br />

PANGERL, A. <strong>–</strong> ECK, W. <strong>–</strong> MACDONALD, D., Neue Militärdiplome für Truppen in Italien: Legio II Adiutrix, Flotten und Prätorianer. 139 (2002)<br />

195<strong>–</strong>207<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein weiteres Diplom aus der Konstitution des Antoninus Pius für die Truppen von Moesia superior vom 23. April 157. 165 (2008) 237<strong>–</strong>239<br />

PAOLI, E., Autour de Paula (347<strong>–</strong>404): Subsidia prosopographica. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 241<strong>–</strong>249<br />

PAPACONSTANTINOU, A., Oracles chrétiens dans l’Égypte byzantine: le témoignage des papyrus. 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 281<strong>–</strong>286<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Sur les évêques byzantins d’Oxyrhynchos. 111 (1996) 171<strong>–</strong>173<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Martyres ou martyria? Une relecture de P. Vindob. G 22.683 (MPER XVII 78). 130 (2000) 193<strong>–</strong>196<br />

PAPAKONSTANTINOU, Z., The Cretan apokosmos. 111 (1996) 93<strong>–</strong>96<br />

PAPALEXANDROU, N. <strong>–</strong> KOSMETATOU, E., Size Matters: Poseidippos and the Colossi. 143 (2003) 53<strong>–</strong>58<br />

PAPANIKOLAOU, D., The Aretalogy of Isis from Maroneia and the Question of Hellenistic “Asianism”. 168 (2009) 59<strong>–</strong>70<br />

PAPATHOMAS, A., Überlegungen zu dokumentarischen Texten aus Ägypten. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 85<strong>–</strong>87<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bemerkungen zu griechischen dokumentarischen Texten. 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 292<strong>–</strong>296<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein Kodexfragment mit dem alttestamentlichen Gebet des Asarja in der Übersetzung Theodotions. 126 (1999) 219<strong>–</strong>222<br />

<strong>–</strong>, MonastÆrion §poik¤ou Skutal¤tidow: Ein neues Kloster im Oxyrhynchites. 128 (1999) 167<strong>–</strong>168<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein neues Reskript der Kaiser Septimius Severus und Caracalla. 131 (2000) 129<strong>–</strong>134<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Textkritische Bemerkungen zu einem griechischen Geschäftsbrief. 136 (2001) 177<strong>–</strong>178<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Correctiones minores zu griechischen Papyrusbriefen. 137 (2001) 240<strong>–</strong>244<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zu den Luxusspeisen und -getränken in griechischen Papyri. 158 (2006) 193<strong>–</strong>200<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zur byzantinischen Homilie P.Oxy. XVII 2073. 161 (2007) <strong>181</strong><strong>–</strong>186<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein übersehenes Zeugnis für die ps.-chrysostomische Homilie Per‹ §lehmosÊnhw (PG 60, S. 707<strong>–</strong>712). Identifizierung und Neuedition des Pergaments<br />

MPER N.S. IV 58. 163 (2007) 71<strong>–</strong>74<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bemerkungen zum Geschäftsbrief P.Worp 24. 168 (2009) 259<strong>–</strong>264<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notizen zu griechischen Briefen auf Papyri und Ostraka. 172 (2010) 208<strong>–</strong>212<br />

PAPATHOMAS, A. <strong>–</strong> MITTHOF, F., Das Archiv des §laiourgÒw Sambas. Unterhaltszahlungen in Öl an die Bediensteten eines Gutes (Arsinoites; 6. Jh.<br />

n. Chr.). 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 53<strong>–</strong>84<br />

PAPAZARKADAS, N., Notes on Inscriptions from Attica and Oropos. 149 (2004) 69<strong>–</strong>70<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Four Attic Deme Documents Revisited. 159 (2007) 155<strong>–</strong>177<br />

PAPI, E., Bollo su lamina di piombo dalla mansio Manliana (Torrito di Siena). 106 (1995) 255<strong>–</strong>258<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Diploma militare da Thamusida (Mauretania Tingitana): 31 dicembre 133/134. 142 (2003) 257<strong>–</strong>266<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Diploma militare da Thamusida (Mauretania Tingitana): 103/104. 146 (2004) 255<strong>–</strong>258<br />

PARDINI, A., Note ad un inno a Demetra (adesp. lyr. S 460<strong>–</strong>463. 465 P.). 117 (1997) 50<strong>–</strong>56<br />

PARKER, H. N., A Fragment of the Athenian Dramatic Didascaliae for the Lenaia Re-examined (IG II/III 2 2319). 158 (2006) 55<strong>–</strong>60<br />

PARKER, R., Full Rations for the Tarantinoi in Athens: A Note on the New Decree. 115 (1997) 136<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A New Euphemism for Death in a Manumission Inscription from Chaironeia. 139 (2002) 66<strong>–</strong>68<br />

<strong>–</strong>, T°knvn ˆnhsiw. 152 (2005) 152<strong>–</strong>154


44 Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff.<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Tå fusikã in a Confession Inscription from Saittai. 163 (2007) 121<strong>–</strong>122<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Convention of the Basaidai and the Four Families. 173 (2010) 87<strong>–</strong>88<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Thessalian Olympia. 177 (2011) 111<strong>–</strong>118<br />

PARLATO, G. <strong>–</strong> LELLI, E., Le vittorie di Sosibio. 166 (2008) 59<strong>–</strong>65<br />

PARSONS, P., P.Köln XI 431: A Further Note. 171 (2009) 15<strong>–</strong>16<br />

PASCHOUD, F., À propos d’imperium maius: nil sub sole nouum. 153 (2005) 280<strong>–</strong>282<br />

PATRICH, J. <strong>–</strong> di SEGNI, L. <strong>–</strong> HOLUM, K. G., A Schedule of Fees (sportulae) for Official Services from Caesarea Maritima, Israel. 145 (2003) 273<strong>–</strong><br />

300<br />

PATZER, A. <strong>–</strong> PRIMAVESI, O., Die übertiefe Tiefe (Empedokles B 35,3<strong>–</strong>5 und Physika I, 288<strong>–</strong>290). 135 (2001) 1<strong>–</strong>10<br />

PAUNOV, E. I. <strong>–</strong> ROXAN, M. M., The Earliest Extant Diploma of Thrace, A. D. 114 (= RMD I 14). 119 (1997) 269<strong>–</strong>279<br />

PAVESE, C. O., Elegia di Simonide agli Spartiati per Platea. 107 (1995) 1<strong>–</strong>26 (Addenda et corrigenda dazu: 112 (1996) 56<strong>–</strong>58)<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Alc. 298,14. 112 (1996) 56<br />

<strong>–</strong>, La iscrizione sulla kotyle di Nestor da Pithekoussai. 114 (1996) 1<strong>–</strong>23<br />

PAVKOVIC, M. F., Singulares Legati Legionis: Guards of a Legionary Legate or a Provincial Governor? 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 223<strong>–</strong>228<br />

PEACHIN, M. <strong>–</strong> PREUSS, G., CIL VI 3836 (= 31747). Die Karriere des Aspasius Paternus? 116 (1997) 176<strong>–</strong>192<br />

PÉBARTHE, Chr., Thasos, l’empire d’Athènes et les emporia de Thrace. 126 (1999) 131<strong>–</strong>154<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Fiscalité, empire athénien et écriture: retour sur les causes de la guerre du Péloponnèse. 129 (2000) 47<strong>–</strong>76<br />

PÉBARTHE, Chr. <strong>–</strong> DELRIEUX, F., La transaction du plomb de Pech-Maho. 126 (1999) 155<strong>–</strong>161<br />

PEDERSEN, N. A., A Manichaean Historical Text. 119 (1997) 193<strong>–</strong>201<br />

PEDERSEN, P. <strong>–</strong> ISAGER, S., Hadrian, Sabina and Halikarnassos <strong>–</strong> Some Epigraphic Evidence. <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>) 95<strong>–</strong><strong>101</strong><br />

PEDRONI, L., Una lucerna firmata da Cales. 120 (1998) 277<strong>–</strong>278. Addendum dazu: 123 (1998) 256<br />

PELCER, O. <strong>–</strong> FERJANČIĆ, S. <strong>–</strong> BABIĆ, M., New Inscriptions from Pannonia and Dalmatia. 169 (2009) 245<strong>–</strong>248<br />

PELLETIER, A., Quelques inscriptions inédites de la cité de Vienne (Isère, France). 119 (1997) 209<strong>–</strong>212<br />

PENA, M. J., “ÉEp‹ svthr¤& t«n ényr≈pvn”. Encore sur la colonisation rhodienne de Rhodé. 133 (2000) 109<strong>–</strong>112<br />

PEPPARD, M., A Letter Between Two Women, With a Courier About to Depart. 167 (2008) 162<strong>–</strong>166<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Letter Concerning Boats in Berenike and Trade on the Red Sea. 171 (2009) 193<strong>–</strong>198<br />

PERALE, M., Una nota a Bacchyl. 5.151<strong>–</strong>4. 171 (2009) 3<strong>–</strong>4<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Un nuovo frammento della ‘membrana Grafiana’ (P.Vindob. G 29775: Demostene, Sulla falsa ambasceria, 16, 18). 172 (2010) 22<strong>–</strong>26<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nuove letture in tre adespoti esametrici dalla Papyrussammlung di Colonia. 175 (2010) 25<strong>–</strong>27<br />

PERALE, M. <strong>–</strong> COLOMO, D., On P.Oxy. LXXVI 5094 fr. 1. <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>) 1<strong>–</strong>3<br />

PERNIGOTTI, C., Menandro a simposio? P. Oxy. III 409 + XXXIII 2655 e P. Oxy. LIII 3705 riconsiderati. 154 (2005) 69<strong>–</strong>78<br />

PERNIGOTTI, C. <strong>–</strong> MALTOMINI, F., PSorb inv. 2245: confluenza di testimoni omerici. 128 (1999) 301<strong>–</strong>305<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Tempi del canto e pluralità di prospettive in Saffo, fr. 44 V. 135 (2001) 11<strong>–</strong>20<br />

PERPILLOU-THOMAS, F., Artistes et athlètes dans les papyrus grecs d’Égypte. 108 (1995) 225<strong>–</strong>251<br />

PERRY, J. S., CIL 6.16932: The Creation of a Detached Signum? 138 (2002) 245<strong>–</strong>248<br />

PERSOLJA, F., L’espansionismo selinuntino del VI secolo alle luce delle testimonianze epigrafiche e letterarie. 167 (2008) 113<strong>–</strong>118<br />

PERYSINAKIS, I. N., KÒsmon or kÒmpon? A Note on Simonides’ Elegy on Plataea, fr. 11.23 W 2 . 157 (2006) 19<strong>–</strong>21<br />

PETÉNYI, S. <strong>–</strong> LŐRINCZ, B., Zwei neue Militärdiplome aus Pannonien. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 197<strong>–</strong>204<br />

PETITO, A., Vicissitudini di un’epigrafe (CIL IX, 782 = I 2 , 401). 147 (2004) 217<strong>–</strong>224<br />

PETOLESCU, C. C., Nouvelles remarques sur la carrière militaire équestre de T. Antonius Claudius Alfenus Arignotus. 110 (1996) 253<strong>–</strong>258<br />

PETOLESCU, C. C. <strong>–</strong> POPESCU, A.-T., Ein neues Militärdiplom für die Provinz Moesia inferior. 148 (2004) 269<strong>–</strong>276<br />

PETRAIN, D., Pr°sbuw. A Note on the New Posidippus (V.6<strong>–</strong>11). 140 (2002) 9<strong>–</strong>12<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Two Inscriptions from the Tabulae Iliacae. The Epic Canon of the Borgia Tablet (IG 14.1292.2) and the Roman Chronicle (SEG 33.802B). 166 (2008)<br />

83<strong>–</strong>84<br />

<strong>–</strong>, More Inscriptions from the Tabulae Iliacae. 174 (2010) 51<strong>–</strong>56<br />

PETROCHILOS, N., A Bilingual Dedication to the Mother of the Gods. 175 (2010) 158<strong>–</strong>160<br />

PETROVIC, A. <strong>–</strong> SKOUNTAKIS, M. <strong>–</strong> DESTAEBLER, P., Two New Honorific Epigrams for Pollion, a Governor from Aphrodisias. 172 (2010) 38<strong>–</strong>42<br />

PETZL, G., Das Inschriftendossier zur Neugründung von Arsinoë in Kilikien: Textkorrekturen. 139 (2002) 83<strong>–</strong>88<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Peter Herrmann (22. 05. 1927 <strong>–</strong> 22. 11. 2002). 144 (2003) 105<strong>–</strong>107<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Furchterregende Götter? Eine Notiz zu Diogenes von Oinoanda NF 126. 153 (2005) 103<strong>–</strong>107<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Reinhold Merkelbach und die griechische Epigraphik. 163 (2007) 13<strong>–</strong>16<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zwei bronzene Weihegaben. 169 (2009) 89<strong>–</strong>94<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Keine Szepter an Gräbern. 177 (2011) 123<strong>–</strong>126<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eine Notiz zum Vertrag zwischen Rom und dem Lykischen Koinon von 46 v. Chr. (SEG 55, 1452). 180 (<strong>2012</strong>) 231<strong>–</strong>232<br />

PETZL, G. <strong>–</strong> STAAB, G., Vier neue Epigramme aus Lydien. 174 (2010) 1<strong>–</strong>14<br />

PIANKA, R. <strong>–</strong> HARRIMAN, M. <strong>–</strong> MAYER, K. <strong>–</strong> MURPHY, S., A New Inscription from Ilium. 113 (1996) 255<strong>–</strong>256<br />

PICCIRILLI, L., Teofrasto e il secondo matrimonio di Archidamo II. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 187<strong>–</strong>192<br />

PINTAUDI, R., A proposito di PSI XXI Congr. 6. 111 (1996) 189<strong>–</strong>190<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Un’identificazione: a proposito di P. Oxy. LXIII 4394<strong>–</strong>4395 e P. Flor. III 384. 117 (1997) 200<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Habent sua fata papyri . . . 117 (1997) 201<strong>–</strong>202<br />

PINTAUDI, R. <strong>–</strong> CANNATÀ FERA, M., Pindaro, Nem. I 15<strong>–</strong>18, 35<strong>–</strong>42 in un papiro Laurenziano (PL III/310 C). 117 (1997) 197<strong>–</strong>199<br />

PINTAUDI, R. <strong>–</strong> LÓPEZ GARCÍA, A., Menander, Epitrepontes 662<strong>–</strong>666; 688<strong>–</strong>691 (S) in un papiro Laurenziano (PL III/310 A). 124 (1998) 15<strong>–</strong>16<br />

PINTAUDI, R. <strong>–</strong> MESSERI (SAVORELLI), G., Petizione al komogrammateus Petesuchos (PL III/909). 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 233<strong>–</strong>240<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zenoniana. 107 (1995) 113<strong>–</strong>120<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Due domande oracolari in greco. 111 (1996) 183<strong>–</strong>187<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Frammenti di rotoli letterari Laurenziani. 115 (1997) 171<strong>–</strong>177<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Apion, nomarca dell’Arsinoites. 120 (1998) 131<strong>–</strong>144<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Spigolature V. 122 (1998) 123<strong>–</strong>130<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Spigolature VI. 129 (2000) 265<strong>–</strong>273<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Proprietà imperiali e tasse in un papiro della Collezione Schøyen. 130 (2000) 197<strong>–</strong>200<br />

PINTO, P. M., P. Kellis III Gr. 95 and Evagoras I. 168 (2009) 213<strong>–</strong>218


Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff. 45<br />

PIROVANO, L., Un “nuovo” foglio manoscritto delle Interpretationes Vergilianae di Tiberio Claudio Donato (Beinecke Library MS 1020). 178 (2011)<br />

85<strong>–</strong>86<br />

PISO, I., Ein unechter Beneficiarius in Apulum. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 207<strong>–</strong>208<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein neuer Statthalter von Noricum Mediterraneum. 107 (1995) 299<strong>–</strong>304<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Inschriften von Prokuratoren aus Sarmizegetusa (II). 120 (1998) 253<strong>–</strong>271<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zwei fragmentarische Laufbahnen aus dem forum vetus von Sarmizegetusa. 120 (1998) 272<strong>–</strong>276<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein Bruchstück eines Militärdiploms aus Apulum. 126 (1999) 246<strong>–</strong>248<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Der Prätorianerpräfekt Q. Marcius Turbo und seine Söhne. 150 (2004) 270<strong>–</strong>280<br />

PLATSCHEK, J., Vadimonium factum Numerio Negidio. 137 (2001) 281<strong>–</strong>291<br />

PLEKET, H. W., Fraudulent Agonothetes. 180 (<strong>2012</strong>) 158<br />

<strong>–</strong>, An Agonistic Inscription from Sardis. <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>) 102<strong>–</strong>107<br />

POGORELETS, O. <strong>–</strong> IVANTCHIK, A. <strong>–</strong> SAVVOV, R., A New Roman Military Diploma from the Territory of the Ukraine. 163 (2007) 255<strong>–</strong>262<br />

PÖHLMANN, E. <strong>–</strong> WEST, M. L., The Oldest Greek Papyrus and Writing Tablets: Fifth-Century Documents from the ‘Tomb of the Musician’ in Attica.<br />

180 (<strong>2012</strong>) 1<strong>–</strong>16<br />

POLI, F., Deux épitaphes latines inédites dans les musées français. 174 (2010) 248<strong>–</strong>250<br />

PONTANI, F., The First Word of Callimachus’Aitia. 128 (1999) 57<strong>–</strong>59<br />

PONTANI, F. <strong>–</strong> FERRARI, F., Alcaeus’ Grandfathers: A Note on fr. 6, ll. 17<strong>–</strong>20 V. 113 (1996) 1<strong>–</strong>4<br />

POPESCU, A.-T. <strong>–</strong> PETOLESCU, C. C., Ein neues Militärdiplom für die Provinz Moesia inferior. 148 (2004) 269<strong>–</strong>276<br />

PORAT, P. <strong>–</strong> GOREN, D., A Greek Epitaph from Sepphoris. 120 (1998) 64<br />

PORAT, P. <strong>–</strong> GOREN, D. <strong>–</strong> HAENSCH, R., Epigraphical Discoveries from Scythopolis. 140 (2002) 123<strong>–</strong>126<br />

PORDOMINGO, F. <strong>–</strong> FERNÁNDEZ DELGADO, J. A., PMilVogl I 20: bocetos de progymnásmata. 167 (2008) 167<strong>–</strong>192<br />

POTTER, D., Palmyra and Rome: Odaenathus’ Titulature and the Use of the Imperium Maius. 113 (1996) 271<strong>–</strong>285<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Procurators in Asia and Dacia under Marcus Aurelius: A Case Study of Imperial Initiative in Government. 123 (1998) 270<strong>–</strong>274<br />

POTTER, D. S. <strong>–</strong> FORTSON, B. W., A Fragmentary Early Republican Public Inscription from Gabii. 178 (2011) 255<strong>–</strong>260<br />

POVALAHEV, N., Eine Bauinschrift aus Phanagoreia von 220/1 n. Chr. und ihr historischer Hintergrund: Text und Kommentar. 177 (2011) 141<strong>–</strong>156<br />

POWERS, J. <strong>–</strong> DIMITROVA, N. <strong>–</strong> HUANG, R. <strong>–</strong> SMILGIES, D.-M. <strong>–</strong> BILDERBACK, D. H. <strong>–</strong> CLINTON, K. <strong>–</strong> THORNE, R. E., X-ray Fluorescence<br />

Recovers Writing from Ancient Inscriptions. 152 (2005) 221<strong>–</strong>227<br />

PRAUSCELLO, L., Il fr. A.2 r delle Storie fenicie di Lolliano: un problema di interpretazione. 122 (1998) 67<strong>–</strong>70<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Alcune osservazioni critico-testuali in margine a P. Turner 8 (Tinouphisfragment). 134 (2001) 139<strong>–</strong>144<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Men. Dysk. 96<strong>–</strong>97, Hipp. Epid. V.42.3 ed una glossa di Esichio: per una possibile ricostruzione alternativa della dÊspnoia di Pirria. 136 (2001) 7<strong>–</strong>10<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Colometria alessandrina e testi con notazioni musicali: per un riesame di P. Vind. G 2315 (= Eur. Or. 338<strong>–</strong>344). 141 (2002) 83<strong>–</strong>102<br />

<strong>–</strong>, La testimonianza di P. Leid. inv. 510 (= Eur. I. A. 1500?<strong>–</strong>1509, 784<strong>–</strong>793?) fra prassi esecutiva e trasmissione testuale. 144 (2003) 1<strong>–</strong>14<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Rehearsing her Own Death: a Note on Bassilla’s Epitaph. 147 (2004) 56<strong>–</strong>58<br />

PRAUSCELLO, L. <strong>–</strong> FERRARI, F., Demeter Chthonia and the Mountain Mother in a New Gold Tablet from Magoula Mati. 162 (2007) 193<strong>–</strong>202<br />

PREUSS, G. <strong>–</strong> PEACHIN, M., CIL VI 3836 (= 31747). Die Karriere des Aspasius Paternus? 116 (1997) 176<strong>–</strong>192<br />

PRICE, J. J. <strong>–</strong> COTTON, H. M., A Bilingual Tombstone from Zo‘ar (Arabia). 134 (2001) 277<strong>–</strong>283<br />

PRIGNITZ, S., Ein Augustuspriester des Jahres 27 v. Chr. 178 (2011) 210<strong>–</strong>214<br />

PRIGNITZ, S. <strong>–</strong> HALLOF, K., IG XII 1, 824. 170 (2009) 81<strong>–</strong>86<br />

PRIMAVESI, O., Zur Geschichte des Deutschen Papyruskartells. 114 (1996) 173<strong>–</strong>187<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Empedokles in Florentiner Aristoteles-Scholien. 157 (2006) 27<strong>–</strong>40<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Die Suda über die Werke des Empedokles. 158 (2006) 61<strong>–</strong>75<br />

PRIMAVESI, O. <strong>–</strong> ALPERS, K., Empedokles im Wiener Herodian-Palimpsest. 156 (2006) 27<strong>–</strong>37<br />

PRIMAVESI, O. <strong>–</strong> PATZER, A., Die übertiefe Tiefe (Empedokles B 35,3<strong>–</strong>5 und Physika I, 288<strong>–</strong>290). 135 (2001) 1<strong>–</strong>10<br />

PRIOUX, É., Le portrait perdu et retrouvé du poète Philitas de Cos: Posidippe 63 A.<strong>–</strong>B. et IG XIV, 2486. 166 (2008) 66<strong>–</strong>72<br />

PRISSET, J.-L. <strong>–</strong> RÉMY, B. <strong>–</strong> BRISSAUD, L. <strong>–</strong> MATHIEU, N., Un service officiel des eaux (cura aquarum) à Vienne? Le témoignage d’un tuyau de<br />

plomb découvert à Saint-Romain-en-Gal (Rhône). 179 (2011) 239<strong>–</strong>243<br />

PRITCHETT, W. K., Postscript: The Athenian Calendars. 128 (1999) 79<strong>–</strong>93<br />

PRIVITERA, I., Nuove proposte di lettura e di integrazione nella seconda parte del PHerc. <strong>101</strong>5/832 (Philod. Rhet. VIII), II, pp. 50<strong>–</strong>64 Sudhaus. 159<br />

(2007) 81<strong>–</strong>85<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Platone, Aristotele, Teofrasto ed altre nuove letture ed integrazioni nel PHerc. 1004 (Philod. Rhet. Lib. Inc.). 163 (2007) 51<strong>–</strong>66<br />

PROHÁSZKA, P. <strong>–</strong> KOVÁCS, P., Zwei verlorene griechische christliche Inschriften aus Sirmium. 164 (2008) 139<strong>–</strong>144<br />

PROIETTI, G., Osservazioni sul monumento degli ‘epigrammi di Maratona’ (IG I 3 503<strong>–</strong>4). Il problema del Lapis B. 179 (2011) 41<strong>–</strong>47<br />

PROSTKO-PROSTYNSKI, J., Basiliskos: Ein in Rom anerkannter Usurpator. 133 (2000) 259<strong>–</strong>265<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ursus: Ein ostgotischer Statthalter in Binnen-Norikum? 139 (2002) 297<strong>–</strong>302<br />

PSÔMA, S., Monnaies de poids réduit d’Alexandre I et de Perdiccas II de Macédoine. 128 (1999) 273<strong>–</strong>282<br />

<strong>–</strong>, À propos de drachmes d’argent du décret amphictyonique CID IV 127. 160 (2007) 79<strong>–</strong>88<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Arepyros or A(u)re(lius) Pyros? 180 (<strong>2012</strong>) 202<strong>–</strong>204<br />

<strong>–</strong>, One Law or Two Laws on Approvers of Silver Coinage Proposed by Nikophon (SEG 26.72)? 180 (<strong>2012</strong>) 149<strong>–</strong>152<br />

PUELMA, M., Arions Delphin und die Nachtigall. Kommentar zu Poseidippos ep. 37 A.<strong>–</strong>B. (= P. Mil. Vogl. VIII 309, Kol. VI 18<strong>–</strong>25). 156 (2006) 60<strong>–</strong>74<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Poseidippos ep. 37 A.<strong>–</strong>B. in Rom. Nachtrag zu „Arions Delphin und die Nachtigall“, <strong>ZPE</strong> 156 (2006) 60<strong>–</strong>74. 161 (2007) 29<strong>–</strong>31<br />

PUELMA, M. <strong>–</strong> ANGIÒ, F., Die Sonnenuhr und das Mädchen. Kommentar zu einem Grabepigramm des neuen Poseidippos (P. Mil. Vogl. VIII 309, Kol.<br />

VIII 25<strong>–</strong>30 = ep. 52 A.<strong>–</strong>B.). 151 (2005) 15<strong>–</strong>29<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Sappho und Poseidippos. Nachtrag zum Sonnenuhr-Epigramm 52 A.<strong>–</strong>B. des Mailänder Papyrus. 152 (2005) 13<strong>–</strong>15<br />

PUGLIA, E., A proposito dell’elenco di libri conservato in PVars. 5 verso. 111 (1996) 27<strong>–</strong>30<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Il catalogo di un fondo librario di Ossirinco del III D.C. (PSILaur. inv. 19662). 113 (1996) 51<strong>–</strong>65<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Su una lettera riguardante libri di Metrodoro ed Epicuro (PGettyMus acc. 76.AI.57). 117 (1997) 42<strong>–</strong>44<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Note bibliologiche e sticometriche. 119 (1997) 123<strong>–</strong>127<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Gli inventari librari di PVindob. Gr. 39966. 123 (1998) 78<strong>–</strong>86<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Le biografie di Filone e di Antioco nella Storia dell’Academia di Filodemo. 130 (2000) 17<strong>–</strong>28<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Appunti sul nuovo testo lirico di Colonia. 164 (2008) 11<strong>–</strong>18<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Oxy. 2294 e la tradizione delle odi di Saffo. 166 (2008) 1<strong>–</strong>8<br />

<strong>–</strong>, L’ode saffica per Mika. 179 (2011) 35<strong>–</strong>38


46 Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff.<br />

PUK, A., The Procuratorship of the Alexandrian Pharos. 175 (2010) 227<strong>–</strong>230<br />

QUACK, J. F., Ein ägyptisches Handbuch des Tempels und seine griechische Übersetzung. 119 (1997) 297<strong>–</strong>300<br />

QUECKE, H., Eine griechisch-ägyptische Wörterliste vermutlich des 3. Jh. v. Chr. (P. Heid. Inv.-Nr. G 414). 116 (1997) 67<strong>–</strong>80<br />

RADICKE, J., Völlige Straffreiheit beim Mißbrauch der Anklage? Anmerkungen zur Eisangelie (Hyperid. Lycophr. §§ 8. 12 [Mus. Brit. Pap. 108. 115]).<br />

147 (2004) 11<strong>–</strong>14 (Corrigenda dazu: 149 (2004) 54)<br />

RADT, St., Zu P. Merton 19,2 f. und P. Oxy. 2192,43 f. 119 (1997) 6<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zur Akzentuierung lateinischer Namen im Griechischen. 121 (1998) 72<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Noch einmal zur Akzentuierung lateinischer Namen im Griechischen. 126 (1999) 98<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ofl per¤ tina bei Strabon. 139 (2002) 46<br />

RAGGI, A., Senatus consultum de Asclepiade Clazomenio sociisque. 135 (2001) 73<strong>–</strong>116<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Epigraphic Dossier of Seleucus of Rhosus: a Revised Edition. 147 (2004) 123<strong>–</strong>138<br />

<strong>–</strong>, La scomparsa degli ofl kat’ êndra dall’assemblea provinciale d’Asia. 172 (2010) 148<strong>–</strong>150<br />

RAITH, O., Eine poetische Weihinschrift aus Regensburg. 153 (2005) 99<strong>–</strong>102<br />

RAMALLO ASENSIO, S. F. <strong>–</strong> MURCIA MUÑOZ, A. J., Aqua et lacus en Carthago Nova. Aportaciones al estudio del aprovisionamiento hídrico en<br />

época romana. 172 (2010) 249<strong>–</strong>258<br />

RAMÍREZ SÁNCHEZ, M. <strong>–</strong> GIMENO PASCUAL, H., Dos inscripciones inéditas de la provincia de Soria (España). 139 (2002) 273<strong>–</strong>278<br />

RASMUSSEN, A. H., A Note on the Appointment of Priests in Attic gene. 176 (2011) 120<strong>–</strong>125<br />

RATHMANN, M., Kein Statthalter der Germania Inferior auf dem Meilenstein CIL XVII.2 560. 149 (2004) 240<strong>–</strong>244<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein neuer Meilenstein für die Germania inferior. 174 (2010) 264<strong>–</strong>266<br />

RAUSCH, M., „Nach Olympia“ <strong>–</strong> der Weg einer Waffe vom Schlachtfeld in das panhellenische Heiligtum des Zeus. 123 (1998) 126<strong>–</strong>128<br />

RAWLES, R., Simonides and a New Papyrus in Princeton. 153 (2005) 59<strong>–</strong>67<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes on the Interpretation of the “New Sappho”. 157 (2006) 1<strong>–</strong>7<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Musical Notes on the New Anonymous Lyric Poem from Köln. 157 (2006) 8<strong>–</strong>13<br />

RAWSON, B., ‘The Family’ in the Ancient Mediterranean: Past, Present, Future. 117 (1997) 294<strong>–</strong>296<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Circulation of Staff between Roman Households. 151 (2005) 223<strong>–</strong>224<br />

RAY, J. <strong>–</strong> GILMORE, G., A Fixed Point in Coptic Chronology: The Solar Eclipse of 10 March, 601. 158 (2006) 190<strong>–</strong>192<br />

REA, J. R., Receipt for Pay Advanced by an Actuarius. 114 (1996) 162<strong>–</strong>164<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Order to Deliver: P. Lond. V 1655 Revised. 115 (1997) 187<strong>–</strong>188<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Letter of a Recruit: P. Lond. III 982 Revised. 115 (1997) 189<strong>–</strong>193<br />

REA, J. R. <strong>–</strong> HOLLIS, A. S. <strong>–</strong> SENIOR, R. C., A Tax Receipt from Hellenistic Bactria. 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 261<strong>–</strong>280<br />

REBENICH, St., ÉEnyãde ke›me br°fow. Eine griechische Versinschrift in der Gelehrtenkorrespondenz des 18. Jahrhunderts. 131 (2000) 258<strong>–</strong>270<br />

REED, J. D., A Further Note on Supplementum Hellenisticum 949: An Imitation by Vergil? 106 (1995) 94<strong>–</strong>95<br />

<strong>–</strong>, New Verses on Adonis. 158 (2006) 76<strong>–</strong>82<br />

REEVES, M. B. <strong>–</strong> FISHER, B. J. <strong>–</strong> OLESON, J. P., New Dedicatory Inscriptions from Humayma (Ancient Hawara), Jordan. 140 (2002) 103<strong>–</strong>121<br />

REINARD, P., Eine Eichinschrift auf einem römischen Bronzegewicht. 165 (2008) 291<strong>–</strong>292<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Neue Bronzegewichte mit lateinischen Inschriften. 171 (2009) 261<strong>–</strong>264<br />

REITER, F., Einige Bemerkungen zu dokumentarischen Papyri. 107 (1995) 95<strong>–</strong>103<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Vorschläge zu Lesung und Deutung einiger Transportbescheinigungen. 134 (2001) 191<strong>–</strong>207<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Vorschläge zu P. Bingen 69. 134 (2001) 208<strong>–</strong>210<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Vind. Sal. 14 und die Kopfsteuerrate im Herakleopolites. 138 (2002) 129<strong>–</strong>132 (Corrigendum dazu: 139 (2002) 210)<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Datierungen nach dem Postkonsulat des Basilius in Papyrusdokumenten. 145 (2003) 231<strong>–</strong>245<br />

REITER, F. <strong>–</strong> HAGEDORN, D., P. Giss. Univ. I 13. 137 (2001) 199<strong>–</strong>201<br />

REMIJSEN, S., The So-Called “Crown-Games”: Terminology and Historical Context of the Ancient Categories for Agones. 177 (2011) 97<strong>–</strong>109<br />

RÉMY, B., Remarques sur la date de renouvellement de la puissance tribunicienne d’Antonin le Pieux. 142 (2003) 269<strong>–</strong>272<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Découverte à Forum Claudii Ceutronum (Alpes Graies)/Aime (Savoie) de trois inscriptions. 160 (2007) 256<strong>–</strong>260<br />

RÉMY, B. <strong>–</strong> BRISSAUD, L. <strong>–</strong> MATHIEU, N. <strong>–</strong> PRISSET, J.-L., Un service officiel des eaux (cura aquarum) à Vienne? Le témoignage d’un tuyau de<br />

plomb découvert à Saint-Romain-en-Gal (Rhône). 179 (2011) 239<strong>–</strong>243<br />

REMY, B. <strong>–</strong> GABAYET, F., Découverte d’une dédicace à Jupiter Salutaris à Valence (Narbonnaise). 149 (2004) 256<strong>–</strong>258<br />

RÉMY, B. <strong>–</strong> HEIJMANS, M., Une «nouvelle» inscription commémorant la chute de la foudre à Arles (Bouches-du-Rhone). 128 (1999) 235<strong>–</strong>236<br />

RÉMY, B. <strong>–</strong> JOSPIN, J.-P., Trois graffites sur céramique du Musée d’Aoste (Isère). 122 (1998) 263<strong>–</strong>264<br />

RÉMY, B. <strong>–</strong> KAYSER, F., Un doublet dans les inscriptions de Germanie supérieure du CIL XIII? (CIL XIII 6909 et 6918). 140 (2002) 237<strong>–</strong>238<br />

RENBERG, G. H. <strong>–</strong> BUBELIS, W. S., The Epistolary Rhetoric of Zoilos of Aspendos and the Early Cult of Sarapis: Re-reading P.Cair.Zen. I 59034.<br />

<strong>ZPE</strong> 177 (2011) 169<strong>–</strong>200<br />

RENBERG, G. H. <strong>–</strong> NAETHER, F., “I Celebrated a Fine Day”. An Overlooked Egyptian Phrase in a Bilingual Letter Preserving a Dream Narrative. 175<br />

(2010) 49<strong>–</strong>71<br />

RENGAKOS, A., Lykophron als Homererklärer. 102 (<strong>1994</strong>) 111<strong>–</strong>130<br />

REVERMANN, M., The Shape of the Athenian Orchestra in the Fifth Century: Forgotten Evidence. 128 (1999) 25<strong>–</strong>28<br />

RHODES, P. J., Milesian Stephanephoroi: Applying Cavaignac Correctly. 157 (2006) 116<br />

RIAÑO RUFILANCHAS, D., Zwei Agone in IPriene 112.91<strong>–</strong>95. 129 (2000) 89<strong>–</strong>96<br />

RICHTER, A. <strong>–</strong> GRÜNEWALD, M., Zeugen Caesars schwerster Schlacht? Beschriftete andalusische Schleuderbleie aus der Zeit des Zweiten Punischen<br />

Krieges und der Kampagne von Munda. 157 (2006) 261<strong>–</strong>269<br />

RICL, M., New Greek Inscriptions from Pelagonia and Derriopos. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 151<strong>–</strong>163<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Matris Deae libertus at Sirmium. 134 (2001) 287<strong>–</strong>296<br />

RICL, M. <strong>–</strong> PANEV, A., Nouvelles inscriptions votives de Macédoine orientale. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 139<strong>–</strong>150<br />

RIDLEY, R. T., The Missing Magister Equitum. 116 (1997) 157<strong>–</strong>160<br />

RIESS, W., Konstantin und seine Söhne in Aquileia. 135 (2001) 267<strong>–</strong>283<br />

RIFE, J. L., Officials of the Roman Provinces in Xenophon’s Ephesiaca. 138 (2002) 93<strong>–</strong>108<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Roman Epitaph from the Eastern Corinthia. 164 (2008) 131<strong>–</strong>135<br />

RIFE, J. L. <strong>–</strong> FARAONE, Chr. A., A Greek Curse against a Thief from the Koutsongila Cemetery at Roman Kenchreai. 160 (2007) 141<strong>–</strong>157<br />

RIGSBY, K. J., Graecolatina 1. A =vmaÛstÆw on Delos. 2. A Married Couple in Macedonia. 102 (<strong>1994</strong>) 191<strong>–</strong>193<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Graecolatina 3. Cicero’s Roman Mysteries. 4. A Soldier at Gortyn. 113 (1996) 249<strong>–</strong>252<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Graecolatina 5. A Roman Address. 119 (1997) 249<strong>–</strong>250


Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff. 47<br />

, Two Danubian Epitaphs. 126 (1999) 175<strong>–</strong>176<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Textual Notes on Epitaphs. 133 (2000) 113<strong>–</strong>116<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Roman Epigram for Asclepius. 134 (2001) 107<strong>–</strong>108<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Claudius at Delphi. 146 (2004) 99<strong>–</strong>100<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes on Greek Inscriptions. 161 (2007) 133<strong>–</strong>136<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes on Sacred Laws. 170 (2009) 73<strong>–</strong>80<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Merops the Founder: I.Olympia 53. 173 (2010) 89<strong>–</strong>90<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Cos and the Milesian Didymeia. 175 (2010) 155<strong>–</strong>157<br />

RIPOLLÈS, P. P. <strong>–</strong> VELAZA, J., Saguntum, colonia Latina. 141 (2002) 285<strong>–</strong>291<br />

RISPOLI, G. M. <strong>–</strong> ANGELI, A., La ricomposizione del quarto libro del trattato di Filodemo sulla musica: analisi e prospettive metodologiche. 114<br />

(1996) 67<strong>–</strong>95<br />

RIZZO, M. S. <strong>–</strong> ZAMBITO, L., Novità epigrafiche siciliane. I bolli di contrada Cignana (Naro, Ag). 162 (2007) 271<strong>–</strong>277<br />

RIZZONE, G. V., Iscrizioni giudaica e cristiane di Malta. 168 (2009) 202<strong>–</strong>208<br />

ROBERTSON, N., The Stoa of the Herms. 127 (1999) 167<strong>–</strong>172<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Aristeides’ “Brother”. 127 (1999) 172<strong>–</strong>175<br />

<strong>–</strong>, SplagxnÒpthw. 127 (1999) 175<strong>–</strong>179<br />

<strong>–</strong>, ÜHrvw ÉEpit°giow. 127 (1999) 179<strong>–</strong><strong>181</strong><br />

ROCHETTE, B., Marginalia Vergiliana. 114 (1996) 97<strong>–</strong>98<br />

<strong>–</strong>, iug-/zoug- dans un texte latin écrit en lettres grecques (CIJ I 215). 115 (1997) 169<strong>–</strong>170<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Sur la signification des accents et des marques de quantité dans les papyrus latins. 119 (1997) 203<strong>–</strong>208<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Note sur philobasileus et philellen à l’époque hellénistique. 121 (1998) 62<strong>–</strong>66<br />

RODGER, A., Jurisdictional Limits in the Lex Irnitana and the Lex de Gallia Cisalpina. 110 (1996) 189<strong>–</strong>206<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Attractio inversa in the Edict of Augustus from El Bierzo. 133 (2000) 266<strong>–</strong>270<br />

RODGERS, P. R., Fragment of a Petition to Haterius Nepos. 133 (2000) 199<strong>–</strong>201<br />

RODRÍGUEZ COLMENERO, A., La nueva tabula hospitalitatis de la civitas Lougeiorum. Problemática y contexto histórico. 117 (1997) 213<strong>–</strong>226<br />

RODRÍGUEZ SOMOLINOS, H., The Commercial Transaction of the Pech Maho Lead. A New Interpretation. 111 (1996) 74<strong>–</strong>78<br />

ROLL, I. <strong>–</strong> AVNER, U., Tetrarchic Milestones Found Near Yahel in the Southern Aravah. 165 (2008) 267<strong>–</strong>286<br />

ROLLER, L. E. <strong>–</strong> GOLDMAN, A., A Latin Epitaph from Gordion. 141 (2002) 215<strong>–</strong>220<br />

ROMANO, A. J. <strong>–</strong> LAVIGNE, D. E., Reading the Signs: The Arrangement of the New Posidippus Roll (P. Mil. Vogl. VIII 309, IV.7<strong>–</strong>VI.8). 146 (2004)<br />

13<strong>–</strong>24<br />

ROMANO, M., L’epigrafe ateniese a Phayllos (IG, I 3 ,2, 823). 123 (1998) 105<strong>–</strong>116<br />

RÖMER, C. E., Romanus Melodus auf einem Wiener Pergament. 109 (1995) 298<strong>–</strong>300<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Psalm 40,3<strong>–</strong>6 auf einem Wiener Papyrus (P. Vindob. G 14289). 114 (1996) 56<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Basilius, Epistula XXII 3 und das Glaubensbekenntnis des Gregor Thaumaturgos in einem Papyrus aus Antinoe. 123 (1998) <strong>101</strong><strong>–</strong>104<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ostraka mit christlichen Texten aus der Sammlung Flinders Petrie. 145 (2003) 183<strong>–</strong>201<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Philoteris in the Themistou Meris. Report on the Archaeological Survey Carried Out as Part of the Fayum Survey Project. 147 (2004) 281<strong>–</strong>305<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Der Papyrus Bouriant 4: ein literarisches Bilderbuch. 159 (2007) 86<strong>–</strong>100<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Das zweisprachige Archiv aus der Sammlung Flinders Petrie. 164 (2008) 53<strong>–</strong>62<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zwei Wiener Komödienpapyri: Keine szenischen Bemerkungen und keine Randscholien, aber ein neuer Vers der Alten (?) Komödie. 167 (2008) 1<strong>–</strong>3<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Gebet und Bannzauber des Severus von Antiochia gegen den Biß giftiger Tiere, oder: Maltomini hatte recht. 168 (2009) 209<strong>–</strong>212<br />

RÖMER, C. E. <strong>–</strong> BAILEY, D. M., An Egyptian Seal of Severus Alexander. 160 (2007) 139<strong>–</strong>140<br />

RÖMER, C. E. <strong>–</strong> DANIEL, R. W. <strong>–</strong> WORP, K. A., Das Gebet zur Handauflegung bei Kranken in P. Barc. 155,19<strong>–</strong>156,5 und P. Kellis I 88. 119 (1997)<br />

128<strong>–</strong>131<br />

RÖMER, C. E. <strong>–</strong> GONIS, N., Ein Lobgesang an den Vater der Größe in P. Kellis II 94. 120 (1998) 299<strong>–</strong>300<br />

RONDOT, V. <strong>–</strong> WAGNER, G., Une dédicace au roi Ptolémée de la part d’un Alexandrin. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 250<strong>–</strong>252<br />

ROSENBERGER, V., Der Ring des Polykrates im Lichte der Zauberpapyri. 108 (1995) 69<strong>–</strong>71<br />

ROSIVACH, V. J., IG I 3 82 and the Date of the Introduction of Bouleutic µισθός in Athens. 175 (2010) 145<strong>–</strong>149<br />

ROSSI, L., Il testamento di Posidippo e le laminette auree di Pella. 112 (1996) 59<strong>–</strong>65<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Lamentazioni su pietra e letteratura ‘trenodica’: motivi topici dei canti funerari. 126 (1999) 29<strong>–</strong>42<br />

van ROSSUM-STEENBEEK, M., More on P. Oxy. LXI 4096, Mythographus Homericus. 112 (1996) 34<strong>–</strong>36 (Neudruck mit Korrekturen: 113 (1996) 24<strong>–</strong><br />

26)<br />

ROTHENHÖFER, P., Geschäfte in Germanien. Zur Ausbeutung von Erzlagerstätten unter Augustus in Germanien. 143 (2003) 277<strong>–</strong>286<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Onomastische Notizen zu einem römerzeitlichen Graffito aus dem Ahrtal. 169 (2009) 273<strong>–</strong>276<br />

ROTSTEIN, A., Aristotle, Poetics 1447a13<strong>–</strong>16 and Musical Contests. 149 (2004) 39<strong>–</strong>42<br />

ROUECHÉ, Ch., Aurarii in the Auditoria. 105 (1995) 37<strong>–</strong>50<br />

ROXAN, M. M., Addendum (to the article by J. Nollé). 117 (1997) 274<strong>–</strong>276<br />

<strong>–</strong>, An Auxiliary/Fleet Diploma of Moesia inferior: 127 August 20. 118 (1997) 287<strong>–</strong>299<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Two Complete Diplomas of Pannonia inferior: 19 May 135 and 7 Aug. 143. 127 (1999) 249<strong>–</strong>273<br />

ROXAN, M. M. <strong>–</strong> ECK, W., A Diploma of Moesia Inferior: 125 Iun. 1. 116 (1997) 193<strong>–</strong>203<br />

ROXAN, M. M.† <strong>–</strong> HOLDER, P., A Diploma of the Ravenna Fleet: 1 August 142. 149 (2004) 267<strong>–</strong>274<br />

ROXAN, M. M. <strong>–</strong> PAUNOV, E. I., The Earliest Extant Diploma of Thrace, A. D. 114 (= RMD I 14). 119 (1997) 269<strong>–</strong>279<br />

ROY, J., “The Arkadians” in Inschriften von Magnesia 38. 145 (2003) 123<strong>–</strong>130<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Elean Voting-tokens and Courts at Psophis in the Later Third Century. 156 (2006) 129<strong>–</strong>130<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Homonoia in Inschriften von Olympia 260: the Problem of Dating Concord in Elis. 167 (2008) 67<strong>–</strong>72<br />

ROZOKOKI, A., Some New Thoughts on Stesichorus’ Geryoneis. 168 (2009) 3<strong>–</strong>18<br />

RUBINSTEIN, L. <strong>–</strong> LA’DA, C., Greek Ostraca from Pselkis. 110 (1996) 135<strong>–</strong>155<br />

RUCK, B., Die Fasten von Taormina. 111 (1996) 271<strong>–</strong>280<br />

RUDHARDT, J. <strong>–</strong> HURST, A., Stellungnahme. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 154<br />

RUFFINI, G. R., The Commonality of Rare Names in Byzantine Egypt. 158 (2006) 213<strong>–</strong>225<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Psalms 149<strong>–</strong>150: A Bilingual Greek and Old Nubian Version from Qasr Ibrim. 168 (2009) 112<strong>–</strong>122<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nubian Ostraka from the West Bank Survey. 175 (2010) 231<strong>–</strong>238<br />

RUFFINI, G. R. <strong>–</strong> BAGNALL, R. S., Civic Life in Fourth-Century Trimithis. Two Ostraka From the 2004 Excavations. 149 (2004) 143<strong>–</strong>152


48 Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff.<br />

RUGGERI, Cl., Note sulle divergenze nel dialetto e nella forma delle lettere tra le iscrizioni del centro-sud della Trifilia e quelle dell’Elide. 133 (2000)<br />

117<strong>–</strong>121<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Menone, figlio di Menecleide, ateniese, del demo di Gargetto. 138 (2002) 73<strong>–</strong>86<br />

RUGGERI, P., Un signifer della Cohors Ligurum in Sardegna. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 193<strong>–</strong>196<br />

RUIZ VALDERAS, E. <strong>–</strong> GOROSTIDI PI, D., Un nuevo aedilis lustralis procedente de Tusculum (Lacio, Italia). 178 (2011) 273<strong>–</strong>278<br />

RÜPKE, J., Fehler und Fehlinterpretationen in der Datierung des dies natalis des stadtrömischen Mater Magna-Tempels. 102 (<strong>1994</strong>) 237<strong>–</strong>240<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Iuno Sospita oder Victoria Virgo? Zur Identifizierung des sogenannten Auguratoriums auf dem Palatin. 108 (1995) 119<strong>–</strong>122<br />

RUSCU, L., Actia Nicopolis. 157 (2006) 247<strong>–</strong>255<br />

RUSJAEVA, A. S. <strong>–</strong> VINOGRADOV, J., Phantasmomagica Olbiopolitana. 121 (1998) 153<strong>–</strong>164<br />

RUSSEL, Th., ‘The Land of Inachus’ <strong>–</strong> Byzantium’s Early Coinage and Two Bosporus Toponyms. 180 (<strong>2012</strong>) 133<strong>–</strong>138<br />

RUSSO, S., Note e correzioni a papiri documentari. 155 (2006) 191<strong>–</strong>199<br />

RUSTEN, J., The Four “New Lenaean Victors” of 428<strong>–</strong>5 B.C. (and the Date of the First Lenaean Comedy) Reconsidered. 157 (2006) 22<strong>–</strong>26<br />

RUTGERS, L. V., Interaction and its Limits: Some Notes on the Jews of Sicily in Late Antiquity. 115 (1997) 245<strong>–</strong>256<br />

RUTHERFORD, I., The Nightingale’s Refrain: P. Oxy. 2625 = SLG 460. 107 (1995) 39<strong>–</strong>43<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Et Hominum Et Deorum . . . Laudes (?): A Hypothesis about the Organisation of Pindar’s Paean-Book. 107 (1995) 44<strong>–</strong>52<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Pindarus Armenicus: Paean, IX 1<strong>–</strong>10 as transmitted in Philo, De Prov. 2.80 (97 Aucher). 112 (1996) 37<strong>–</strong>46<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Kalasiris and Setne Khamwas: A Greek Novel and some Egyptian Models. 117 (1997) 203<strong>–</strong>209<br />

<strong>–</strong>, For the Aeginetans to Aiakos a Prosodion: An Unnoticed Title at Pindar, Paean 6, 123, and its Significance for the Poem. 118 (1997) 1<strong>–</strong>21<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Amphikleidai of Sicilian Naxos: Pilgrimage and Genos in the Temple Inventories of Delos. 122 (1998) 81<strong>–</strong>89<br />

<strong>–</strong>, pros≈idion. A Musical Term in a Delian Inscription (IG XI 120.49). 130 (2000) 147<strong>–</strong>148<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Reader’s Voice in a Horoscope from Abydos (Perdrizet and Lefebvre, n. 641). 130 (2000) 149<strong>–</strong>150<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Paeans at Ptolemais? 135 (2001) 41<strong>–</strong>42<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Keian Theoria to Delphi: Neglected Data from the Accounts of the Delphic Naopoioi (CID 2.1<strong>–</strong>28). 147 (2004) 107<strong>–</strong>114<br />

RYAN, F. X., Two Senators in 73 B.C. 108 (1995) 306<strong>–</strong>308<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Three More Senators in 73 B.C. 153 (2005) 269<strong>–</strong>270<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Whether Livius or Others Wrote princeps in senatu with lectus. 173 (2010) 245<strong>–</strong>252<br />

RYHOLT, K., A Demotic Version of Nectanebos’ Dream (P. Carlsberg 562). 122 (1998) 197<strong>–</strong>200<br />

RZEPKA, J., Amnestia for Eurydamas of Phthiotic Thebes? A New Interpretation of SEG 53, 565. 172 (2010) 87<strong>–</strong>92<br />

RZEPKA, J. <strong>–</strong> JUHEL, P. <strong>–</strong> NOGUERA BOREL, A. <strong>–</strong> SEK<strong>UND</strong>A, N. V., A New Greek Inscription from the Area of Tremnik (Republic of<br />

Macedonia/Skopje). 161 (2007) 170<strong>–</strong>172<br />

SACCO, G., Due nuove iscrizioni latine di interesse onomastico (Altera, Cenebes). 126 (1999) 269<strong>–</strong>274<br />

<strong>–</strong>, G∞w pa›w efimi. Sul v. 10 della laminetta di Hipponion. 137 (2001) 27<strong>–</strong>33<br />

SADDINGTON, D. B., A Context for a Dedication by Five Cavalry Regiments to a Cornelius Scipio in Rome? 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 73<strong>–</strong>77<br />

<strong>–</strong>, An Ala Tungrorum? 138 (2002) 273<strong>–</strong>274<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Possible Context for the Definitive Establishment of the Classes Perinthia and Pontica. 175 (2010) 239<strong>–</strong>240<br />

SÁEZ FERNÁNDEZ, P. <strong>–</strong> ORDÓÑEZ AGULLA, S. <strong>–</strong> SAQUETE CHAMIZO, J. C. <strong>–</strong> GARCÍA-DILS DE LA VEGA, S., Hispania Baetica, provincia<br />

immunis. 154 (2005) 299<strong>–</strong>311<br />

SAKURAI, M., A New Reading in POxy. XIII 1606 (Lysias, Against Hippotherses). 109 (1995) 177<strong>–</strong>180<br />

SALAMA, P., Anomalies et aberrations rencontrées sur des inscriptions milliaires de la voie romaine Ammaedara <strong>–</strong> Capsa <strong>–</strong> Tacapes. 149 (2004) 245<strong>–</strong><br />

255<br />

v. SALDERN, F., Einige Bemerkungen zur Kalenderreform des Commodus. 146 (2004) 189<strong>–</strong>192<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein kaiserliches Reskript zur Entlassung eines Angehörigen der vigiles. 156 (2006) 293<strong>–</strong>307<br />

SALEWSKI, J., Menander, Perikeiromene 182<strong>–</strong>191 (62<strong>–</strong>71) <strong>–</strong> ein ‘neues’ Fragment. 129 (2000) 12<br />

SALIOU, C., Une épitaphe de Harran el ‘Awamid. 122 (1998) 102<strong>–</strong>104<br />

<strong>–</strong>, De la brique à l’agora, de Tégée à Selgè: plinye›on, pliny¤on, pla¤sion. 148 (2004) 187<strong>–</strong>192<br />

SALMENKIVI, E., Abusir el-Meleq in den griechischen Urkunden. <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>) 156<strong>–</strong>160<br />

SALOMIES, O., Bemerkungen zu einigen konsularen Datierungen auf den neugefundenen Weihealtären der beneficiarii in Sirmium. 110 (1996) 278<strong>–</strong><br />

282<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Die Herkunft des numidischen Legaten Ti. Claudius Subatianus Proculus. 119 (1997) 245<strong>–</strong>248<br />

SALOMONS, R. P., Testamentaria. 156 (2006) 217<strong>–</strong>241<br />

SALOMONS, R. P. <strong>–</strong> TJÄDER, J.-O. <strong>–</strong> WORP, K. A., Completio of a Deed of Donation. 123 (1998) 151<strong>–</strong>157<br />

SALVO, I., Textual Notes on the Chian Decree SEG XXX 1073. 172 (2010) 70<strong>–</strong>74<br />

SALVO, M., A New Letter from the Heroninos Archive: Heroninos to Alypios. 122 (1998) 131<strong>–</strong>134<br />

SAMONS II, L. J., A Note on the Parthenon Inventories and the Date of IG i 3 52B. 118 (1997) 179<strong>–</strong>182<br />

SÁNCHEZ, P., Un diplôme militaire inédit de Sévère Alexandre pour M. Aurelius Bithus (7 janvier 230 ap. J.-C.). 137 (2001) 245<strong>–</strong>250<br />

SÁNCHEZ, P. <strong>–</strong> SCHUBERT, P. <strong>–</strong> VOLOKHINE, Y., Une dédicace grecque de l’époque impériale tardive trouvée à Hermonthis (Ermant, Haute-<br />

Égypte). 174 (2010) 127<strong>–</strong>132<br />

SÁNCHEZ NATALÍAS, C., The Bologna defixio(nes) Revisited. 179 (2011) 201<strong>–</strong>217<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Fistus difloiscat languat … Re-reading of defixio Bologna 2. <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>) 140<strong>–</strong>148<br />

SÁNCHEZ-PALENCIA, F. J. <strong>–</strong> SASTRE, I. <strong>–</strong> BELTRÁN ORTEGA, A., Nuevo pacto de hospitalidad procedente de Pino del Oro (Zamora). 168 (2009)<br />

287<strong>–</strong>292<br />

SANGCO, G. <strong>–</strong> BOZIA, E. <strong>–</strong> WAGMAN, R., A New Dedication by Diogenes and Other Unpublished Inscriptions from Epidauros. 160 (2007) 120<strong>–</strong>122<br />

SÄNGER, P., Saralaneozan und die Verwaltung Ägyptens unter den Sassaniden. 164 (2008) 191<strong>–</strong>201<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Die Nomenklatur der legio II Traiana Fortis im 3. Jh. n. Chr. 169 (2009) 277<strong>–</strong>286<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Σιρωτής: ein papyrologisches „ghost-word“. 173 (2010) 208<strong>–</strong>210<br />

SÄNGER-BÖHM, K., Die συντάξεις und τέλη τὰ ἐπὶ ταῖς ταφαῖς in der Hadriansinschrift aus Alexandria Troas: Eine papyrologische<br />

Bestandsaufnahme. 175 (2010) 167<strong>–</strong>170<br />

SANTANGELO, F., Fundus Atilianus Arruntianus Innielius Antias. A Note on the Topography of Veleia. 153 (2005) 267<strong>–</strong>268<br />

SANTIAGO, R.-A., Las láminas de plomo de Ampurias y Pech Maho revisitadas. 144 (2003) 167<strong>–</strong>172<br />

SANTIAGO ÁLVAREZ, R.-A. <strong>–</strong> GARDEÑES SANTIAGO, M., Algunas observaciones a la “Lettre d’Apatorios à Léanax”. 157 (2006) 57<strong>–</strong>69<br />

SANTIN, E., Nuova lettura dell’epigramma funerario per Diokleas (IG IX 2, 255, Agios Georgios Pharsalôn, Tessaglia. 166 (2008) 73<strong>–</strong>79<br />

SANZ MORALES, M., Textkritische Bemerkungen zum Chariton-Text auf Papyrus. 141 (2002) 111<strong>–</strong>115


Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff. 49<br />

SAQUETE, J. C., Septimius Acindynus, corrector Tusciae et Umbriae. Notes on a New Inscription from Augusta Emerita (Mérida, Spain). 129 (2000)<br />

281<strong>–</strong>286<br />

SAQUETE CHAMIZO, J. C. <strong>–</strong> IÑESTA MENA, J., Un fragmento de ley municipal hallado en la Baeturia Turdulorum (conventus Cordubensis, provincia<br />

Baetica). 168 (2009) 293<strong>–</strong>297<br />

SAQUETE CHAMIZO, J. C. <strong>–</strong> SÁEZ FERNÁNDEZ, P. <strong>–</strong> ORDÓÑEZ AGULLA, S. <strong>–</strong> GARCÍA-DILS DE LA VEGA, S., Hispania Baetica, provincia<br />

immunis. 154 (2005) 299<strong>–</strong>311<br />

SAQUETE CHAMIZO, J. C. <strong>–</strong> ORDÓÑEZ AGULLA, S. <strong>–</strong> GARCÍA-DILS DE LA VEGA, S., Una uotorum nuncupatio en Colonia Augusta Firma<br />

(Écija<strong>–</strong>Sevilla). 176 (2011) 281<strong>–</strong>290<br />

SARNOWSKI, T., Promotio ex nova ordinatione eines künftigen Centurio. Zur Inschrift aus Novae in <strong>ZPE</strong> 95, 1993. 111 (1996) 289<strong>–</strong>290<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Phantom Squadron of the Ravennate Fleet on the Black Sea in the 1st Century AD. 157 (2006) 256<strong>–</strong>260<br />

SARNOWSKI, T. <strong>–</strong> ZUBAR, V. M., Römische Besatzungstruppen auf der Südkrim und eine Bauinschrift aus dem Kastell Charax. 112 (1996) 229<strong>–</strong>234<br />

SARTRE, M. <strong>–</strong> BOST-POUDERON, C., Un marchand d’épigrammes à Maaga de Batanée (Syrie). 160 (2007) 51<strong>–</strong>58<br />

SARTRE, M. <strong>–</strong> GUERBER, E., Un logistès à Canatha (Syrie). 120 (1998) 93<strong>–</strong>98<br />

ŠAŠEL KOS, M., The 15th Legion at Emona <strong>–</strong> Some Thoughts. 109 (1995) 227<strong>–</strong>244<br />

SASTRE, I. <strong>–</strong> BELTRÁN ORTEGA, A. <strong>–</strong> SÁNCHEZ-PALENCIA, F. J., Nuevo pacto de hospitalidad procedente de Pino del Oro (Zamora). 168 (2009)<br />

287<strong>–</strong>292<br />

SASTRE PRATS, I., Nueva inscripción funeraria de un vet. leg. VII G. F. procedente de la zona arqueológica de Las Médulas (León, España). 125<br />

(1999) 257<strong>–</strong>258<br />

SAVINO, Chr., Per una nuova lettura di verso col. I in P.Schubart 30 (P.Berol. inv. 16971). 168 (2009) 107<strong>–</strong>111<br />

SAVVOV, R. <strong>–</strong> IVANTCHIK, A. <strong>–</strong> POGORELETS, O., A New Roman Military Diploma from the Territory of the Ukraine. 163 (2007) 255<strong>–</strong>262<br />

SBARDELLA, L., Achille e gli eroi di Platea. Simonide, frr. 10<strong>–</strong>11 W 2 . 129 (2000) 1<strong>–</strong>11<br />

SCAPPATICCIO, M. C., Virgilio, allievi e maestri a Vindolanda: per un’edizione di nuovi documenti dal forte britannico. 169 (2009) 59<strong>–</strong>70<br />

SCHAAF, I., Zu P. Freib. 117d = PGM XXVb. 156 (2006) 179<strong>–</strong>182<br />

SCHACHTER, A., Simonides’ Elegy on Plataia: The Occasion of its Performance. 123 (1998) 25<strong>–</strong>30<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Three Generations of Magistrates from Akraiphia. 163 (2007) 96<strong>–</strong>100<br />

SCHACHTER, A. <strong>–</strong> SLATER, W. J., A Proxeny Decree from Koroneia, Boiotia, in Honour of Zotion Son of Zotion, of Ephesos. 163 (2007) 81<strong>–</strong>95<br />

SCHAEFER, H. <strong>–</strong> LOHMANN, H., Wo lag das Herakleion der Salaminioi §p‹ Porym“? 133 (2000) 91<strong>–</strong>102<br />

SCHAPS, D. M., A Greek Metrical Grave Inscription from Israel. 125 (1999) 185<strong>–</strong>189<br />

SCHÄRLIG, A., Une pièce trouvée à Laurion: c’est un abaque! 134 (2001) 137<strong>–</strong>138 (Corrigendum dazu: 135 (2001) 194)<br />

SCHARF, R., Zur comitiva Flavialis. 114 (1996) 151<strong>–</strong>152<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Die spätantike Truppe der Cimbriani. 135 (2001) 179<strong>–</strong>184<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Equites Dalmatae und cunei Dalmatarum in der Spätantike. 135 (2001) 185<strong>–</strong>193<br />

SCHEID, J. <strong>–</strong> DREW-BEAR, Th., La copie des Res Gestae d’Antioche de Pisidie. 154 (2005) 217<strong>–</strong>260<br />

SCHEITHAUER, A., Epigraphische Studien zur Herrscherideologie. I. Salvis Augustis felix . . . Entstehung und Geschichte eines Formulars. 114 (1996)<br />

213<strong>–</strong>226<br />

SCHENKE, G., Das perid°jion in P. Lond. 2.294. 121 (1998) 301<strong>–</strong>302<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Die Trauer um ein kleines Mädchen: Eine Bitte um Trost. 127 (1999) 117<strong>–</strong>122<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Perlenohrringe wohlhabender Frauen. 129 (2000) 129<strong>–</strong>130<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein koptischer Grabstein aus Nubien. 132 (2000) 176<strong>–</strong>178<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Anweisungen zur Übergabe von Textilien und Weizen in O.Douch I 40 und 49. 162 (2007) 220<strong>–</strong>222<br />

SCHENKE, G. <strong>–</strong> GONIS, N., Grüne gegossene Steine. 123 (1998) 199<strong>–</strong>200<br />

SCHEUBLE, S., Eine Grabinschrift aus Kleinasien. 161 (2007) 173<strong>–</strong>176<br />

SCHINDEL, N., Ein Militärdiplomfragment aus Moesia inferior (136 n. Chr.). 174 (2010) 259<strong>–</strong>263<br />

SCHIRONI, F., L’Olimpo non è il cielo: esegesi antica nel papiro di Derveni, in Aristarco e in Leagora di Siracusa. 136 (2001) 11<strong>–</strong>21<br />

SCHMELZ, G., Septuaginta-Fragmente aus der Heidelberger Papyrussammlung. 116 (1997) 61<strong>–</strong>65<br />

SCHMELZ, G. <strong>–</strong> MORELLI, F., Gli ostraca di Akoris n. 19 e 20 e la produzione di koËfa nell’area del tempio Ovest. 139 (2002) 127<strong>–</strong>137<br />

SCHMID, J. <strong>–</strong> SCHWEIGHART, B., Zur Reiseroute Ciceros zwischen Patras und Actium im Jahre 50 v. Chr. 105 (1995) 51<strong>–</strong>55<br />

SCHMIDT, M., Variae lectiones oder Parallelstellen: Was notierten Zenodot und Aristarch zu Homer? 115 (1997) 1<strong>–</strong>12<br />

SCHMIDT, M. G., Senare aus Clunia. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 202<strong>–</strong>206<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Kirche oder Baptisterium? Zur metrischen Inschrift aus Martos / Prov. Jaén (CIL II 2 .5, 155). 112 (1996) 245<strong>–</strong>247<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ursus togatus (CIL VI 9797). 126 (1999) 240<strong>–</strong>242<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Minutiae musivae. 133 (2000) 248<strong>–</strong>250<br />

SCHMIDT, St., Zum Treffen in Neapel und den Panhellenia in der Hadriansinschrift aus Alexandria Troas. 170 (2009) 109<strong>–</strong>112<br />

SCHMIDT, Th., Trois rescapés de la Grande Guerre: Les papyrus grecs de la Collection Fernand Mayence. 127 (1999) 149<strong>–</strong>156<br />

SCHMIDT, Th. <strong>–</strong> HUYS, M., The Syllabic Name-Lists on O. Crum 525 (UC inv. 32222). Re-edition and Commentary. 134 (2001) 145<strong>–</strong>162<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Toronto Ostracon with a List of Monosyllables (2718 Pack 2 ): Re-Edition with Commentary. 152 (2005) 209<strong>–</strong>217<br />

SCHMIDT, V., Menander Fr. 509 K.<strong>–</strong>A. 121 (1998) 45<strong>–</strong>48<br />

SCHMITT, R., Bemerkungen zu dem sog. Gadatas-Brief. 112 (1996) 95<strong>–</strong><strong>101</strong><br />

SCHMITZ, W., Der Verkauf einer Sklavenfamilie. 179 (2011) 54<strong>–</strong>56<br />

SCHMITZ, W. <strong>–</strong> MEIER, M., Zu einigen spätantiken und frühmittelalterlichen Inschriften aus dem Rheinland. 124 (1998) 293<strong>–</strong>299<br />

SCHNEIDER, W., Cappa. 112 (1996) 203<strong>–</strong>217<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Der Denker mit dem Epsilon <strong>–</strong> Ein Bildnis des Apollonios von Perge? 114 (1996) 227<strong>–</strong>236<br />

SCHNEIDER, W. J., Von Stirnen und Steinen. tristia saxorum stigmata <strong>–</strong> eine Korruptel im Martial-Text? 148 (2004) 163<strong>–</strong>164<br />

SCHNURR, Ch., Die alte Agora Athens. 105 (1995) 131<strong>–</strong>138<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zur Topographie der Theaterstätten und der Tripodenstraße in Athen. 105 (1995) 139<strong>–</strong>153<br />

SCHOLL, R., Eine beschriftete Bronzekanne aus dem 6. Jh. n. Chr. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 231<strong>–</strong>240<br />

SCHOLL, R. <strong>–</strong> COLOMO, D., Psalmen und Rechnungen: P. Bonn Inv. 147 + P. Lips. I 97. 153 (2005) 163<strong>–</strong>167<br />

SCHOLZ, M. <strong>–</strong> BLÄNSDORF, J. <strong>–</strong> KROPP, A., „Perverse agas, comodo hoc perverse scriptu(m) est“ <strong>–</strong> ein Fluchtäfelchen aus Köln. 174 (2010) 272<strong>–</strong><br />

276<br />

SCHÖPSDAU, K., Zur Wahl der Gesetzeswächter in Platons »Nomoi«. 131 (2000) 244<strong>–</strong>250<br />

SCHORN, St., Platons Inspirationstheorie in Satyros’ Euripidesvita. 134 (2001) 15<strong>–</strong>21<br />

SCHÖRNER, G., Nicht Abruzzen, sondern Aquinum. Zur Lokalisierung eines Sevirn. 111 (1996) 269<strong>–</strong>270


50 Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff.<br />

SCHRÖDER, St., Die Lebensdaten Menanders (mit einem Anhang über die Aufführungszeit seines ÑEautÚn timvroÊmenow). 113 (1996) 35<strong>–</strong>48<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zwei Überlegungen zu den Liedern vom Athenerschatzhaus in Delphi. 128 (1999) 65<strong>–</strong>75<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Überlegungen zu zwei Epigrammen des neuen Mailänder Papyrus. 139 (2002) 27<strong>–</strong>29<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Skeptische Überlegungen zum Mailänder Epigrammpapyrus (P. Mil. Vogl. VIII 309). 148 (2004) 29<strong>–</strong>73<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zur Stele des Isyllos in Epidauros. IG IV 950 = IG IV I 2 128 = Powell, CA p. 132<strong>–</strong>136 = Anthologia Lyrica Graeca, ed. E. Diehl, vol. II 6 2 , p. 113<strong>–</strong>118.<br />

155 (2006) 55<strong>–</strong>69 (Corrigendum dazu: 156 (2006) 52)<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Pap. Derv. col. XVI 1. 161 (2007) 27<strong>–</strong>28<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zu Posidipps Pharos-Gedicht und einigen Epigrammen auf dem Mailänder Papyrus. 165 (2008) 33<strong>–</strong>48<br />

SCHUBERT, Ch., Die kaiserliche Agrargesetzgebung in Nordafrika von Trajan bis Justinian. 167 (2008) 251<strong>–</strong>275<br />

SCHUBERT, P., Quatre lettres privées sur papyrus. 117 (1997) 190<strong>–</strong>196<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P.Gen. I 74 et le procès de Drusilla. 130 (2000) 211<strong>–</strong>217<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Une brève note sur un nouveau texte mythographique. 150 (2004) 63<strong>–</strong>65<br />

SCHUBERT, P. <strong>–</strong> SÁNCHEZ, P. <strong>–</strong> VOLOKHINE, Y., Une dédicace grecque de l’époque impériale tardive trouvée à Hermonthis (Ermant, Haute-<br />

Égypte). 174 (2010) 127<strong>–</strong>132<br />

SCHULER, Ch., Kolonisten und Einheimische in einer attalidischen Polisgründung. 128 (1999) 124<strong>–</strong>132<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Priester πρὸ πόλεως in Lykien: Eine neue Inschrift aus dem Territorium von Patara. 173 (2010) 69<strong>–</strong>86<br />

SCHULTZ, C. E., Modern Prejudice and Ancient Praxis: Female Worship of Hercules at Rome. 133 (2000) 291<strong>–</strong>297<br />

SCHUMACHER, L., Die Herrschaft der Makedonen im Kanon der ‚Weltreich‘-Abfolge des Pompeius Trogus (Iustin). Grundlage <strong>–</strong> Gestaltung <strong>–</strong><br />

Zielsetzung. 131 (2000) 279<strong>–</strong>291<br />

SCHÜTZ, G., Aufklärung eines epigraphischen Mißverständnisses. 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 199<strong>–</strong>200<br />

SCHWEIGHART, B. <strong>–</strong> SCHMID, J., Zur Reiseroute Ciceros zwischen Patras und Actium im Jahre 50 v. Chr. 105 (1995) 51<strong>–</strong>55<br />

SCHWENDNER, G. W. <strong>–</strong> MARKUS, D., Seneca’s Medea in Egypt (663<strong>–</strong>704). 117 (1997) 73<strong>–</strong>80<br />

SCHWINDT, J. P., Hektors Hände oder Von den Tücken des versteckten Sinns (Laevius, frg. 4). 126 (1999) 83<strong>–</strong>87<br />

SCODEL, R., A Note on Posidippus 63 AB (P. Mil. Vogl. VIII 309 X 16<strong>–</strong>25). 142 (2003) 44<br />

SCULLION, S., Three Notes on Attic Sacrificial Calendars. 121 (1998) 116<strong>–</strong>122<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Heroic and Chthonian Sacrifice: New Evidence from Selinous. 132 (2000) 163<strong>–</strong>171<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Three Notes on Inscriptions. 134 (2001) 116<strong>–</strong>120<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Reply to Henry on IG II 2 401. 140 (2002) 81<strong>–</strong>84<br />

SEELENTAG, G., Der Abschluß der Ephebie im archaischen Kreta. Bemerkungen zu einer Gesetzesinschrift aus Dreros. 168 (2009) 149<strong>–</strong>160<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ehret Eure Väter. Eine neue Restitutionsmünze Trajans. 171 (2009) 265<strong>–</strong>273<br />

di SEGNI, L., On a Dated Inscription from Rakhle and the Eras Used on the Hermon Range. 117 (1997) 277<strong>–</strong>280<br />

di SEGNI, L. <strong>–</strong> COTTON, H. M. <strong>–</strong> ECK, W. <strong>–</strong> ISAAC, B., Corpus Inscriptionum Judaeae/Palaestinae. 127 (1999) 307<strong>–</strong>308<br />

di SEGNI, L. <strong>–</strong> PATRICH, J. <strong>–</strong> HOLUM, K. G., A Schedule of Fees (sportulae) for Official Services from Caesarea Maritima, Israel. 145 (2003) 273<strong>–</strong><br />

300<br />

SEIGNE, J. <strong>–</strong> AGUSTA-BOULAROT, S., À propos des légations d’Arabie de P. Aelius Seuerianus Maximus et de Q. Scribonius Tenax. 139 (2002)<br />

279<strong>–</strong>282<br />

SEIGNE, J. <strong>–</strong> AGUSTA-BOULAROT, S. <strong>–</strong> MUJJALI, A., Maximien à Gerasa (Jerash, Jordanie) et les gouverneurs de la province d’Arabie à l’époque de<br />

Dioclétien et de la Tétrarchie. 164 (2008) 263<strong>–</strong>270<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Milliaires anciens et nouveaux de Gerasa. Complément 1. 164 (2008) 271<strong>–</strong>276<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Épigramme funéraire d’une jeune fille de Phrygie à Gerasa (Jerash, Jordanie). 179 (2011) 103<strong>–</strong>106<br />

SEK<strong>UND</strong>A, N. V., The Kylloi and Eubiotoi of Hypata During the Imperial Period. 118 (1997) 207<strong>–</strong>226<br />

SEK<strong>UND</strong>A, N. V. <strong>–</strong> JUHEL, P., The agema and ‘the other Peltasts’ in the late Antigonid Army, and in the Drama/Cassandreia Conscription diagramma.<br />

170 (2009) 104<strong>–</strong>108<br />

SEK<strong>UND</strong>A, N. V. <strong>–</strong> JUHEL, P. <strong>–</strong> NOGUERA BOREL, A. <strong>–</strong> RZEPKA, J., A New Greek Inscription from the Area of Tremnik (Republic of<br />

Macedonia/Skopje). 161 (2007) 170<strong>–</strong>172<br />

SENATORE, F., Quattuorviri aediles nella colonia romana di Pompei? 119 (1997) 283<strong>–</strong>291<br />

SENIOR, R. C. <strong>–</strong> HOLLIS, A. S. <strong>–</strong> REA, J. R., A Tax Receipt from Hellenistic Bactria. 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 261<strong>–</strong>280<br />

SENS, A. <strong>–</strong> KEESLING, C., Posidippus on Rhodian Statue-Making (68.6 Austin<strong>–</strong>Bastianini; P. Mil. Vogl. VIII 309 XI 11). 148 (2004) 75<strong>–</strong>76<br />

SERFASS, A., Petition to the Epistrategos Vedius Faustus. 134 (2001) 183<strong>–</strong>190<br />

<strong>–</strong>, On the Meaning of strōtēs in P.Oxy. XVI 1951. 161 (2007) 253<strong>–</strong>259<br />

SERRALONGUE, J. <strong>–</strong> BERTRANDY, F. <strong>–</strong> FAURE, P., Un monument funéraire de prétorien récemment découvert à Annecy (Haute-Savoie). 146<br />

(2004) 259<strong>–</strong>264<br />

SHARANKOV, N., A Dedicatory Inscription from Odessos. 137 (2001) 174<strong>–</strong>178<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Inscriptions from the Strymon Valley: Corrigenda. 148 (2004) 198<strong>–</strong>200<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Unknown Governors of Provincia Thracia, Late I <strong>–</strong> Early II Century AD. 151 (2005) 235<strong>–</strong>242<br />

SHARANKOV, N. <strong>–</strong> DIMITROVA, N., A New Greek Word in a Mason’s Graffito from Thrace. 143 (2003) 201<strong>–</strong>204<br />

SHEAR, J. L., Prizes from Athens: The List of Panathenaic Prizes and the Sacred Oil. 142 (2003) 87<strong>–</strong>108<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Hadrian, the Panathenaia, and the Athenian Calendar. 180 (<strong>2012</strong>) 159<strong>–</strong>172<br />

SHERIDAN, J. A., The Anabolikon. 124 (1998) 211<strong>–</strong>217<br />

SHIPTON, K. M. W., The Prices of the Athenian Silver Mines. 120 (1998) 57<strong>–</strong>63<br />

SIDER, D., Simonides Epigram 3 FGE in P.Oxy. 31.2535. 162 (2007) 5<strong>–</strong>8<br />

SIER, K., Von der Ähre zur Zikade. Die Komposition des kallimacheischen Aitienprologs. 122 (1998) 21<strong>–</strong>35<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zum Text der Martyrien von Petrus und Paulus. 173 (2010) 35<strong>–</strong>44<br />

SIERRA DELAGE, M. <strong>–</strong> CURBERA, J. B. <strong>–</strong> VELÁZQUEZ, I., A Bilingual Curse Tablet from Barchín del Hoyo (Cuenca, Spain). 125 (1999) 279<strong>–</strong>283<br />

SIJPESTEIJN, P. J., SB XIV 11430: Eine Neuveröffentlichung. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 99<strong>–</strong>100<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Three Tax-Receipts from the Michigan Papyrus Collection. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 93<strong>–</strong>97<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Mich. inv. 3425: A Correction. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 97<br />

<strong>–</strong>, BM 1079 und CPR IX 44: Einige Verbesserungen. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 98<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eine neue Mosaikinschrift. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 99<strong>–</strong>100<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Known and Unknown Officials. 106 (1995) 203<strong>–</strong>234<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A New Proper Name: EÈd°riow. 107 (1995) 104<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Three Papyri Concerning Census. 107 (1995) 271<strong>–</strong>276


Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff. 51<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Customs 691<strong>–</strong>884: An Addendum. 107 (1995) 277<strong>–</strong>278<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Varia Papyrologica IV. 108 (1995) 195<strong>–</strong>223<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Exit the Proper Name Xairhãmmvn. 108 (1995) 224<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Receipts from the Michigan Papyrus Collection. 109 (1995) 87<strong>–</strong>109<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Complaint to the Epistrategus Vedius Faustus. 110 (1996) 183<strong>–</strong>187<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Labour Contract to Build a Boat. 111 (1996) 159<strong>–</strong>162<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Marriage Agreement with Property Division to Take Effect After Death and Other Documents. 111 (1996) 163<strong>–</strong>170<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Die legio nona Hispana in Nimwegen. 111 (1996) 281<strong>–</strong>282<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Lateinische Grabinschriften IV. 111 (1996) 283<strong>–</strong>288<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Some Remarks on SB V 8368 and 8369. 112 (1996) 178<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Two Unlikely Imperial Titulatures. 112 (1996) 189<strong>–</strong>191<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Consuls of A. D. 358. 112 (1996) 218<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Three Private Letters. 113 (1996) 163<strong>–</strong>167<br />

<strong>–</strong>, PSI I 57 Reconsidered. 113 (1996) 168<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Skipper’s Receipt for Grain Delivered. 113 (1996) 169<strong>–</strong>170<br />

SIJPESTEIJN, P. J. <strong>–</strong> GAGOS, T., Settling a Dispute in Fourth Century Small Oasis (P. Mich. Inv. No. 4008). 105 (1995) 245<strong>–</strong>252<br />

SIJPESTEIJN, P. J. <strong>–</strong> GALLAZZI, Cl., P. Cairo inv. JE 51509: Lists of Payments. 113 (1996) 171<strong>–</strong>182<br />

SIJPESTEIJN, P. J. <strong>–</strong> HANSON, A. E., Three Papyri from the Princeton University Collection. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 41<strong>–</strong>51<br />

SIJPESTEIJN, P. J. <strong>–</strong> LIESKER, W. H. M., Bruchstücke antiker Geometrie. 113 (1996) 183<strong>–</strong>186<br />

SIJPESTEIJN, P. J. <strong>–</strong> WORP, K. A., P. Lond. inv. 2175: A Full Edition. 110 (1996) 175<strong>–</strong>182<br />

SIMELIDES, Ch., Callimachus, Epigram 9.6 G.<strong>–</strong>P. and Gregory of Nazianzus, Carmen I 2.14.<strong>101</strong>. 176 (2011) 60<strong>–</strong>62<br />

SIMÓN CORNAGO, I., La primera inscripción ibérica sobre una gema (La Guardia de Alcorisa, Teruel, España). <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>) 303<strong>–</strong>309<br />

SIRKS, A. B. J. <strong>–</strong> WORP, K. A., „Tres faciunt collegium“. 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 256<strong>–</strong>260<br />

SIRONEN, E., Lateinische Ehreninschriften für Constantin den Großen und seine Nachfolger und andere Inschriften der Spätzeit aus Attika. 136 (2001)<br />

257<strong>–</strong>266<br />

SIRONEN, T., Un graffito in latino arcaico su un frammento di terracotta da Fregellae. 115 (1997) 242<strong>–</strong>244<br />

SKEAT, Th. C., The Origin of the Christian Codex. 102 (<strong>1994</strong>) 263<strong>–</strong>268<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Forgotten Factor in the Debate on the Calendar in Augustan Egypt. 132 (2000) 240<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Egyptian Calendar under Augustus. 135 (2001) 153<strong>–</strong>156<br />

SKEEN, B. A., A Note on a Hematite Falcon in the Louvre. 133 (2000) 149<strong>–</strong>152<br />

ŠKEGRO, A., Epigraphische Mitteilungen aus Bosnien und Herzegowina. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 287<strong>–</strong>298<br />

SKEMPIS, M., Athene und ihre Lieblinge: Kall. Hek. Fr. 40 H. und Odyssee 7. 167 (2008) 9<strong>–</strong>16<br />

SKOUNTAKIS, M. <strong>–</strong> PETROVIC, A. <strong>–</strong> DESTAEBLER, P., Two New Honorific Epigrams for Pollion, a Governor from Aphrodisias. 172 (2010) 38<strong>–</strong>42<br />

SLATER, W. J. <strong>–</strong> SCHACHTER, A., A Proxeny Decree from Koroneia, Boiotia, in Honour of Zotion Son of Zotion, of Ephesos. 163 (2007) 81<strong>–</strong>95<br />

SLAVOVA, M., Lines 26<strong>–</strong>32 of the Horothesia of Dionysopolis (IGBulg V 5011). 120 (1998) 99<strong>–</strong>106<br />

SLINGS, S. R., Sappho, fr. 94,10. 102 (<strong>1994</strong>) 8<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes on the Lead Letters from Emporion. 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 111<strong>–</strong>117<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Archilochus, fr. 188,1<strong>–</strong>2. 106 (1995) 1<strong>–</strong>2<br />

SMILGIES, D.-M. <strong>–</strong> POWERS, J. <strong>–</strong> DIMITROVA, N. <strong>–</strong> HUANG, R. <strong>–</strong> BILDERBACK, D. H. <strong>–</strong> CLINTON, K. <strong>–</strong> THORNE, R. E., X-ray Fluorescence<br />

Recovers Writing from Ancient Inscriptions. 152 (2005) 221<strong>–</strong>227<br />

SMITH, M. F., An Epicurean Priest from Apamea in Syria. 112 (1996) 120<strong>–</strong>130<br />

<strong>–</strong>, NHSSOS at Oinoanda in Lycia <strong>–</strong> Misspelling or Genuine Variant? 130 (2000) 127<strong>–</strong>130<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Fresh Thoughts on Diogenes of Oinoanda fr. 68. 133 (2000) 51<strong>–</strong>55<br />

SMOLDERS, R., SB XXII 15336 and the Interpretation of BGU IX 1897. 148 (2004) 239<strong>–</strong>240<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Meaning of sunt( ) in Tax Lists and Tax Receipts. 150 (2004) 220<br />

SOLANA SAINZ, J. M. <strong>–</strong> HERNÁNDEZ GUERRA, L., Inscripciones votivas inéditas de la provincia de Salamanca. 128 (1999) 267<strong>–</strong>268<br />

SOLDATI, A., T°taktai pro tetãxatai. 152 (2005) 197<strong>–</strong>199<br />

SOLIN, H., Varia onomastica XII. Corcodilus. 105 (1995) 77<strong>–</strong>80<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Varia onomastica XIII. Drei griechische Namen in römischer Überlieferung. 118 (1997) 231<strong>–</strong>234<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zur onomastischen Exegese von CIL VI 200. 129 (2000) 293<strong>–</strong>303<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Neue Namen und kein Ende. Zu CIL VI 9102. 136 (2001) 279<strong>–</strong>285<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Varia onomastica XIV. Sementivus und Verwandtes. 148 (2004) 277<strong>–</strong>282<br />

<strong>–</strong>, I proprietari fondiari e gli alimenta traianei: una partecipazione forzata? 140 (2002) 211<strong>–</strong>226<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Varia onomastica XV. 156 (2006) 308<strong>–</strong>312<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zu Inschriften von Ikonion. 163 (2007) 266<strong>–</strong>268<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Varia onomastica XVI. Apra. 171 (2009) 274<strong>–</strong>276<br />

SOLIN, H. <strong>–</strong> IASIELLO, I., Due iscrizioni dal territorio di Morcone. 178 (2011) 279<strong>–</strong>284<br />

SÖLLNER, M. A., Bemerkungen zur Datierung verschiedener Papyri. 107 (1995) 81<strong>–</strong>84<br />

SOMERVILLE, T., The Orthography of the New Gallus and the Spelling Rules of Lucilius. 160 (2007) 59<strong>–</strong>64<br />

SONNINO, M., L’identificazione del rivale del demagogo nel Maricante di Eupoli: P. Oxy. 2741 (= Eup. fr. 192 K.<strong>–</strong>A.) rr. 100<strong>–</strong>5. 156 (2006) 39<strong>–</strong>51<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Per un’analisi del lessico medico nei frammenti della commedia: Eupoli Maricante P. Oxy. 2741 (= fr. 192 K.<strong>–</strong>A.), rr. 7<strong>–</strong>12, 92<strong>–</strong>5. 159 (2007) 29<strong>–</strong>42<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Per la ricostituzione di un corale dell’Eretteo di Euripide: PapSorb 2328 (= Eur. fr. 370 Kannicht), rr. 5<strong>–</strong>10 ed Eur. Erechth. fr. 369d Kannicht. 166<br />

(2008) 9<strong>–</strong>21<br />

SORDI, M. <strong>–</strong> GRZYBEK, E., L’Edit de Nazareth et la politique de Néron à l’égard des chrétiens. 120 (1998) 279<strong>–</strong>291<br />

SORICELLI, G., Le prime obligationes a Veleia ed il ruolo di T. Pomponio Basso. 136 (2001) 289<strong>–</strong>297<br />

SOSIN, J. D., P. Duk. inv. 677: Aetos, from Arsinoite Strategos to Eponymous Priest. 116 (1997) 141<strong>–</strong>146<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Abduction at the Threshing Floor: P. Duk. inv. 714<strong>–</strong>716. 127 (1999) 131<strong>–</strong>140<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Two Attic Endowments. 138 (2002) 123<strong>–</strong>128<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Acraephia Counts: P for P(°ttarew). 148 (2004) 193<strong>–</strong>195<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The New Letter from Pasion. 165 (2008) 105<strong>–</strong>108<br />

SOSIN, J. D. <strong>–</strong> BAUSCHATZ, J., Four Duke Papyri concerning Pesouris, Basilikos Grammateus. 141 (2002) 177<strong>–</strong>190<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Stealing Livestock at Oxyrhyncha. 146 (2004) 167<strong>–</strong>169


52 Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff.<br />

SOSIN, J. D. <strong>–</strong> JOHNSON, P. B. <strong>–</strong> OATES, J. F. <strong>–</strong> WEINBERG, R. J., Reading Invisible Ink: Digital Imaging of P. Duk. inv. 716. 127 (1999) 127<strong>–</strong>130<br />

SOSIN, J. D. <strong>–</strong> OATES, J. F., P. Duk. inv. 314: Agathis, Strategos and Hipparches of the Arsinoite Nome. 118 (1997) 251<strong>–</strong>258<br />

SPADONI, M. C. <strong>–</strong> BENEDETTI, L., Su alcune are con dedica ad Augusto da Perugia (CIL XI 1923). 174 (2010) 219<strong>–</strong>228<br />

SPANOUDAKIS, K., Callimachus fr. 1.9<strong>–</strong>12 Again. 121 (1998) 59<strong>–</strong>61<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Hellenistic (?) Hexameters Revisited. 127 (1999) 59<strong>–</strong>62. Addendum dazu: 130 (2000) 41<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Hesychiana Minima. 130 (2000) 31<strong>–</strong>41<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes on Nicander’s Theriaca. 157 (2006) 50<strong>–</strong>56<br />

SPAUL, J. E. H., I. A. M. 2,250 = AE 1967,655 and the Identification of Colonia Babba. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 191<strong>–</strong>201<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ala I Pannoniorum <strong>–</strong> One or Many? 105 (1995) 63<strong>–</strong>73<br />

SPEIDEL, M. A., Scribonius Proculus: Curator aedium sacrarum et operum publicorum in Rom oder in Luna? Überlegungen zu CIL XI 1340. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>)<br />

209<strong>–</strong>214<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Albata decursio <strong>–</strong> Ein kaiserliches Siegesmanöver. Zu einer neuen Inschrift aus Ankara. 162 (2007) 263<strong>–</strong>270<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Rekruten für ferne Provinzen. Der Papyrus ChLA X 422 und die kaiserliche Rekrutierungszentrale. 163 (2007) 281<strong>–</strong>295<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Außerhalb des Reiches? Zu neuen lateinischen Inschriften aus Saudi-Arabien und zur Ausdehnung der römischen Herrschaft am Roten Meer. 163<br />

(2007) 296<strong>–</strong>306<br />

SPEIDEL, M. P., A Guardsman as Officer of Irregulars. A singularis consularis Promoted to centurion or decurion of a numerus. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 215<strong>–</strong>216<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Centurial Signs and the Battle Order of the Legions. 154 (2005) 286<strong>–</strong>292<br />

SPEIDEL, M. P. <strong>–</strong> WEISS, P., Das erste Militärdiplom für Arabia. 150 (2004) 253<strong>–</strong>264<br />

SPENCER, N., „TÚ Purra¤vn ˆrow tÚ pitu«dew“: An Archaeological and Epigraphical Approach to a Topographical Problem. 112 (1996) 253<strong>–</strong>262<br />

SQUIRE, M. J., Three New Tabulae Iliacae Reconstructions (Tablets 2NY, 9D, 20Par). 178 (2011) 63<strong>–</strong>78<br />

STAAB, G., Athenfreunde unter Verdacht. Der erste Asianist Hegesias aus Magnesia zwischen Rhetorik und Geschichtsschreibung. 148 (2004) 127<strong>–</strong>150<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zu den neuen Gladiatorenmonumenten aus Stratonikeia in Karien. 161 (2007) 35<strong>–</strong>46<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zu zwei neuen Epigrammen aus Stratonikeia in Karien. 170 (2009) 35<strong>–</strong>42<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Das Grabepigramm des Euelpistos aus Tomi. 179 (2011) 97<strong>–</strong>102<br />

STAAB, G. <strong>–</strong> PETZL, G., Vier neue Epigramme aus Lydien. 174 (2010) 1<strong>–</strong>14<br />

STANLEY Jr., F. H., CIL II 115: Observations on the Only sevir iunior in Roman Spain. 102 (<strong>1994</strong>) 226<strong>–</strong>236<br />

STANTON, G. R., A Graffito on a Megakles Ostrakon. 111 (1996) 69<strong>–</strong>73<br />

STARR, R. J., Augustus as Pater patriae and Patronage Decrees. 172 (2010) 296<strong>–</strong>298<br />

de STEFANI, Cl., P. Heid. inv. G 239d: Epica imperiale? 133 (2000) 56<strong>–</strong>60<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Heid. Inv. G 310a: Frammenti di poesia ellenistica. 140 (2002) 17<strong>–</strong>29<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Una nota a PBodmer 31.43. 145 (2003) 22<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Conjectures on Two Epigrams of the ‘New Posidippus’ (4 and 66 A.<strong>–</strong>B.). 152 (2005) 7<strong>–</strong>8<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Conjectures on P. Oxy. 4712, fr. 1. 158 (2006) 8<br />

STEIN, M., Anmerkungen zur Überlieferung des attischen Eisangeliegesetzes. 120 (1998) 19<strong>–</strong>22<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zum christlichen Homercento SGO 19/21/02 (IV p. 231 sq.). 174 (2010) 57<strong>–</strong>64<br />

STEINBACH, M. <strong>–</strong> WAGMAN, R., Votive Perirrhanteria from Epidauros: Anecdota and Revisions. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 106<strong>–</strong>108<br />

STEINBAUER, D., Zur Grabinschrift der Larthi Cilnei aus Aritim/Arretium/Arezzo. 121 (1998) 263<strong>–</strong>281<br />

STEINER, Ch. J., Allegoresis and Alcman’s “Cosmogony”: P. Oxy. XXIV 2390 (fr. 5 Page<strong>–</strong>Davies). 142 (2003) 21<strong>–</strong>30<br />

STEINRÜCK, M., Neues zur Blemyomachie. 126 (1999) 99<strong>–</strong>114<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Neues zu Sappho. 131 (2000) 10<strong>–</strong>12<br />

STEPHENS, S., Alcibiades in the Rhetorical Tradition. P. Strass. Inv. Gr. 2346 (= P 2 2497). 105 (1995) 215<strong>–</strong>224<br />

STEPHENS, S. A. <strong>–</strong> ACOSTA-HUGHES, B., Aetia fr. 1.5: I Told My Story Like a Child. 136 (2001) 214<strong>–</strong>216<br />

STERN, S., The Babylonian Calendar at Elephantine. 130 (2000) 159<strong>–</strong>171<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A ‘Jewish’ Birth Record, Sambat-, and the Calendar of Salamis. 172 (2010) 105<strong>–</strong>114<br />

STEWART, A., Alkamenes at Ephesos and in Athens. 143 (2003) <strong>101</strong><strong>–</strong>103<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Alkamenes’ Two Herms Again. 145 (2003) 107<strong>–</strong>108<br />

STIGKA, E. <strong>–</strong> AUSTIN, C., Not Comedy, but Epigram: ‘Mr. Perfect’ in fr. com. adesp. *1036. 161 (2007) 13<strong>–</strong>16<br />

STIGLITZ, H., Fragment eines Militärdiploms der antoninischen Zeit aus Carnuntum. 135 (2001) 220<strong>–</strong>224<br />

STÖKL BEN EZRA, D., A Jewish ‘Archontesse’. Remarks on an Epitaph from Byblos. 169 (2009) 287<strong>–</strong>293<br />

STOLBA, V. F., Hellenistic Ostrakon from Olbia. 151 (2005) 91<strong>–</strong>94<br />

STOLL, O., Die Fahnenwache in der römischen Armee. 108 (1995) 107<strong>–</strong>118<br />

STRAMAGLIA, A., Maxãtaw/Maxãthw: un ‘avatar’ dimenticato. 111 (1996) 68<br />

<strong>–</strong>, PLit.Palau Rib. 37: elenco di trisillabi (con una menzione del romanziere Caritone?). 114 (1996) 147<strong>–</strong>150<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Piramo e Tisbe prima di Ovidio? PMich inv. 3793 e la narrativa d’intrattenimento alla fine dell’ età tolemaica. 134 (2001) 81<strong>–</strong>106<br />

STRASSI, S., P. Med. inv. 196 (SB XIV 11536). 115 (1997) 183<strong>–</strong>186<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Mich. VIII 485: alcune considerazioni. 139 (2002) 161<strong>–</strong>176<br />

<strong>–</strong>, In margine all’archivio di Tiberianus e Terentianus: P. Mich. VIII 510. 148 (2004) 225<strong>–</strong>234<br />

STRAUS, J. A., BGU III 987 et PSI XII 1228: suggrafa¤ notariées publiques? 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 225<strong>–</strong>226<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Remarques sur quelques contrats de vente d’esclaves conservés sur papyrus. 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 227<strong>–</strong>229<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Mea maxima culpa. À propos des P. Lond. III 977, P. Nepheros 33, PSI XII 1228, SB V 8007 et SB XVIII 13173. 111 (1996) 191<strong>–</strong>192<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Liste commentée des contrats de vente d’esclaves passés en Égypte aux époques grecque, romaine et byzantine. 131 (2000) 135<strong>–</strong>144<br />

STRIANO, A., À propos de la nouvelle édition des inscriptions d’Hispania: deux notes anthroponymiques, Odephorus et Laurotiche. 147 (2004) 225<strong>–</strong><br />

228<br />

STROUD, H. C. <strong>–</strong> STROUD, R. S., The Empress Julia Domna at Epidauros Limera. 105 (1995) 85<strong>–</strong>88<br />

STROUD, R. S., The Aiakeion and Tholos of Athens in P. Oxy 2087. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 1<strong>–</strong>9<br />

STROUD, R. S. <strong>–</strong> STROUD, H. C., The Empress Julia Domna at Epidauros Limera. 105 (1995) 85<strong>–</strong>88<br />

STYLOW, A. U., Ingenuo suo, una nota filológica. 165 (2008) 307<strong>–</strong>308<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Stumm wie ein Frosch ohne Zunge! Eine neue Fluchtafel aus Celti (Peñaflor, Prov. Sevilla). <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>) 149<strong>–</strong>155<br />

SUERBAUM, W., Herculanensische Lukrez-Papyri <strong>–</strong> neue Belege für die Phase der Majuskel-Kursive eines bekannten Klassikertextes.<br />

Nachbetrachtungen zur Edition von K. Kleve, CronErc 19, 1989, 5<strong>–</strong>27. 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 1<strong>–</strong>21<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Der Pyrrhos-Krieg in Ennius’ Annales VI im Lichte der ersten Ennius-Papyri aus Herculaneum. 106 (1995) 31<strong>–</strong>52


Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff. 53<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Schwierigkeiten bei der Lektüre des SC de Cn. Pisone patre durch die Zeitgenossen um 20 n. Chr., durch Tacitus und durch heutige Leser. 128 (1999)<br />

213<strong>–</strong>234<br />

SULIMANI, G. <strong>–</strong> DANIEL, R. W., A New Curse Tablet from Jerusalem. 171 (2009) 123<strong>–</strong>128<br />

SUMMA, D., Una iscrizione coregica di Thorikos? 136 (2001) 71<strong>–</strong>76<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Una dedica coregica inedita. 150 (2004) 147<strong>–</strong>148<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Attori e coreghi in Attica: iscrizioni dal teatro di Thorikos. 157 (2006) 77<strong>–</strong>86<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein Amphiktioniedekret aus Ostlokris. Neues zu ‚Le scandale de ca. 117 av. J.-C.‘ 172 (2010) 100<strong>–</strong>104<br />

SUMMA, D. <strong>–</strong> KOUNOUCLAS, P., A New Dedication from Eastern Lokris. 178 (2011) 203<strong>–</strong>206<br />

SVERKOS, E. K., Eine neue Grabinschrift aus Anthemous (Galatista). 140 (2002) 127<strong>–</strong>128<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eine Grabinschrift aus Anthemous. 163 (2007) <strong>101</strong><strong>–</strong>102<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein Bleigewicht aus Ephesos (?) in Athen. 172 (2010) 145<strong>–</strong>147<br />

SVERKOS, E. K. <strong>–</strong> NIGDELIS, P. M., Zur Neudefinition des Territoriums einer makedonischen Polis der Kaiserzeit: Der Fall von Bragylos in Krestonia.<br />

169 (2009) 163<strong>–</strong>172<br />

SYRKOU, A., Lease of Land. 152 (2005) 200<strong>–</strong>202<br />

SZABÓ, A. <strong>–</strong> MRÁV, Zs., Fragment einer bronzenen Urkunde neuen Typs über die Entlassung eines Legionssoldaten vom Jahre 240 n. Chr. 169 (2009)<br />

255<strong>–</strong>268<br />

SZÁMADÓ, E. <strong>–</strong> LŐRINCZ, B., Ein Meilenstein der Senatskaiser Pupienus und Balbinus aus Pannonien. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 205<strong>–</strong>207<br />

TACOMA, L. E., Replacement Parts for an Irrigation Machine of the Divine House at Oxyrhynchus. P. Columbia inv. 83, October 12, AD 549(?). 120<br />

(1998) 123<strong>–</strong>130<br />

TAGLIAMONTE, G., Un nuovo graffito vascolare in lingua osco-sannita da Aquino. 168 (2009) 271<strong>–</strong>272<br />

TAMMARO, V., Parva Posidippea. 150 (2004) 48<br />

TANSEY, P., The Perils of Prosopography: The Case of the Cornelii Dolabellae. 130 (2000) 265<strong>–</strong>271<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A New Reading in the ‘fasti augurum’. 144 (2003) 245<strong>–</strong>253<br />

<strong>–</strong>, L. Sempronius Atratinus Aug. Imp. 165 (2008) 304<strong>–</strong>306<br />

<strong>–</strong>, C. Marius and the fasti of Urbs Salvia. 177 (2011) 275<strong>–</strong>276<br />

TATSCHEVA, M., Über die Chorothesie aus Dionysopolis (Thracia), IGBulg V 5011. 136 (2001) 77<strong>–</strong>84<br />

TAYLOR, M. C., A Fourth-Century Honorary Decree of the Athenian Demos on Salamis. 107 (1995) 289<strong>–</strong>295<br />

<strong>–</strong>, When the Peiraieus and the City are Reunited. 123 (1998) 207<strong>–</strong>212<br />

TCHERNETSKA, N., New Fragments of Hyperides from the Archimedes Palimpsest. 154 (2005) 1<strong>–</strong>6<br />

TCHERNETSKA, N. <strong>–</strong> HANDLEY, E. W. <strong>–</strong> AUSTIN, C. <strong>–</strong> HORVÁTH, L., New Readings in the Fragment of Hyperides’ Against Timandros from the<br />

Archimedes Palimpsest. 162 (2007) 1<strong>–</strong>4<br />

TEKOĞLU, R. <strong>–</strong> KORKUT, T., Grabinschriften aus Pamphylien und Lykien. 143 (2003) 105<strong>–</strong>116<br />

TELÒ, M., Eupoli, Solone e l’adulterio. Una proposta per la persona loquens di Eup. fr. <strong>101</strong> K.<strong>–</strong>A. (= P. Oxy. 863). 146 (2004) 1<strong>–</strong>12<br />

TEMELKOSKI, D. <strong>–</strong> JUHEL, P., Fragments de «boucliers macédoniens» au nom du roi Démétrios trouvés à Staro Bonče (République de Macédoine).<br />

Rapport préliminaire et présentation épigraphique. 162 (2007) 165<strong>–</strong>180<br />

TEPEDINO GUERRA, A., Rileggendo Iperide, C. Atenogene, col. VIII 2<strong>–</strong>16 (PLouvre 9331/10438). 113 (1996) 158<strong>–</strong>162<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nuove letture del Pap. Vat. Gr. 11 (Favorino, Sull’esilio). 131 (2000) 29<strong>–</strong>39<br />

THANHEISER, U. <strong>–</strong> BAGNALL, R. S. <strong>–</strong> WORP, K. A., Tiphagion. 122 (1998) 173<strong>–</strong><strong>181</strong><br />

THEODORIDIS, Chr., Ein literarisches Zeugnis für das Grabmal des Königs Philippos von Makedonien. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 11<strong>–</strong>12<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zu Hesychios und den hellenistischen Dichtern. 134 (2001) 67<strong>–</strong>69<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eine unbeachtete Buchangabe zum Bruchstück des Philochoros über die attischen Orgeonen. 138 (2002) 40<strong>–</strong>42<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Weitere Bemerkungen zum Onomastikon des Julius Pollux. 143 (2003) 71<strong>–</strong>78<br />

THÉRIAULT, G., Quelques remarques sur le culte d’un magistrat romain à Thespies. 168 (2009) 183<strong>–</strong>186<br />

THEURILLAT, Th. <strong>–</strong> KENZELMANN PFYFFER, A. <strong>–</strong> VERDAN, S., Graffiti d’époque géométrique provenant du sanctuaire d’Apollon Daphnéphoros à<br />

Erétrie. 151 (2005) 51<strong>–</strong>83<br />

THIEDE, C. P., Papyrus Magdalen Greek 17 (Gregory-Aland ∏ 64 ). A Reappraisal. 105 (1995) 13<strong>–</strong>20<br />

van THIEL, H., Der Homertext in Alexandria. 115 (1997) 13<strong>–</strong>36<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Die D-Scholien der Ilias in den Handschriften. 132 (2000) 1<strong>–</strong>62<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Homerpapyri und ihre „Lesungen“. 142 (2003) 1<strong>–</strong>2<br />

THISSEN, H.-J., Kmhf <strong>–</strong> ein verkannter Gott. 112 (1996) 153<strong>–</strong>160<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Plutarch und die ägyptische Sprache. 168 (2009) 97<strong>–</strong>106<br />

THOMAS, J. D., The Consular Date in P. Ryl. IV 616. 115 (1997) 194<strong>–</strong>196<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Diocletian’s Birthday and Date of Accession: P. Mich. inv. 5298a Reconsidered. 128 (1999) 161<strong>–</strong>164<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Note on a Subscriptio in P. Harr. II 228. 146 (2004) 179<strong>–</strong><strong>181</strong><br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Date and Provenance of SB XIV 11908. 151 (2005) 141<strong>–</strong>143<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Date of P. Fouad 62. 151 (2005) 144<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Prefectorial subscriptio in P. Mich. XIV 675 = SB XVI 12994. 160 (2007) 205<strong>–</strong>208<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Note on SB X 10728 and Some Uses of suntãssv. 160 (2007) 208<strong>–</strong>210<br />

THOMAS, O., Ephebes Reunited: A New Edition of IG II 2 1967. 157 (2006) 71<strong>–</strong>76<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Charting the Atlantic with Hesiod and Hellanicus. 160 (2007) 15<strong>–</strong>23<br />

THOMPSON, D. J. <strong>–</strong> CLARYSSE, W., A Ptolemaic Census Declaration from the Alexandria Museum. 140 (2002) 203<strong>–</strong>205<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Two Greek Texts on Skin from Hellenistic Bactria. 159 (2007) 273<strong>–</strong>279<br />

THONEMANN, P. J., Charias on the Acropolis. 144 (2003) 123<strong>–</strong>124<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Inscriptions from Kerkyra and Leukas. 145 (2003) 114<strong>–</strong>116<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Date of Lucullus’ Quaestorship. 149 (2004) 80<strong>–</strong>82<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Ptolemaic Decree from Kourion. 165 (2008) 87<strong>–</strong>95<br />

THORNE, R. E. <strong>–</strong> POWERS, J. <strong>–</strong> DIMITROVA, N. <strong>–</strong> HUANG, R. <strong>–</strong> SMILGIES, D.-M. <strong>–</strong> BILDERBACK, D. H. <strong>–</strong> CLINTON, K., X-ray Fluorescence<br />

Recovers Writing from Ancient Inscriptions. 152 (2005) 221<strong>–</strong>227<br />

TIDEMANDSEN, P., A Revision of P. Oslo inv. 1525. 128 (1999) 165<strong>–</strong>166<br />

TIMOFAN, A. <strong>–</strong> CIONGRADI, C. <strong>–</strong> BÂRCĂ, V., Eine neue Erwähnung des kastellum Starva in einer Inschrift aus Alburnus maior. Studium zu<br />

epigraphisch bezeugten kastella und vici im dakischen Goldbergwerksgebiet. 165 (2008) 249<strong>–</strong>266<br />

TJÄDER, J.-O. <strong>–</strong> SALOMONS, R. P. <strong>–</strong> WORP, K. A., Completio of a Deed of Donation. 123 (1998) 151<strong>–</strong>157


54 Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff.<br />

TODISCO, E., Una vallis immunis nell’agro bresciano. 134 (2001) 239<strong>–</strong>250<br />

TOMLIN, R. S. O., Sede in tuo loco: A Fourth Century Uterine Phylactery in Latin from Roman Britain. 115 (1997) 291<strong>–</strong>294<br />

<strong>–</strong>, An Early Third-Century Alimentary Foundation. 129 (2000) 287<strong>–</strong>292<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Flavian Municipal Law: One or Two More Copies. 141 (2002) 281<strong>–</strong>284<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Bilingual Roman Charm for Health and Victory. 149 (2004) 259<strong>–</strong>266<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Prefect of the Misene Fleet in 218: A Note to RMD III 192. 154 (2005) 271<strong>–</strong>274<br />

<strong>–</strong>, ‘Remain Like Stones, Unmoving, Un-running’: Another Greek Spell Against Competitors in a Foot-race. 160 (2007) 161<strong>–</strong>166<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Paedagogium and septizonium: Two Roman Lead Tablets from Leicester. 167 (2008) 207<strong>–</strong>218<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Special Delivery: A Graeco-Roman Gold Amulet for Healthy Childbirth. 167 (2008) 219<strong>–</strong>224<br />

TORALLAS TOVAR, S. <strong>–</strong> HAGEDORN, D. <strong>–</strong> WORP, K. A., P. Monts. Roca inv. 65 verso Again. 160 (2007) <strong>181</strong><strong>–</strong>182<br />

TORALLAS TOVAR, S. <strong>–</strong> WORP, K. A., An Official mna Weight at the Museum Biblicum, Montserrat. 155 (2006) 188<strong>–</strong>190<br />

TORELLI, M. R., Iscrizioni latine inedite o malnote del Museo Provinciale di Potenza. 106 (1995) 280<strong>–</strong>296<br />

TORJUSSEN, S. S., An Inscribed Gold Olive Leaf from Daphniotissa, near Elis. 166 (2008) 151<strong>–</strong>152<br />

TOTTI-GEMÜND, M., Zu einer Harpokrates-Gemme. 108 (1995) 285<strong>–</strong>286<br />

TRACY, S. V., T. Calestrius Tiro Proconsul of Achaia? 116 (1997) 153<strong>–</strong>156<br />

<strong>–</strong>, IG II 2 2<strong>181</strong> + 1028. 124 (1998) 143<strong>–</strong>144<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Statue Bases of Praxiteles Found in Athens. 167 (2008) 27<strong>–</strong>32<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Line 6 of IG II 2 1334 Revisited. 179 (2011) 139<strong>–</strong>140<br />

TRACY, S. V. <strong>–</strong> BARDANI, V., A New List of Athenian Ephebes and a New Archon of Athens. 163 (2007) 75<strong>–</strong>80<br />

TRACY, S. V. <strong>–</strong> MA, J., Notes on Attic Statue Bases. 150 (2004) 121<strong>–</strong>126<br />

TRAILL, A., Notes on Menander, Perikeiromene 715<strong>–</strong>717 and Misoumenos 698<strong>–</strong>9. 159 (2007) 43<strong>–</strong>44<br />

TRAILL, J. S., The Athenian Archon Pleistainos. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 109<strong>–</strong>114<br />

TRÄNKLE, H., Entstehungszeit und Verfasserschaft des Corpus Priapeorum. 124 (1998) 145<strong>–</strong>156<br />

TREVETT, J. C., Nikias and Syracuse. 106 (1995) 246<strong>–</strong>248<br />

TRIBULATO, O., ÖAnvrow (CEG 117, 171, 718, 734, et alia). Some Considerations on the Language of Archaic Stone Epigrams. 168 (2009) 41<strong>–</strong>53<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Stone-Cutter’s Bilingual Inscription from Palermo (IG XIV 297 = CIL X 7296): A New Interpretation. 177 (2011) 131<strong>–</strong>140<br />

TRNKA-AMRHEIN, Y. <strong>–</strong> CIOFFI, R., What’s in a Name? Further Similarities between Lollianos’ Phoinikika and Apuleius’ Metamorphoses. 173<br />

(2010) 66<strong>–</strong>68<br />

TRUMPF, J., Pap. Berl. 21266 <strong>–</strong> ein Beleg für die historische Quelle des griechischen Alexanderromans? 155 (2006) 85<strong>–</strong>90<br />

TRÜMPY, C., Feste zur Vollmondszeit: Die religiösen Feiern Attikas im Monatslauf und der vorgeschichtliche attische Kultkalender. 121 (1998) 109<strong>–</strong><br />

115<br />

TSAGALIS, Chr. C., CEG 594 and Euripides’ Erechtheus. 162 (2007) 9<strong>–</strong>13<br />

TSAKMAKIS, A., Nikandros, Schauspieler des Aristophanes? (Diogenes von Babylon bei Philodemos, per‹ mousik∞w). 119 (1997) 7<strong>–</strong>12<br />

TSANTSANOGLOU, K., Callimachus Aetia fr. 1.7<strong>–</strong>12, Once Again. 163 (2007) 27<strong>–</strong>36<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Sappho, Tithonus Poem: Two Cruces (Lines 7 and 10). 168 (2009) 1<strong>–</strong>2<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Sappho on her Funeral Day: P.Colon. 21351.1<strong>–</strong>8. 170 (2009) 1<strong>–</strong>7<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Two Obscene Vase-Inscriptions. 173 (2010) 32<strong>–</strong>34<br />

<strong>–</strong>, ΕΧΕΜΒΡΟΤΟΣ ΑΡΚΑΣ. 176 (2011) 39<strong>–</strong>44<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Statue of Philitas. 180 (<strong>2012</strong>) 104<strong>–</strong>116<br />

TSATSAKI, N. <strong>–</strong> MARTÍNEZ FERNÁNDEZ, Á. <strong>–</strong> KAPRANOS, N., Una inscripción inédita de Chamalevri, Creta. 157 (2006) 87<strong>–</strong>94<br />

TUBACH, J., Mani und der palmyrenische Kaufmann aus Forat. 106 (1995) 165<strong>–</strong>169<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nochmals Addas-Adeimantos. 106 (1995) 170<strong>–</strong>174<br />

TUITE, K. <strong>–</strong> HARRIS, E. M., Notes on a Horos from the Athenian Agora. 131 (2000) <strong>101</strong><strong>–</strong>105<br />

TULLY, G. D., The stratãrxhw of Legio VI Ferrata and the Employment of Camp Prefects as Vexillation Commanders. 120 (1998) 226<strong>–</strong>232<br />

TUNNY, J. A., Ptolemy “the Son” Reconsidered: Are there too Many Ptolemies? 131 (2000) 83<strong>–</strong>92<br />

TWARDECKI, A., Eine unpublizierte griechische Inschrift aus Warschau. 102 (<strong>1994</strong>) 307<strong>–</strong>309<br />

TZIAFALIAS, A. <strong>–</strong> DECOURT, J.-Cl., Une liste civique à Crannon: la stèle dite des Ménandridai. 137 (2001) 139<strong>–</strong>152<br />

UCCIARDELLO, G., Nota di lettura a Pind. fr. 335 M. 131 (2000) 155<strong>–</strong>157<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Sapph. frr. 88 e 159 V. in POxy. LXIV 4411. 136 (2001) 167<strong>–</strong>168<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Su due frammenti lirici adespoti (P. Oxy. XXXII 2631 = S 454 SLG; P. Oxy. IV 674 = Pind. fr. 338 M.). 149 (2004) 29<strong>–</strong>34<br />

<strong>–</strong>, In margine a P. Oxy. XXXII 2637, fr. 33 (= S 233 PMGF). 149 (2004) 35<strong>–</strong>37<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Single Scribe in P. Oxy. IV 660 + P. Oxy. XXIII 2623 + PSI inv. 1907 (Choral Lyric: Simonides?). 160 (2007) 4<strong>–</strong>14<br />

ULJAS, S., A Hitherto Unattested Section of Sahidic Old Testament. 173 (2010) 63<strong>–</strong>65<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Leaf of the Coptic Martyrdom of Ptolemy in Cambridge. 178 (2011) 179<strong>–</strong>184<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Fragment of the Life of Moses of Abydos in the British Library. 179 (2011) 117<strong>–</strong>122<br />

ULLMANN, L., Two Ostraca with the Niceno-Constantinopolitan Creed in the Israel Museum. 113 (1996) 191<strong>–</strong>196<br />

URANO, S., Kolletiones and frumentarii: New Readings of TAM 3, 1417<strong>–</strong>1418. Two Petitionary Inscriptions from Ağabey Köy and Mendechora. 176<br />

(2011) 179<strong>–</strong>188<br />

VACANTE, S., Un frammento di stele monumentale da Mitilene (IG XII 2, 8): confronti e ipotesi di datazione. 174 (2010) 85<strong>–</strong>88<br />

VAGENHEIM, G. <strong>–</strong> CUVIGNY, H., Un «faux» sur porphyre: avatars et aventures de la stèle de Théra honorant le gymnasiarque Batôn (IG XII 3, 331,<br />

153 av. J.-C.). 151 (2005) 105<strong>–</strong>126<br />

VALENTE, St., Sul significato di glvsshmatik«w in Timeo Sofista. 170 (2009) 65<strong>–</strong>72<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Greek<strong>–</strong>Latin Fragment of the ‘erweiterte Synagoge’ in ms. Arund. 9 F. 55 r . <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>) 54<strong>–</strong>60<br />

VALERIO, F., Ancora su Bacch. 5.151. 175 (2010) 3<strong>–</strong>4<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nota testuale su un’iscrizione tardo-antica da Gerasa (SGO 21/23/03). 179 (2011) 116<br />

VANDORPE, K., A Greek Register from Pathyris’ Notarial Office. Loans and Sales from the Pathyrite and Latopolite Nomes. 150 (2004) 161<strong>–</strong>186<br />

VAN HAEPEREN, F., Réflexions sur les dendrophores de Pouzzoles, à partir de CIL X 3699. 172 (2010) 259<strong>–</strong>266<br />

VAN ’T WOUT, P. E., Neglected Evidence for the Nature of ἀτιµία. Agora P 17615 and DTA 107. 176 (2011) 126<strong>–</strong>134<br />

VARDI, A., Gellius Against the Professors. 137 (2001) 41<strong>–</strong>54<br />

VEEN, CH. <strong>–</strong> ECK, W., Epigraphische Bronzefragmente aus Nijmegen. 175 (2010) 241<strong>–</strong>246<br />

VEKSINA, M., Zur Datierung der neuen Weihinschrift aus dem Oxos-Tempel. <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>) 108<strong>–</strong>116<br />

VELAZA, J., Iberisch eban, teban. 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 142<strong>–</strong>150


Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff. 55<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Dos nuevas aras votivas procedentes de Muzqui (Navarra). <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>) 260<strong>–</strong>262<br />

VELAZA, J. <strong>–</strong> MEZQUÍRIZ, M. A., Un anillo infantil con inscripción griega procedente de Andelo (Muruzábal de Andión, Navarra). 152 (2005) 171<strong>–</strong><br />

172<br />

VELAZA, J. <strong>–</strong> RIPOLLÈS, P. P., Saguntum, colonia Latina. 141 (2002) 285<strong>–</strong>291<br />

VELÁZQUEZ, I. <strong>–</strong> CURBERA, J. B. <strong>–</strong> SIERRA DELAGE, M., A Bilingual Curse Tablet from Barchín del Hoyo (Cuenca, Spain). 125 (1999) 279<strong>–</strong>283<br />

VENDRUSCOLO, F., Pindaro, Threnoi fr. 129,10<strong>–</strong>11 Snell<strong>–</strong>Maehler. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 16<strong>–</strong>18<br />

VENTURA VILLANUEVA, Á., Fasti Duovirales Coloniae Augustae Emeritae: Reflexiones sobre la concepción, gestación y nacimiento de la ciudad de<br />

Mérida. 170 (2009) 215<strong>–</strong>246<br />

VERDAN, S. <strong>–</strong> KENZELMANN PFYFFER, A. <strong>–</strong> THEURILLAT, Th., Graffiti d’époque géométrique provenant du sanctuaire d’Apollon Daphnéphoros à<br />

Erétrie. 151 (2005) 51<strong>–</strong>83<br />

VERDEJO MANCHADO, J. <strong>–</strong> ANTELA-BERNÁRDEZ, B., IG II 2 1334: A Crown for Onaso and the Archon Athenion. 177 (2011) 91<strong>–</strong>96<br />

VERGADOS, A., Hesiod, Hellanikos und Hermes (zu <strong>ZPE</strong> 160, 2007, 15<strong>–</strong>23). 175 (2010) 20<strong>–</strong>21<br />

di VEROLI, P., Nuovi eponimi della Sicilia ellenistica. 110 (1996) 309<strong>–</strong>310<br />

VERRETH, H., A Coastal Road in the Northern Sinai in P. Oxy. XLII 3011? 126 (1999) 223<strong>–</strong>224<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Kasion, Kasiotes and Kasiotikos. 158 (2006) 235<strong>–</strong>239<br />

VERRETH, H. <strong>–</strong> GOLDFUS, H., A Greek Magical(?) Ostrakon from Elousa (Haluza). 128 (1999) 150<strong>–</strong>152<br />

VERVAET, F. J. <strong>–</strong> DART, C. J., The Significance of the Naval Triumph in Roman History (260<strong>–</strong>29 BCE). 176 (2011) 267<strong>–</strong>280<br />

VIAN, F., L’histoire d’Astérios le Crétois: Nonnos tributaire des Bassariques de Dionysios? 122 (1998) 71<strong>–</strong>78<br />

VINCI, M., Un nuovo epitaffio in greco della Sicilia di età alto-imperiale e il formulario con gli epiteti xrhstÚw ka‹ êmemptow. 162 (2007) 188<strong>–</strong>192<br />

VINE, B., Remarks on the Archaic Latin “Garigliano Bowl” Inscription. 121 (1998) 257<strong>–</strong>262<br />

VINOGRADOV, J., Ein sprechender Lagynos aus Olbia Pontica. 121 (1998) 149<strong>–</strong>152<br />

VINOGRADOV, J. <strong>–</strong> RUSJAEVA, A. S., Phantasmomagica Olbiopolitana. 121 (1998) 153<strong>–</strong>164<br />

VINSON, S., PaktoËn and pãktvsiw as Ship-Construction Terminology in Herodotus, Pollux and Documentary Papyri. 113 (1996) 197<strong>–</strong>204<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Grenf. II, 23: A New Edition. 121 (1998) 197<strong>–</strong>202<br />

VLASSOPOULOS, K., Athenian Slave Names and Athenian Social History. 175 (2010) 113<strong>–</strong>144<br />

van der VLIET, J., Cologne Coptic Magical Texts: Some Notes and Corrections. 122 (1998) 119<strong>–</strong>122<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Coptic Charitesion (P. Gieben Copt. 1). 153 (2005) 131<strong>–</strong>140<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Parerga: Notes on Christian Inscriptions from Egypt and Nubia. 164 (2008) 153<strong>–</strong>158<br />

van der VLIET, J. <strong>–</strong> ŁAJTAR, A., Rome <strong>–</strong> Meroe <strong>–</strong> Berlin. The Southernmost Latin Inscription Rediscovered (CIL III 83). 157 (2006) 193<strong>–</strong>198<br />

VOCKE, H., Papyrus Magdalen 17 <strong>–</strong> weitere Argumente gegen die Frühdatierung des angeblichen Jesus-Papyrus. 113 (1996) 153<strong>–</strong>157<br />

VOIŞIAN, V. <strong>–</strong> CIONGRADI, C. <strong>–</strong> BOTA, E., Eine Konstitution für die Hilfstruppen von Dacia Porolissensis aus dem Jahr 128 n. Chr. 170 (2009) 207<strong>–</strong><br />

214<br />

VOLOKHINE, Y. <strong>–</strong> SÁNCHEZ, P. <strong>–</strong> SCHUBERT, P., Une dédicace grecque de l’époque impériale tardive trouvée à Hermonthis (Ermant, Haute-<br />

Égypte). 174 (2010) 127<strong>–</strong>132<br />

VÖSSING, K., Schreiben lernen, ohne lesen zu können? Zur Methode des antiken Elementarunterrichts. 123 (1998) 121<strong>–</strong>125<br />

<strong>–</strong>, CIL IV 7698 und die Bedeutung von mappa (Varro ling. 9,47 und Hor. epist. 1,5,22). 137 (2001) 35<strong>–</strong>40<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Vor dem Nachtisch oder nach Tisch? Zum Opfer beim römischen Bankett. 146 (2004) 53<strong>–</strong>59<br />

VOUTIRAS, E., Wortkarge Söldner? Ein Interpretationsvorschlag zum neuen Poseidippos. 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 27<strong>–</strong>31<br />

WACHTEL, K., ∏ 64/67 : Fragmente des Matthäusevangeliums aus dem 1. Jahrhundert? 107 (1995) 73<strong>–</strong> 80<br />

WACHTEL, K. <strong>–</strong> ECK, W., Die Prosopographia Imperii Romani im Internet. 125 (1999) 232<br />

WACHTER, R., „Oral Poetry“ in ungewohntem Kontext: Hinweise auf mündliche Dichtungstechnik in den pompejanischen Wandinschriften. 121<br />

(1998) 73<strong>–</strong>89<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein schwieriges rhodisches Graffito. 121 (1998) 90<strong>–</strong>93<br />

<strong>–</strong>, êWanaj im Sinne von ênarxow? Ein möglicher Hinweis auf das Fortleben des mykenischen Herrschertitels auf der Peloponnes. 130 (2000) 1<strong>–</strong>7<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ariston weihte drei Töchter. 142 (2003) 53<strong>–</strong>63<br />

<strong>–</strong>, BA - BE - BH - BI - BO - BU - BV . . . Zur Geschichte des elementaren Schreibunterrichts bei den Griechen, Etruskern und Venetern. 146 (2004) 61<strong>–</strong>74<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Annex zu Fragment 3 der Graffiti von Eretria. 151 (2005) 84<strong>–</strong>86<br />

WACHTER, R. <strong>–</strong> CORFÙ, N., Eine böotische Scherbe mit Graffito. 179 (2011) 141<strong>–</strong>144<br />

WAEBENS, S., Reflecting the “Change in A.D. 140”: The Veteran Categories of the epikrisis Documents Revisited. 180 (<strong>2012</strong>) 267<strong>–</strong>277<br />

WAGMAN, R., Restorations on the Epidaurian Hymns. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) <strong>101</strong><strong>–</strong>102<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Un devoto del dio Sole ad Epidauro. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 103<strong>–</strong>105<br />

WAGMAN, R. <strong>–</strong> BOZIA, E. <strong>–</strong> SANGCO, G., A New Dedication by Diogenes and Other Unpublished Inscriptions from Epidauros. 160 (2007) 120<strong>–</strong>122<br />

WAGMAN, R. <strong>–</strong> NICHOLS, A., Three Perirrhanteria from the Epidaurian Asclepieum. 155 (2006) 137<strong>–</strong>138<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Minima Epidaurica. 158 (2006) 187<strong>–</strong>189<br />

WAGMAN, R. <strong>–</strong> STEINBACH, M., Votive Perirrhanteria from Epidauros: Anecdota and Revisions. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 106<strong>–</strong>108<br />

WAGNER, G., Les stèles funéraires de Kom Abu Bellou (BSAA 44, 1991, 169<strong>–</strong>200). <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 113<strong>–</strong>119<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Une petite stèle au nom d’un gymnasiarque. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 173<strong>–</strong>176<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Une épigramme funéraire de Kom Abu Bellou: l’épitaphe métrique de Marcella, morte à 6 ans. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 177<strong>–</strong>180<br />

<strong>–</strong>, ÉOstç fo¤nikow. 105 (1995) 161<strong>–</strong>165<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Épitaphe d’une prophétesse d’Ammon. 106 (1995) 123<strong>–</strong>125<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Deux inscriptions grecques d’Égypte. 106 (1995) 126<strong>–</strong>130<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Kôm Ombo, Second Preliminary Report. 107 (1995) 121<strong>–</strong>125<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Les inscriptions grecques d’Aïn Labakha (stèles <strong>–</strong> graffites <strong>–</strong> depinti). 111 (1996) 97<strong>–</strong>114<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nouvelles inscriptions funéraires grecques de Kom Abu Bellou. 114 (1996) 115<strong>–</strong>140<br />

WAGNER, G. <strong>–</strong> HUSSEIN, A., Une dédicace grecque du grand Temple d’Esment el-Kharab. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 109<strong>–</strong>112<br />

WAGNER, G. <strong>–</strong> RONDOT, V., Une dédicace au roi Ptolémée de la part d’un Alexandrin. 103 (<strong>1994</strong>) 250<strong>–</strong>252<br />

WALBANK, M. B., Sales of Property in Attica: New Readings in IG II 2 , 1593. 107 (1995) 69<strong>–</strong>72<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Two Notes on Leases of Sacred Property in Attica. 116 (1997) 39<strong>–</strong>40<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes on Attic Decrees. 139 (2002) 61<strong>–</strong>65<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Dihippos Myrrhinousios (<strong>ZPE</strong> 137, 113<strong>–</strong>116). 140 (2002) 71<strong>–</strong>72<br />

WALBANK, M. E. H., What’s in a Name? Corinth under the Flavians. 139 (2002) 251<strong>–</strong>264<br />

WALLACE, M. B.(†) with FIGUEIRA, T. J., Notes on the Island phoros. 172 (2010) 65<strong>–</strong>69


56 Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff.<br />

WALLACE, R. E., Etruscan Inscriptions on an Attic Kylix in The J. Paul Getty Museum: Addenda et Corrigenda. 111 (1996) 291<strong>–</strong>294<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Faliscan Inscription in the Michael and Judy Steinhardt Collection. 153 (2005) 175<strong>–</strong>182<br />

WALLNER, Chr., Der olympische Agon von Bostra. 129 (2000) 97<strong>–</strong>107<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zur Agonistik von Gaza. 135 (2001) 125<strong>–</strong>135<br />

WALTHALL, D. A., Magistrate Stamps on Grain Measures in Early Hellenistic Sicily. 179 (2011) 159<strong>–</strong>169<br />

WALTON, C., Foreign Judges in the Hellenistic Cyclades. 157 (2006) 117<strong>–</strong>123<br />

WANKEL, H., Zur Datierung des Eisangeliegesetzes: Aristophanes, Frösche 362 und 367. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 19<strong>–</strong>23<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zu dem neuen Yale Papyrus mit Demosthenes 8,6. 102 (<strong>1994</strong>) 194<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zu Nausikles PA 10552. 109 (1995) 42<strong>–</strong>44<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zum Aischinestext (mit den neuen Papyri). 113 (1996) 27<strong>–</strong>34<br />

WARD, W. D., ‘In the Province Recently Called Palestine Salutaris’: Provincial Changes in Palestine and Arabia in the Late Third and Fourth Centuries<br />

C.E. <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>) 289<strong>–</strong>302<br />

WARGA, R. G., A Vintage Account. 133 (2000) 203<strong>–</strong>204<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Mich. Inv. 1884 Revisited. 136 (2001) 194<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Texts from the Spurlock Collection. 139 (2002) 187<strong>–</strong>188<br />

WATT, W. S., A Note on the New Passage of Tiberius Claudius Donatus. 121 (1998) 67<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes on Quintilian, Institutio oratoria. 121 (1998) 68<strong>–</strong>71<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Four Notes on Latin Verse Inscriptions. 127 (1999) 66<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Notes on Catullus. 131 (2000) 65<strong>–</strong>68<br />

WAYMENT, T. <strong>–</strong> BAY, S. <strong>–</strong> BEARMAN, G. <strong>–</strong> MACFARLANE, R., Multi-Spectral Imaging vs. Monospectral Infrared Imaging. 173 (2010) 211<strong>–</strong>217<br />

WEAVER, B., P.Jen. inv. 266 and Metrical/Textual Problems at Eur. Bacchae 64<strong>–</strong>69. 171 (2009) 5<strong>–</strong>8<br />

WEAVER, P., Indicating Status in the Dedication by L. Aufidius Aprilis (NdS 29, 1975, 224 = AE 1977, 25). 122 (1998) 235<strong>–</strong>237<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Imperial Slaves and Freedmen in the Brick Industry. 122 (1998) 238<strong>–</strong>246<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nero manumissor impubes: The Case of Domitius Lemnus. 146 (2004) 202<strong>–</strong>204<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Oxy. 3312 and Joining the Household of Caesar. 149 (2004) 196<strong>–</strong>204<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Phaon, Freedman of Nero. 151 (2005) 243<strong>–</strong>252<br />

WEBER, E., Eine neue Inschrift für C. oder L. Caesar aus Rom. 164 (2008) 245<strong>–</strong>247<br />

WEBER, M. <strong>–</strong> GEISSEN, A., Untersuchungen zu den ägyptischen Nomenprägungen. 144 (2003) 277<strong>–</strong> 300<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Untersuchungen zu den ägyptischen Nomenprägungen II. 147 (2004) 259<strong>–</strong>280<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Untersuchungen zu den ägyptischen Nomenprägungen III. 149 (2004) 283<strong>–</strong>306<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Untersuchungen zu den ägyptischen Nomenprägungen IV. 151 (2005) 279<strong>–</strong>305<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Untersuchungen zu den ägyptischen Nomenprägungen V. 153 (2005) 291<strong>–</strong>316<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Untersuchungen zu den ägyptischen Nomenprägungen VI. 155 (2006) 271<strong>–</strong>300<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Untersuchungen zu den ägyptischen Nomenprägungen VII. 157 (2006) 277<strong>–</strong>304<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Untersuchungen zu den ägyptischen Nomenprägungen VIII. 158 (2006) 271<strong>–</strong>300<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Untersuchungen zu den ägyptischen Nomenprägungen IX. 160 (2007) 275<strong>–</strong>300<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Untersuchungen zu den ägyptischen Nomenprägungen X. 164 (2008) 277<strong>–</strong>305<br />

WEGNER, W., Zu den Fischereiabgaben in Soknopaiu Nesos. 165 (2008) 161<strong>–</strong>168<br />

WEINBERG, R. J. <strong>–</strong> SOSIN, J. D. <strong>–</strong> JOHNSON, P. B. <strong>–</strong> OATES, J. F., Reading Invisible Ink: Digital Imaging of P. Duk. inv. 716. 127 (1999) 127<strong>–</strong>130<br />

WEISER, W., Namen römischer Statthalter auf Münzen Kleinasiens. Corrigenda und Addenda zu Gerd Stumpfs Münzcorpus. 123 (1998) 275<strong>–</strong>290<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nomisma exitelon und nummi restituti. Die Währungspolitik des Traianus (98<strong>–</strong>117) in Realität und moderner Fiktion. 125 (1999) 233<strong>–</strong>242<br />

WEISER, W. <strong>–</strong> COTTON, H. M., „Gebt dem Kaiser, was des Kaisers ist . . .“ Die Geldwährungen der Griechen, Juden, Nabatäer und Römer im syrischnabatäischen<br />

Raum. 114 (1996) 237<strong>–</strong>287<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Neues zum „Tyrischen Silbergeld“ herodianischer und römischer Zeit. 139 (2002) 235<strong>–</strong>250<br />

WEISS, A., Limocincti in Irni. Zur Ergänzung des Duumvirnparagraphen 18 der lex Irnitana. 135 (2001) 284<strong>–</strong>286<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Sergius Paullus, Statthalter von Zypern. 169 (2009) 188<strong>–</strong>192<br />

WEISS, P., Neue Militärdiplome. 117 (1997) 227<strong>–</strong>268<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein Diplom des Antoninus Pius für Moesia inferior von Dez. 145/Dez. 146. Zum Truppenbestand der Provinz nach der Okkupation Dakiens. 124<br />

(1998) 279<strong>–</strong>286<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Weitere Diplomfragmente von Moesia inferior. 124 (1998) 287<strong>–</strong>291<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein neuer Flottenpräfekt Hadrians. 126 (1999) 243<strong>–</strong>245<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zwei Diplome für Equites singulares Augusti, 222 und 223 n. Chr. 127 (1999) 239<strong>–</strong>245<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein Flottendiplom von 224 n. Chr. 127 (1999) 246<strong>–</strong>248<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zu Vicusangaben und qui-et-Namen auf Flottendiplomen des 3. Jh.s. 130 (2000) 279<strong>–</strong>285<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein Prätorianerdiplom Severus Alexanders auf einer wiederverwendeten Bronzetafel. 133 (2000) 283<strong>–</strong>285<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Das Konsulnpaar vom 7. April 145 n. Chr. Noch einmal zu den Auxilien von Moesia inferior und Thracia unter Antoninus Pius. 134 (2001) 261<strong>–</strong>266<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Neue ausgewählte Diplomfragmente. 134 (2001) 267<strong>–</strong>272<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein Fragment eines außergewöhnlichen Militärdiploms: Severus Alexander und Maximinus Thrax. 134 (2001) 273<strong>–</strong>276 (Corrigendum dazu: 135<br />

(2001) 194)<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Neue Flottendiplome für Thraker aus Antoninus Pius’ späten Jahren. 139 (2002) 219<strong>–</strong>226<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Caelius Optatus, cos. suff. 167 oder 168 n. Chr. 140 (2002) 253<strong>–</strong>256<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Neue Diplome für Soldaten des Exercitus Dacicus. 141 (2002) 241<strong>–</strong>251<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zwei vollständige Konstitutionen für die Truppen in Noricum (8. Sept. 79) und Pannonia inferior (27. Sept. 154). 146 (2004) 239<strong>–</strong>254<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein neuer Legat Domitians von Germania superior in einem Militärdiplom: Sex. Lusianus Proculus. 147 (2004) 229<strong>–</strong>234<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Neue Fragmente von Flottendiplomen des 2. Jahrhunderts n. Chr. Mit einem Beitrag zum Urkundenwert des Außentexts bei den Militärdiplomen. 150<br />

(2004) 243<strong>–</strong>252<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Neue Militärdiplome Domitians und Nervas für Soldaten Niedermösiens. Zur Rubrik dimisso honesta missione im Empfängerteil von Urkunden. 153<br />

(2005) 207<strong>–</strong>217<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eine Bürgerrechtskonstitution Trajans mit Einbeziehung eines Decurio. 155 (2006) 257<strong>–</strong>262<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Neue Militärdiplome für den Exercitus von Britannia. 156 (2006) 245<strong>–</strong>254<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Nichts Karisches, sondern ein spätes Litrengewicht aus Stein. 160 (2007) 272<strong>–</strong>274<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Weitere Militärdiplome für Soldaten in Mauretania Tingitana aus dem Balkanraum. 162 (2007) 249<strong>–</strong>256


Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff. 57<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein Militärdiplom Hadrians für Thracia. 163 (2007) 263<strong>–</strong>265<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Statthalter und Konsulndaten in neuen Militärdiplomen. 171 (2009) 231<strong>–</strong>252<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Auxiliardiplome für die dakischen Provinzen, Pannonia superior und eine provincia inermis. <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>) 183<strong>–</strong>201<br />

WEISS, P. <strong>–</strong> ECK, W., Tusidius Campester, cos. suff. unter Antoninus Pius, und die Fasti Ostienses der Jahre 141/142 n. Chr. 134 (2001) 251<strong>–</strong>260<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Die Sonderregelungen für Soldatenkinder seit Antoninus Pius. Ein niederpannonisches Militärdiplom vom 11. Aug. 146. 135 (2001) 195<strong>–</strong>208<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eine Konstitution für die Truppen Iudaeas aus dem Jahr 87. 170 (2009) 201<strong>–</strong>206<br />

WEISS, P. <strong>–</strong> HÜBNER, U., Eine neu entdeckte griechische Grabinschrift aus aṭ-Ṭurra in Nordjordanien. 161 (2007) 177<strong>–</strong>180<br />

WEISS, P. <strong>–</strong> SPEIDEL, M. P., Das erste Militärdiplom für Arabia. 150 (2004) 253<strong>–</strong>264<br />

WELWEI, K.-W., Zur „Herrschaftsterminologie“ in der Quadrupelallianz von 420 v. Chr. 111 (1996) 88<strong>–</strong>92<br />

WESCH-KLEIN, G., Bithynia, Pontus et Bithynia, Bithynia et Pontus <strong>–</strong> ein Provinzname im Wandel der Zeit. 136 (2001) 251<strong>–</strong>256<br />

WEST, M. L., Some Oriental Motifs in Archilochus. 102 (<strong>1994</strong>) 1<strong>–</strong>5<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Schwerlich Zufall. (2). 102 (<strong>1994</strong>) 6<strong>–</strong>7<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Fragment of Prometheus Lyomenos? 113 (1996) 21<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Berlin Corinna. 113 (1996) 22<strong>–</strong>23<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Sophocles with Music? Ptolemaic Music Fragments and Remains of Sophocles (Junior?), Achilleus. 126 (1999) 43<strong>–</strong>65<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Heniochus and the Shape of the Athenian Orchestra. 130 (2000) 12<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Fragmentary Homeric Hymn to Dionysus. 134 (2001) 1<strong>–</strong>11<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Dying one’s own Death: a Footnote. 143 (2003) 70<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Alcaeus’ Brother. 145 (2003) 6<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The New Sappho. 151 (2005) 1<strong>–</strong>9<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Archilochus and Telephos. 156 (2006) 11<strong>–</strong>17<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A New Musical Papyrus: Carcinus, Medea. 161 (2007) 1<strong>–</strong>10<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Rhapsodes at Festivals. 173 (2010) 1<strong>–</strong>13<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Rhapsodes at Festivals: Addenda. 174 (2010) 32<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Way of a Maid with a Moke: P. Oxy. 4762. 175 (2010) 33<strong>–</strong>40<br />

WEST, M. L. <strong>–</strong> PÖHLMANN, E., The Oldest Greek Papyrus and Writing Tablets: Fifth-Century Documents from the ‘Tomb of the Musician’ in Attica.<br />

180 (<strong>2012</strong>) 1<strong>–</strong>16<br />

WEST, St., Nestor’s Bewitching Cup. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 9<strong>–</strong>15<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Whose Baby? A Note on P. Oxy. 744. 121 (1998) 167<strong>–</strong>172<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Unremitting Activity: Herodotus’ Mycerinus and Zenon’s Correspondents. 123 (1998) 31<strong>–</strong>34<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Kerk¤dow paramÊyia? For whom did Chariton Write? 143 (2003) 63<strong>–</strong>69<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Mopsus’ Fair Copy (Vergil, Eclogues 5. 13<strong>–</strong>5). 175 (2010) 22<strong>–</strong>24<br />

WEST, W. C., The Decrees of Demosthenes’ Against Leptines. 107 (1995) 237<strong>–</strong>247<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Note on Greek Kitchenware for Eating Gruel. 179 (2011) 126<strong>–</strong>128<br />

WHEATLEY, P. V., The Year 22 Tetradrachms of Sidon and the Date of the Battle of Gaza. 144 (2003) 268<strong>–</strong>276<br />

WHITEHEAD, D., An Unpublished Greek (?)Tombstone in Northern Ireland. 109 (1995) 49<strong>–</strong>54<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The (?)‘Finest’ Place on the Athenian Acropolis. 118 (1997) 163<strong>–</strong>165<br />

<strong>–</strong>, IG I 3 174 and 175: One Decree or Two? 118 (1997) 165<strong>–</strong>169<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Athenian Standards Decree (IG I 3 1453): ‘The (?)Preceding Decree which Klearchos Proposed’. 118 (1997) 169<strong>–</strong>173<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Five (?)Unpublished Greek Inscriptions in H. P. Borrell’s Notebook. 131 (2000) 80<strong>–</strong>82. Addendum dazu: 132 (2000) 161<strong>–</strong>162<br />

WHITEHORNE, J., Posidippus 25 A<strong>–</strong>B and Ancient Life Expectancy. 162 (2007) 57<strong>–</strong>60<br />

WIBLÉ, F. <strong>–</strong> ABERSON, M., «Revigorer l’[âme?] épuisée»: fragments inédits d’une inscription métrique latine provenant de Martigny (Forum Claudii<br />

Vallensium). <strong>181</strong> (<strong>2012</strong>) 48<strong>–</strong>53<br />

WICKKISER, B. L., A Chariot for Asklepios: SEG 25.226. 168 (2009) 199<strong>–</strong>201<br />

<strong>–</strong>, IG II 2 4963 and the Priesthood of Asklepios in Athens. 179 (2011) 123<strong>–</strong>125<br />

WIEMER, H.-U., Die koische Opfergebotsliste Syll. 3 1000 <strong>–</strong> diagrapha oder nomos? 145 (2003) 117<strong>–</strong>122<br />

WILKINSON, K. W., Fragments of a Ptolemaic Thucydides Roll in the Beinecke Library. 153 (2005) 69<strong>–</strong>74<br />

WILLI, A., ‚Achäische‘ Wãnaktew in Süditalien. 140 (2002) 59<strong>–</strong>63<br />

WILLIAMS, A., The Law Concerning the Little Panathenaia and the Leasing of the Nea katå diklhr¤an. 167 (2008) 33<strong>–</strong>36<br />

WILLIAMS, F., Cercidas, Caelius, and Unsafe Sex: Tundar°oio gambrÒw (Cerc. fr. 2.28 Livrea). 102 (<strong>1994</strong>) 76<strong>–</strong>80<br />

<strong>–</strong>, In and out of the Rut: Callimachus fr. 1.25<strong>–</strong>28 and Anniceris of Cyrene. 110 (1996) 40<strong>–</strong>42<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Cercidas fr. 3 Liv.: Canine Language in a Cynic Poet? 139 (2002) 40<strong>–</strong>42<br />

WILLIAMS, M. H., The Organisation of Jewish Burials in Ancient Rome in the Light of Evidence from Palestine and the Diaspora. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 165<strong>–</strong>182<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Structure of Roman Jewry Re-considered <strong>–</strong> Were the Synagogues of Ancient Rome Entirely Homogeneous? 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 129<strong>–</strong>141<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Meaning and Function of Ioudaios in Graeco-Roman Inscriptions. 116 (1997) 249<strong>–</strong>262<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Jewish Use of Moses as a Personal Name in Graeco-Roman Antiquity <strong>–</strong> A Note. 118 (1997) 274<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Case for Jewish Use of Moses as a Personal Name in Graeco-Roman Antiquity. 140 (2002) 279<strong>–</strong>283<br />

WILLIAMS, M. <strong>–</strong> MARTINEZ, D., Records of Loan Receipts from a Guild Association. 118 (1997) 259<strong>–</strong>263<br />

WILSON, N. G., Maasiana on Herodotus. 179 (2011) 57<strong>–</strong>70<br />

WILSON, P., Amymon of Sikyon: A First Victory in Athens and a First Tragic Khoregic Dedication in the City? (SEG 23, 103b). 118 (1997) 174<strong>–</strong>178<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Choruses for Sale in Thorikos? A Speculative Note on SEG 34, 107. 161 (2007) 125<strong>–</strong>132<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Dionysos in Hagnous. 177 (2011) 79<strong>–</strong>89<br />

WILSON, P. <strong>–</strong> HARTWIG, A., IG I 3 102 and the Tradition of Proclaiming Honours at the Tragic Agon of the Athenian City Dionysia. 169 (2009) 17<strong>–</strong>27<br />

WINTERS, T. F., The Dates of the Dedications from the Athenian Akropolis. 107 (1995) 282<strong>–</strong>288<br />

WIRBELAUER, E., Zeus auf Salamis. 141 (2002) 125<strong>–</strong>128<br />

WOLICKI, A., A Note on Hesperia 58 (1989) No. 24. 112 (1996) 135<strong>–</strong>136<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Note on a Defixio from the Kerameikos (SEG 49.316). 180 (<strong>2012</strong>) 250<strong>–</strong>252<br />

WOODS, D., Grain Prices at Antioch again. 134 (2001) 233<strong>–</strong>238<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Flavius Felix and the signum of the numerus Divitiensium. 156 (2006) 242<strong>–</strong>244<br />

WORP, K. A., Zwei Papyri aus der Kairener Sammlung. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) <strong>101</strong><strong>–</strong>103<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Stras. 858: Eine Neu-Edition. 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 241<strong>–</strong>242<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zu einer neuen Edition einiger Kairener Inschriften. 105 (1995) 160


58 Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff.<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zwei neue Papyri aus der Kairener Sammlung. 106 (1995) 241<strong>–</strong>245<br />

<strong>–</strong>, EUGENESTATOS. 109 (1995) <strong>181</strong><strong>–</strong>186<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zur Datierung einiger Torzollquittungen aus Soknopaiu Nesos. 110 (1996) 156<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zum Datum von P. Vindob. Boswinkel 7. 110 (1996) 168<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Kaimiop≈lhw / Kemiop≈lhw. 112 (1996) 161<strong>–</strong>162<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Greek Papyrus and Two Mummy Labels from Durham, U. K. 113 (1996) 221<strong>–</strong>223<br />

<strong>–</strong>, ÖArjantew and politeuÒmenoi in Papyri from Graeco-Roman Egypt. 115 (1997) 201<strong>–</strong>220<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Bad. II 26,23.30 und P. Berl. Zill. 3,5. 118 (1997) 243<strong>–</strong>244<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Cair. inv. 10462: Ein neuer Asklepiades-Papyrus? 123 (1998) 158<strong>–</strong>160<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ein Apion-Maß? 127 (1999) 162<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Survey of èplç, di(di)plç and triplç Measures in the Papyri. 131 (2000) 145<strong>–</strong>149<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Note on P. Oxy. III 475.20. 133 (2000) 190<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Année Épigraphique 1996, 659: Evidence for an Unknown Consul? 133 (2000) 191<strong>–</strong>192<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Note on BGU I 140. 134 (2001) 182<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Date of O. Crum VC 111 and O. Bawit 56<strong>–</strong>58 & 62. 138 (2002) 121<strong>–</strong>122<br />

<strong>–</strong>, BGU XVII 2728 Again. 140 (2002) 164<br />

<strong>–</strong>, ÉAgkalidofÒrow. 141 (2002) 158<br />

<strong>–</strong>, On the Aureliate of Clergy and Monks. 151 (2005) 145<strong>–</strong>152<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Two Further Chronological Notes on Byzantine Documents. 151 (2005) 153<strong>–</strong>158<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Aorist Passive Stems With Middle Endings: Do They Really Exist? 156 (2006) 183<strong>–</strong>184<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Genova II 52: A Link with Hesychius? 156 (2006) 185<strong>–</strong>193<br />

<strong>–</strong>, OÈla¤ on Women’s Thighs? 170 (2009) 147<strong>–</strong>148<br />

<strong>–</strong>, A Note on the Use of Talents, Drachmas and Obols in Byzantine Egypt. 172 (2010) 167<strong>–</strong>174<br />

<strong>–</strong>, OÈla¤ on Women’s Knees. 173 (2010) 130<br />

WORP, K. A. <strong>–</strong> BAGNALL, R. S., Three Notes on Byzantine Documents. <strong>101</strong> (<strong>1994</strong>) 96<strong>–</strong>98<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Consulate of BGU XVII 2676. 142 (2003) 188<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Dating the Coptic Legal Documents from Aphrodite. 148 (2004) 247<strong>–</strong>252<br />

WORP, K. A. <strong>–</strong> BAGNALL, R. S. <strong>–</strong> THANHEISER, U., Tiphagion. 122 (1998) 173<strong>–</strong><strong>181</strong><br />

WORP, K. A. <strong>–</strong> BÜLOW-JACOBSEN, A. <strong>–</strong> CUVIGNY, H., Litura: éleifãw, not êleifar, and Other Words for ‘erasure’. 130 (2000) 175<strong>–</strong>182<br />

WORP, K. A. <strong>–</strong> DIJKSTRA, J. H. F., The Administrative Position of Omboi and Syene in Late Antiquity. 155 (2006) 183<strong>–</strong>187<br />

WORP, K. A. <strong>–</strong> GARDNER, I., Leaves from a Manichaean Codex. 117 (1997) 139<strong>–</strong>155<br />

WORP, K. A. <strong>–</strong> GASCOU, J., The Panopolitan Village Sunor¤a. 112 (1996) 163<strong>–</strong>164<br />

WORP, K. A. <strong>–</strong> GONIS, N., P. Bodl. I 77: The King of Kings in Arsinoe under Arab Rule. 141 (2002) 173<strong>–</strong>176<br />

WORP, K. A. <strong>–</strong> HAGEDORN, D., Das Wandeljahr im römischen Ägypten. 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 243<strong>–</strong>255<br />

<strong>–</strong>, VBP VI 170: Eine Neuedition. 118 (1997) 239<strong>–</strong>242<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Cair. inv. 10560: Monatsabrechnung einer Steuerbehörde (Rekto) und Aufstellung (Verso). 121 (1998) 185<strong>–</strong>191<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Neues zu der Papyrussammlung Gradenwitz. 128 (1999) 153<strong>–</strong>160<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Papyri aus der Sammlung Gradenwitz im Kloster Beuron. 134 (2001) 163<strong>–</strong>178<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Cair. inv. 10515: Pachtvertrag zum Zwecke des Anbaus von Weizen und Grünfutter. 135 (2001) 157<strong>–</strong>162<br />

<strong>–</strong>, SB X 10215 revidiert. 136 (2001) 145<strong>–</strong>147<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Eine Neuedition von SB XVIII 13287. 139 (2002) 155<strong>–</strong>157<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Greek Tax Receipts from Late-Byzantine Akoris. 140 (2002) 159<strong>–</strong>162<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Ostraka der Sammlung Kaufmann in Beuron. 146 (2004) 159<strong>–</strong>164<br />

WORP, K. A. <strong>–</strong> HAGEDORN, D. <strong>–</strong> TORALLAS TOVAR, S., P. Monts. Roca inv. 65 verso Again. 160 (2007) <strong>181</strong><strong>–</strong>182<br />

WORP, K. A. <strong>–</strong> de JONG, T., A Greek Horoscope From 373 A.D. 106 (1995) 235<strong>–</strong>240<br />

<strong>–</strong>, More Greek Horoscopes from Kellis (Dakleh Oasis). 137 (2001) 203<strong>–</strong>214<br />

WORP, K. A. <strong>–</strong> KRUIT, N., P. Bad. IV 55: Ein neuer Text. 137 (2001) 215<strong>–</strong>219<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Remarks on Some Texts from Akoris. 140 (2002) 155<strong>–</strong>158<br />

<strong>–</strong>, P. Giss. I 106 Revisited. 145 (2003) 229<strong>–</strong>230<br />

WORP, K. A. <strong>–</strong> MILLS, A. J., A Poll-Tax Receipt from El-Gedida (Dakleh Oasis). 133 (2000) 187<strong>–</strong> 189<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Four Greek Ostraka from Deir el-Hagar. 146 (2004) 155<strong>–</strong>158<br />

WORP, K. A. <strong>–</strong> MUHS, B., Yet More Duplicate Mummy Labels. 162 (2007) 213<strong>–</strong>214<br />

WORP, K. A. <strong>–</strong> NIELSEN, B., New Papyri from the New York University Collection: I. 133 (2000) 163<strong>–</strong>186<br />

<strong>–</strong>, New Papyri from the New York University Collection: II. 136 (2001) 125<strong>–</strong>144<br />

<strong>–</strong>, New Papyri from the New York University Collection: III. 140 (2002) 129<strong>–</strong>150<br />

<strong>–</strong>, New Papyri from the New York University Collection: IV. 149 (2004) 103<strong>–</strong>124<br />

WORP, K. A. <strong>–</strong> RÖMER, C. E. <strong>–</strong> DANIEL, R. W., Das Gebet zur Handauflegung bei Kranken in P. Barc. 155,19<strong>–</strong>156,5 und P. Kellis I 88. 119 (1997)<br />

128<strong>–</strong>131<br />

WORP, K. A. <strong>–</strong> SALOMONS, R. P. <strong>–</strong> TJÄDER, J.-O., Completio of a Deed of Donation. 123 (1998) 151<strong>–</strong>157<br />

WORP, K. A. <strong>–</strong> SIJPESTEIJN, P. J., P. Lond. inv. 2175: A Full Edition. 110 (1996) 175<strong>–</strong>182<br />

WORP, K. A. <strong>–</strong> SIRKS, A. B. J., „Tres faciunt collegium“. 104 (<strong>1994</strong>) 256<strong>–</strong>260<br />

WORP, K. A. <strong>–</strong> TORALLAS TOVAR, S., An Official mna Weight at the Museum Biblicum, Montserrat. 155 (2006) 188<strong>–</strong>190<br />

WÖRRLE, M. <strong>–</strong> COTTON, H. M., Seleukos IV to Heliodoros. A New Dossier of Royal Correspondence from Israel. 159 (2007) 191<strong>–</strong>205<br />

WORTHINGTON, I., The Date of Chaerephilus’ Citizenship. 130 (2000) 296<strong>–</strong>298<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Tod II 198 (Athenian Honours for Eudemus of Plataea): Which War? 137 (2001) 109<strong>–</strong>112<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Alexander the Great and the Greeks in 336? Another Reading of IG II 2 329. 147 (2004) 59<strong>–</strong>71<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Encore IG II 2 329. 162 (2007) 114<strong>–</strong>116<br />

YAKOBSON, A. <strong>–</strong> HORSTKOTTE, H., “Yes, quaestor.” A Republican Politician Versus the Power of the Clerks. 116 (1997) 247<strong>–</strong>248<br />

YATROMANOLAKIS, D., Simonides fr. eleg. 22 W 2 : To Sing or to Mourn? 120 (1998) 1<strong>–</strong>11 (Addendum dazu: 122 (1998) 5)<br />

<strong>–</strong>, When Two Fragments Meet: Sapph. fr. 22 V. 128 (1999) 23<strong>–</strong>24<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Contrapuntal Inscriptions. 152 (2005) 16<strong>–</strong>30


Autoren- und Titelverzeichnis <strong>ZPE</strong> <strong>101</strong> ff. 59<br />

YIFTACH, U., The Role of the Syngraphe “compiled through the Hierothytai”. A Reconsideration of W. Schubart’s Theory in Light of a Recently<br />

Published Alexandrian Marriage Contract (P. Berol. 25423). 115 (1997) 178<strong>–</strong>182<br />

YON, J.-B., Un relief de Palmyrène avec une inscription inédite. 169 (2009) 173<strong>–</strong>176<br />

YOUNES, A., Estampile sur col d’amphore africaine. 125 (1999) 259<strong>–</strong>260<br />

YOUNG, G. K., The Customs-Collector at the Nabataean Port of Leuke Kome (Periplus Maris Erythraei 19). 119 (1997) 266<strong>–</strong>268<br />

ZAGAGI, N., The Dramatic Function of ‘Speaking Back into the House’ in Menander’s Dyskolos. 148 (2004) 99<strong>–</strong>113<br />

ZAGO, G., Per il testo del De Stoicis di Filodemo (cap. 3, col. XIII,12ss. Dor.). 179 (2011) 89<strong>–</strong>91<br />

ZAGO, M., Un portrait de Pythagore dans la Liturgie de Mithra. 177 (2011) 53<strong>–</strong>56<br />

ZӐGREANU, R. <strong>–</strong> CIONGRADI, C., Ein Militärdiplom aus Gherla für die Truppen von Dacia Porolissensis. 179 (2011) 295<strong>–</strong>298<br />

ZAHARIADE, M., The Halmyris Tetrarchic Inscription. 119 (1997) 228<strong>–</strong>236<br />

ZAMBITO, L., La lastra di Modica (c.da Monte Margi). Una proposta di lettura. 154 (2005) 269<strong>–</strong>270<br />

ZAMBITO, L. <strong>–</strong> RIZZO, M. S., Novità epigrafiche siciliane. I bolli di contrada Cignana (Naro, Ag). 162 (2007) 271<strong>–</strong>277<br />

ZANKER, G., New Light on the Literary Category of ‘Ekphrastic Epigram’ in Antiquity: The New Posidippus (col. X 7 <strong>–</strong> XI 19 P. Mil. Vogl. VIII 309).<br />

143 (2003) 59<strong>–</strong>62<br />

ZAVARONI, A., L’iscrizione prelatina di Ortona. 149 (2004) 223<strong>–</strong>226<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Note sull’iscrizione italica di Rapino. 149 (2004) 227<strong>–</strong>231<br />

<strong>–</strong>, L’iscrizione italica in alfabeto acheo da Castelluccio sul Lao: nuova lettura e interpretazione. 153 (2005) 183<strong>–</strong>186<br />

ZECCHINI, G., Nosso di Alicarnasso. 128 (1999) 60<strong>–</strong>62<br />

ZELNICK-ABRAMOVITZ, R., The Xenodokoi of Thessaly. 130 (2000) 109<strong>–</strong>120<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Proxenoi of Western Greece. 147 (2004) 93<strong>–</strong>106<br />

<strong>–</strong>, The Phrase jenikª lÊsei in Manumission Inscriptions. 153 (2005) 108<strong>–</strong>112<br />

ZIEGLER, R., Bemerkungen zu verschiedenen Urkunden. 106 (1995) 189<strong>–</strong>194<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bemerkungen zur Datierung dokumentarischer Papyri und Ostraka. 114 (1996) 157<strong>–</strong>161<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bemerkungen zur Datierung von Urkunden. 125 (1999) 211<strong>–</strong>214<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Bemerkungen zur Datierung von Papyri und Ostraka. 128 (1999) 169<strong>–</strong>176<br />

ZIMMERMANN, K., P. Bingen 45: Eine Steuerbefreiung für Q. Cascellius, adressiert an Kaisarion. 138 (2002) 133<strong>–</strong>139<br />

ZIMMERMANN, M., Probus, Carus und die Räuber im Gebiet des pisidischen Termessos. 110 (1996) 265<strong>–</strong>277<br />

ZIOSI, F., Sulle iscrizioni relative alla ricostruzione di Cirene dopo il tumulus Iudaicus, e sul loro contesto. 172 (2010) 239<strong>–</strong>248<br />

ZOGRAPHAKI, V. <strong>–</strong> MARTÍNEZ FERNÁNDEZ, Á., Una inscripción funeraria de Camara (Creta). 139 (2002) 117<strong>–</strong>118<br />

ZOUMBAKI, S. B., Einblick in das spätantike Elis: Eine unpublizierte Inschrift zu Ehren des Prokonsuls Flavius Severus. 164 (2008) 123<strong>–</strong>130<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Der Name Seileas in Eleia. 173 (2010) 102<strong>–</strong>106<br />

ZSCHÄTZSCH, A., Eine neue Inschrift der republikanischen Zeit aus Grumentum. 141 (2002) 292<strong>–</strong> 294<br />

ZUBAR, V. M. <strong>–</strong> SARNOWSKI, T., Römische Besatzungstruppen auf der Südkrim und eine Bauinschrift aus dem Kastell Charax. 112 (1996) 229<strong>–</strong>234<br />

ZUCHTRIEGEL, G., Öffentliche Latrinen in der Astynomeninschrift von Pergamon. 167 (2008) 85<strong>–</strong>87<br />

ZUNINO, M. L., La sunbolã fra Oiantheia e Khaleion (IG IX 1 2 , 717): il diritto di sul•n. 153 (2005) 113<strong>–</strong>126<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Decidere in guerra <strong>–</strong> pensare alla pace. Il caso del ‘bronzo Pappadakis’ (IG IX 1 2 , 3, 609). 161 (2007) 157<strong>–</strong>169<br />

ZWIERLEIN, O., Eine Korruptel im hexastichischen Vers-Argumentum zu Stat. Theb. 1. 134 (2001) 52<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Augustins quantitierender Klauselrhythmus. 138 (2002) 43<strong>–</strong>70<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zur Methodik der emendatio in Ciceros Partitiones oratoriae. 144 (2003) 87<strong>–</strong>99<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Zur Editio princeps des Traktats De philosophia et de partibus eius in der Pariser Handschrift BN cod. lat. 7530. 158 (2006) 111<strong>–</strong>113<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Die Datierung der acta Iohannis und der Papyrus Kellis Gr. Fragm. A.I. 174 (2010) 65<strong>–</strong>84<br />

<strong>–</strong>, Der Briefwechsel der Korinther mit dem Apostel Paulus (3Kor) im Papyrus Bodmer X und die apokryphen Paulusakten. 175 (2010) 73<strong>–</strong>97

Hooray! Your file is uploaded and ready to be published.

Saved successfully!

Ooh no, something went wrong!